GIFT OF SEELEY W. MUDD and GEORGE I. COCHRAN MEYER ELSASSER DR. JOHN R. HAYNES WILLIAM L. HONNOLD JAMES R. MARTIN MRS. JOSEPH F. SARTORI to the UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA SOUTHERN BRANCH JOHN FISKE 8967 COURT AND TOWER OK THE PALACE, PALENQUE. (After Waldeck.) THE OF ANTIQUITY THEIR ORIGIN, MIGRATIONS, AND TYPE OF CI VI LIZ A TION CONSIDERED BY JOHN T. SHORT THIRD EDITION NEW YORK HARPER & BROTHERS, PUBLISHERS FRANKLIN SQUARE 1882 33539 Copyright, 1879, by JOHN T. SHORT. => S 5 PREFACE. rTlHE growing interest in the origin, migrations and life of -*- the races of American Antiquity has led me to believe that the subjects considered in these pages would meet with the favor- able attention of the public and of the specialist in this field. g> With such a conviction I present this volume, realizing the N O5 difficulties which attend any efforts to elucidate such dark problems. Yet I cannot conceal my satisfaction that the age ^ of North American Antiquity is not all darkness, but on the

", according to the Sources Not Identical with 1 '"pallan d< -Not in Cen- tral America Probably in the .Mis:-' lining of the Toltec Annals The Chichimecs not ntlacas The Aztecs Aztlan As Described by K Migration- Aztec Maps Sefior Ramirez on Mi- ''v-n Caves Three Claims for the Location of Azilun Tlie Irro, Quetzal- ooatl, . ... 232 CONTENTS. CHAPTER VII. THE ANCIENT PUEBLOS AND CLIFF-DWELLERS. Jr AGE The Casas Grandes of Chihuahua Ruins in the Casas Grandes and Janos Valleys Casa Grande of the Rio Gila Ruins iu.the Gila Valley Also in the Valley of the Rio Salado Ruins in the Canon of the Colorado In the Valley of the Colorado Chiquito Pueblos of the Zuui River Zuiii and the " Seven Cities of Cibola " " El Moro "Pueblos of the Chaco Valley Cliff-dwellers Mr. Jackson's Discoveries in the Valley of the Rio San Juan Cliff-houses of the Rio Mancos Cliff-dwellings on the McElrao Traditional Origin and Fate of the Cliff-dwellers- Ancestors of the Moquis Remarkable Discoveries by Mr. Holmes The Seven Moqui Towns The Montezuma Legend, . . . .275 CHAPTER VIII. ANCIENT AMERICAN CIVILIZATION AND SUPPOSED OLD WORLD ANALOGIES. ARCHITECTURE, SCULPTURE, AND HIEROGLYPHICS. Analogies, Real and Fancied MAYA ARCHITECTURE -The American Pyra- mid The Palace of Palenque Tlie French Roof at Palenque The Trefoil Arch Yucatan ic Architecture Uxmal The Casa de Monjas Kabah Casa Grande of Zayi QUICHE ARCHITECTURE Copan Cir- cus of Copan Description by Fuentes Utatlan NAIIDA ARCHITEC- TURE Remains in Oajaca Mitla Grecques at Mitla Remains in the State of Vera Cruz Cholula Pyramid of Xochicalco The Temple of Mexico Teotihuacan Los Edificios of Quemada Maya and Naliua Architecture Compared Old World Analogies SCULPTURE Of the Mounds At Palenque At Uxmal Of the Nahuas Ancient Ameri- can Art and its Old World Analogies Egyptian Tau at Palenque Serpent Sculpture Nahua Symbolism probably Asiatic HIERO- GLYPHICS Maya MSS. and Books Landa's Alphabet Attempts at the Interpretation of Maya MSS. by Bollaert, Charencey, and Rosny Rosny's Classification of the Hieroglyphics Hopes that a Key has been Discovered The Mexican Picture-writing Aztec Migration Maps, . 338 CHAPTER IX. CHRONOLOGY, CALENDAR SYSTEMS, AND RELIGIOUS ANALOGIES. No Mound-builder Chronology Known Maya Calendar Landa on the Calendar Maya Days Maya Months The Katun The Ahau Katun or Great Cycle The Maya System Adjusted to our Chronology The CONTENTS. xv ii PAOB Adjustment by Perez Intercalary Days The Nahua Calendar The Sources Divisions of the Mexican Calendar The Aztec Year The Nemontemi Aztec Months Aztec Days Nahua Ritual Calendar Mexican Calendar Stone Sources of Interpretation History of the Stone Its Interpretation Date of the Origin of the Calendar Stone Date of the Nahua Migration Analogies with the Nahua Calendar RELIGIOUS ANALOGIES Jewish Analogies Deluge Traditions Sup- posed Parallels in Jewish and Mexican History Analogies of Doctrine Analogies of Ceremonial Law Yucatanic Trinity Myth Mexican and Asiatic Analogies Buddhism in the New World Scandinavian Analogies Mexican and Greek Analogies Brasseur de Bourbourg's Comparisons 435 CHAPTER X. LANGUAGE AND ITS RELATION TO NORTH AMERICAN MIGRATIONS. Diversity of Languages in America Causes of Diversity Richness of American Languages Polysynthesis Grimm's Law The Maya- Quiche Languages Stability of the Maya Oldest American Language The Maya compared to the Greek, the Hebrew, the North European, the Basque, West African, and the Quichua Languages Epitome of Maya Grammar The Mizteco-Zapotec Languages The Nahua or Aztec The Classic Tongue Ancient and Modern Nahua Epitome of Aztec Grammar Geographical Extension of the Aztec In the South In the North-west Buschmann's Researches The Sonora Family Opata-Tarahumar-Pima Family Moqui and Aztec Elements Aztec in the Shoshone and in the Languages of Oregon and the Columbian Region Line of Aztec Elements The Nahua probably the Language of the Mound-builders The Otomi Supposed Chinese Analogies Jap- anese Analogies Geographical Names, ...... CHAPTER XL PROBABILITIES THAT AMERICA WAS PEOPLED FROM THE OLD WORLD CONSIDERED GEOGRAPHICALLY AND PHYSICALLY. Legends of Atlantis Brasseur de Bourbourg's Theory The Subject Exam- ined in the Light of Science Retzius' View Le Plongeon's Observa- tions Identity of European and American Plant Types Revelations 2 xv iii CONTENTS. PAGB of the Dolphin and Challenger Expeditions The Atlantic Floor Challenger and Dolphin Ridges " Challenger Plateau " probably once Dry Land Identity of European and South American Fauna Eleva- tion and Depression of Coast Level Of Greenland, the United States, and South America The Gulf Stream Equatorial Current The Trade- Winds Accidental Discovery of Brazil America Probably Reached by Ancient Navigators The Caras Atolls of the Pacific Ocean A. Pacific Continent Contiguity of the Continents at the North Aleutian Islands The Kuro-Suvo Behring's Straits Inviting Ap- pearance of the American Shore Remoteness of the Migration Prof. Grote's View Prof. Asa Gray's Observations Conditions Favorable to a Migration Mr. John H. Becker's Observations, .... 498 CHAPTEE XII. CONCLUSION, . 515 APPENDIX. A. MADISONVILLE EXPLORATIONS, .... .533 B. ELEPHANT PIPE, 5 30 C. CHARNAY EXPLORATION, .... .53! D. HOUSE ARCHITECTURE OF THE MOUND - BUILDERS AND PUEBLOS, 532 .537 THE NORTH-AMERICANS ANTIQUITY. CHAPTER I. ANCIENT INHABITANTS OP THE UNITED STATES. The Aborigines Antiquity of the Red Indian The Mound-builders Geo- graphical Distribution of Mound-works Frontier Defences of the Mound- builders Michigan Mounds Mounds in the North-west On the Upper Missouri In Dakota Animal Mounds of Wisconsin Elephant Mound Discoveries at Davenport, Iowa Davenport Tablet Heart of the Mound- builder Country Cahokia Resemblances to Mexico St. Louis and Cin- cinnati Works Cincinnati Tablet Works in Ohio Fortified Places Fort Ancient Signal Systems Works at Newark The Ohio Valley Explorations in Tennessee Burial in Stone Coffins Mound Colonies in the South-east Mr. Anderson's Calendar Stone Mounds of the Lower Mississippi Valley Seltzertown Mound Alabama and Georgia Mounds Pyramid of Kolee-Mokee Explorations in Missouri Sun-dried Bricks Remains in the South-west Direction of the Migration Architectural Progress Altar Mounds Mounds of Sepulture Ancient Copper Mines Astronomical Knowledge. ON that eventful morning nearly four centuries ago, when the spell of uncertainty and mystery which enshrouded the Atlantic was broken, and the darkness of the deep vanished with the darkness of the night, the illustrious admiral discovered a world populated with beings like himself. They were male and female, with all the physical characteristics common to the rest of mankind, and differed from the Spaniards only in that their skin was of a copper hue, and their cheek bones more prominent. They were tattooed and wore their straight black hair, cut short above the ears, with a few unshorn locks falling upon their shoulders. 1 These naked uncivilized men and women were the 1 Las Casas : Historia de India*, lib. I, cap. 40, torn. I, MS. Irving : Cdum- bw, vol. I, p. 158 (N. Y., 1851 ed.). Navarrete : Colecdon de los viajes, torn. I, p. 176. Grynaeus : Novus Orbis, p. 66, Basil, 1555, fol. Herrera : Historia General, Dec. I, lib. I, cap's ii et vi, Madrid, 1730. THE RED MAN AND HIS ANTIQUITY. same in their physical type with those discovered subsequently on the islands and the main land by the Cabots, Yespucius, Verrezano, and Carder. To rehearse their descriptions of the natives whom they first met would be but to repeat the expe- rience and observations of Columbus. Nearly five centuries earlier the Norse adventurer Thorwald' Ericson (1002 A. D.) encountered natives on the New England coast, corresponding in appearance, habits, and condition to those who occupied the country when colonized by the first settlers. To these natives they gave the name of Skrellings, from skraekja, a name which they had previously applied to the Eskimo, meaning to cry out. 1 Thorfin Karlsefne, who also reached the New England coast four years later than Thorwald, describes the natives as sallow-colored and ill-looking, having ugly heads of hair, large eyes and broad cheeks. They came in canoes to his ships for the purposes of trade, and though peaceable at first, soon ex- hibited hostility and treachery." It is probable that these Skrel- lings were North American Indians, who had interbred with the Atlantic Coast Eskimo. How long the red man's occupation of the country antedated its discovery by the Scandinavians is uncertain. His traditions are worthless on that subject. His chronology of moons and cycles is an incoherent and contradic- tory jumble. Nor does he know any more certainly from whence he came. It would seem that his race came by installments, if it came at all, and that he was just as far advanced in the arts of hunting and war and domestic life on the day in which he first possessed himself of the soil, as on that in which he was driven from it by the European. Only under the fostering care of the white man has he shown any improvement, and that has been of such an uncertain character as to amount to proof of his incapacity for self -civilization. The Indian, 'Rafn: Antiquitates Americana, p. 45, note. Rafn : Op. tit., pp. xxx- xxxiii. 5 Rafn : Historia Thorfinni Earlsefnii (in Ant. Am.), pp. 149, 181 ; also, De Costa : Pre-Columbian Discovery of America, pp. xxxii, xxxiii, 21, 41, 57,' 58, 60, 70, 73, 74, 110 ; Gravier : Decouverte de VAmerique par les Normands au X' Siede, p. 83. Paris, 1874, 4to. THE RED MAN AND HIS ANTIQUITY. 23 ARROW HEADS IN THE NATIONAL MUSEUM (WASHINGTON). measured by his low condition in the scale of progress from the extremest barbarism towards semi-civilization, belongs to what is known as the flint age (old-stone or Palaeolithic) in Europe, in which the rudest flint implements seem to have been the chief auxiliaries which he possessed with which to supplement and assist his hands in securing a livelihood or to protect his person and family from ferocious beasts. Perhaps we may more properly place him in a position midway between the flint and 24 THE INDIAN'S PLACE IN THE SCALE OF PROGRESS. the stone ages (new-stone or Neolithic), for he no doubt was possessed of polished stone implements of a limited number and variety. Whether made by his own hands or by those of his predecessors is uncertain. 1 In thus assigning the Indian his METHODS EMPLOYED BY INDIANS OF HAFTING STONE WEAPONS. place in the scale by which man's state of barbarism or degree of civilization has been measured by scholars in Europe, we do not pretend to claim for him the antiquity of the man of the flint age in any other part of the globe. 2 1 Prof. Jos. Leidy, in Hayderis 6th Ann. Report of the U. 8. Geological Survey of the Territories (1872), pp. 652-3, describes the stone implements found in the Bridger basin in southern Wyoming. He remarks, " The ques- tion arises, who made the stone implements and when, and why should they occur in such great numbers in the particular localities indicated. My friend, Dr. J. Van A. Carter, residing at Fort Bridger, and well acquainted with the language, history, manners, and customs of the neighboring tribes of Indians, informs me that they know nothing about them. He reports that the Shoshones look upon them as the gift of God to their ancestors. They were no doubt made long ago, some probably at a comparatively late date, that is to say, just prior to communication of the Indians with the whites, but others probably date centuries back." * It would be foreign to the object of this work to enter upon a discussion of the antiquity of man in Europe. Were we to follow the example of several writers on the antiquities of America, we might present a resume of the splendid THE INDIAN'S PLACE IN THE SCALE OF PROGRESS. 25 INDIAN AND MOUND-BUILDER SPEAR HEADS. 26 THE INDIAN'S PLACE IN THE SCALE OF PROGRESS. Dr. Abbott, of New Jersey, in an extended treatment of the Stone Age in his own State, has shown many evidences of the protracted occupancy of the Atlantic States by a people whose weapons resemble those of ancient man in Europe. Col. Charles Whittlesey has called attention to the discovery of Indian remains in the " Shelter Cave," near Elyria, Ohio, and also in a cave near Louisville, Kentucky, where the conditions seemed to point to an interment as long ago as two thousand years, but the evi- dences both as to the remains having been those of the red man and the period of burial are too uncertain to be of any service in the construction of a theory. 1 achievements of science in determining the approximate age of man, as an inhabitant of different portions of the old world, but such condensed accounts at best are unsatisfactory and often detrimental to science because of their very slenderness. The evidences of man's antiquity being far more remote than the generally accepted historic period, antedating its beginning by several thousand years, no doubt exist. The discoveries in the Liege caverns, in the caves of Languedoc and in the cave of Engihoul in Belgium ; in the Neander- thal and Engis caves ; at Abbeville and Amians ; the valley of the Somme ; the basin of the Seine ; of the Thames ; and of the lake dwellers of Switzer- land, as well as the shell-heaps of Denmark, point to an antiquity which half a century ago it would have been heresy to have dreamed of. We have but to refer to the admirable work of Sir Charles Lyell : The Antiquity of Man (Phil., 1863), and to the well-known works of Lubbock, Tylor, Vogt, and others. A good treatment of the subject in brief will be found in Foster : Pre-Historic Races of the U. 8. (1873), and a pointed and popular reference to it in Bryant's History of the U. 8., vol. I. N. Y., 1876. 1 Evidences of the Antiquity of Man in the U. 8., by Col. Charles Whittlesey. A memoir of 20 pp. Perhaps the chief importance of the above-cited cave dis- coveries is derived from the eminence of the antiquarian who cites them, rather than in their real value to science. In the case of the Elyria cave examined by Dr. E. W. Hubbard, Prof. J. Brainerd, and the author of the memoir" the grindstone grit," resting on shale, formed a grotto of consider- able size. Four feet of the floor of the cave, consisting of charcoal, ashes and bones of the wolf, bear, deer, rabbit, squirrels, fishes, snakes and birds (" all of which existed in this region when it became known to the whites "), was removed and three human skeletons discovered. The author states that the three had been crushed by a large slab of the over-hanging sandstone falling on them, but fails to state how much of the overlying material consisted of this sandstone slab. He remarks: "Judging from the appearance of the bones and the depth of the accumulations over them, two thousand years may have elapsed since the human skeletons were laid on the floor of this cave." The THE MOUND-BUILDERS. 27 The eras or ages which have been observed to mark the dif- ferent stages of the development of pre-historic man in Europe (in the manufacture of implements and the construction of places of abode), are apparently reversed in America. The Neolithic and Bronze ages preceded the Palseolithic at least in the Mississippi Basin not that the last inhabitants deteriorated and lost the higher arts which are well known to have been cultivated upon the same soil occupied by them, but that they were preceded by a race possessed of no inferior civili- zation, who were not their ancestors, but a distinct people with a capacity for progress, for the exercise of government, for the erection of magnificent architectural monuments, and possessed of a respectable knowledge of geometrical principles. The re- mains of this mysterious people known as the mound-builders are spread over thousands of square miles of the United States, and it is a question whether the antiquarian is more surprised at the greatness of their number than in many instances at the immensity of their proportions. The entire valley region of the Missouri, Mississippi and Ohio rivers with that of their affluents was occupied by this remarkable people presenting us with a parallel to the ancient civilization which flourished in the earliest times on the watercourses of the old world. The geographical distribution of these mounds may be described in general terms with u view to the territory occupied by them in the United States, as central, western, and southern. The publication of the valuable works of Squier and Davis, Louisville cave discovery is no more satisfactory than the above. It is scarcely necessary to remark that all the evidences are of a comparatively recent inter- ment, and much less than two thousand years would have been sufficient to produce the conditions described. See also discoveries at High Rock Spring, Saratoga, N. Y., cited by Col. Whittlesey, p. 10, and more fully treated by Dr. McGuire in the " Proceedings of the Boston Soc. of Nat. Hist.," vol. xii, p. 398, May, 1839, in which the latter claims to find traces of the Red man 5470 years ago. It is not probable that Dr. McQuire's traces are those of the Indians, nor is it certain that they were left by human beings at all, since the pine tree (found at a considerable depth and worn as he supposes by the feet of Indians) was as liable to have been worn by the feet of animals as of men. See also Dr. Abbott, The Stone Age in New Jersey, Smithsonian Report, 1874, p. 246 et aeq. See this work, pp. 127-8. 28 NO MOOND REMAINS IN NEW ENGLAND. of Dr. Lapham and those of Mr. Squier alone, in which the remains of these regions are described, was like a revelation which brought to light the wonders of an entombed civilization. 1 In treating of the mounds geographically, we find no evidences of this people having reached the Atlantic seaboard, unless we except the great shell-heaps found in various localities on the coast, and of which we will speak further on. It is true that in South Carolina a few vestiges of their residence are found on the Wateree River near Camden, and in the mountainous regions of North Carolina, 2 where they wrought mica mines for the mineral which they prized as precious, and which so often accompanies the remains of their dead. No authentic remains of the Mound- Builders are found in the New England States, nor even in the State of New York. In the former, we have an isolated mound in the valley of the Kennebec in Maine, and dim outlines of enclosures near Sanborn and Concord in New Hampshire, but there is no certainty of their being the work of this people. 3 In the latter, it was at first supposed that the remains found in the western portion of the State were uniform in their plan of con- struction with the works of the Ohio valley ; but Mr. Squier pronounces them to be purely the work of Bed Indians. This conclusion should not be viewed as final, even though Cusick's vague statement (in Schoolcraft, vol. v) that the Iroquois " were 1 Squier and Davis : Ancient Monuments of the Mississippi Valley, Wash- ington, 1848, 4to, 1st vol. of Smithsonian Contributions ; Dr. J. A. Lapham : Antiquities of Wisconsin, Smithsonian Contributions to Knowledge, 1855. More recently Tlie Upper Mississippi, by George Gale, Chicago, 1868 ; The Missis- sippi Valley, by Dr. J. W. Foster, Chicago, 1809, 8vo, and his Pre-Historic Rates of the U. 8., Chicago, 1873, 8vo. We might add a list of names scarcely less eminent, of authors who have written upon special fields and examined particular works. A reliable bibliography of literature on the Mound-builders is a desideratum which we trust some enterprising Americanist may soon supply. 8 Described by Dr. Wm. Blanding in a letter to Dr. Morton, of Philadelphia, aster : Pre-ffistoric Races of the U. 8., p. 148, and Ancient Monuments of the Munnssippi Valley, p. 105. Foster : p. 151. 8 Squier : Antiquities of Western New York, vol. ii, Smithsonian Contribu- tions, 1851. See an interesting account of the Antiquities of Orleans County, New York, by F. H. Gushing, in Smithsonian Report for 1874, p. 375. MICHIGAN MOUNDS. 29 compelled to build fortifications in order to save themselves from the devouring monsters" lends it an air of plausibility. Either people may have been their builders. Col. Whittlesey would assign these fort-like structures, differing from the more southern enclosures in that they were surrounded by trenches on their outside, while the latter uniformly have the trench on the inside of the enclosure, to a people anterior to the Red Indian and perhaps contemporaneous with the Mound-builders, but distinct from either. 1 A quite reasonable view is that of Dr. Foster, that they are the frontier works of the Mound- builders, adapted to the purposes of defence against the sudden irruptions of hostile tribes. He remarks, " If our country were to become a desolation, the future antiquary would find the sea- coast studded with fortifications of a complex form, and as he penetrated to the interior they would disappear altogether." 2 It is probable that these defences belong to the last period of the Mound-builders' residence on the lakes, and were erected when the more warlike peoples of the North who drove them from their cities first made their appearance. Passing along the boundary of the Mound-builders' territory towards the west, we find the great lakes in all cases to have served as its limit on the north. Mr. Henry Grillman has described in several publications 3 his exploration of mounds in Michigan and the lakes. One of the richest mounds in relics and human remains is known as " the Great Mound of the River Rouge," situated on the stream from which it takes its name, near the Detroit River and about four and a half miles from the centre of the city of Detroit. The mound now measures twenty feet in height, and must originally have measured 300 feet in length by 200 in width, though the removal of large quantities of sand from it has greatly reduced its proportions and destroyed many valuable relics. Many other 1 Antiquity of Man in U. 8., p. 12 ; also, Ancient Erirth Forts of the Cuya- hoga Valley, Ohio, by Col. Charles Whittlesey, Cleveland, 0., 1871, pp. 40 and plates. 9 Pre-Historic Eaces of the U. S. , p. 145. 3 Smithsonian Kcport for 1873, p. 364 et seq., from which we draw the above. The Proceedings of the American Ass. for the Adv. of Science for 1875. 30 WORKS OF THE NORTH-WEST. mounds surrounding it have also been removed. The most remarkable result of the exploration was the discovery of tibiae flattened to an extreme degree, such as is peculiar to platycnemic man. A circular mound in the vicinity yielded even more remarkable specimens of this singular flattening or compression. Two specimens presented unprecedented proportions ; the trans- verse diameter of one shaft being 0.42 and the other 0.40 of the antero-posterior diameter. The circular mound yielded eleven skeletons besides a large number of burial vases and stone im- plements of all descriptions peculiar to the mounds. Of the crania from this mound we shall speak in Chapter IV. In 1872, Mr. Gillman examined a remarkable group of tumuli situated at the head of St. Clair Kiver. These mostly stand on the shores of Lake Huron. The relics, besides human remains, consisted of pieces of mica, and necklaces of beads of the teeth of the moose alternating with well- wrought beads of copper. The same pecu- liarity of flattened tibiae, was markedly prominent in the remains. 1 The same investigator has examined mounds at Ottawa Point, Michigan, near the mouth of the Oqueoc River, at Point La Barbe in the Straits of Mackinac, and at Beaver Harbor on Beaver Island in Lake Michigan. Excepting ancient copper mines, no known works extend as far north as Lake Superior anywhere in the central region. Farther to the North-west, however, the works of the same people' are comparatively numer- ous. Dr. Foster quotes a British Columbia newspaper, without giving either name or date, as authority for the discovery of a large number of mounds, seemingly the works of the same people who built farther east and south. 2 On the Butte Prairies ' See Mr. Gillman's in Sixth Annual Report of the Trustees of the Peabody Museum of Archeology and Ethnology, p. 12 et seq., Cambridge, 1873, and Am. Jour, of Arts and Sciences, 3d ser., vol. vii, pp. 1-9, Jan. 1874 Foster's Pre-Historic Races, p. 151. - There is a large mound, three hun- I feet h,gh aqd three hundred yards in diameter at the base, at the southern 8 prairie, about twenty-five miles from Olympia ; and scattered over ie prame for a distance of fifteen miles are many smaller mounds, not more than four feet high and twenty or thirty in diameter. * * * A f ew days a ff o one of the engineers of the Northern Pacific Railroad opened one of them and found the remains of pottery; and a more thorough examination of others LEWIS AND CLARKE'S DISCOVERIES. 31 of Oregon Wilkes and his exploring expedition discovered thousands of similar mounds. 1 Lewis and Clarke, in the Journal of their expedition up the Missouri Elver, describe the remains of fortifications on Bon- homme Islands at as early a date as 1804-5-6, but until recently their statements have been received with a degree of doubt. 2 This doubt has, however, been fully set at rest by the members of the United States Geological Surveying Expedition of 1872. Not only has it been shown that works exist at Bonhomme's Island, but all the way up through the Yellowstone region and on the upper tributaries of the Missouri mounds are found in profusion. 3 Dr. C. Thomas, of the above-named expedition, revealed other curious relics, evidently the work of human hands ; in fact, in every mound that has yet been opened there is some relic of a long-forgotten race discovered." In quoting the above, Dr. Foster remarks that the great mound was no doubt a natural eminence artificially rounded off. 1 Narrative of the U. 8. Exploring Expedition during the Years 1838-42. Phila., 1844. Tom. IV, p. 334. " We soon reached the Butte prairies (on Columbia River) which were extensive, and covered with tumuli or small mounds, at regular distances asunder. As far as I could learn there is no tradition among the natives relative to them. They are conical mounds thirty feet in diameter, about six to seven feet high above the level, and many thousands in number. Being anxious to ascertain if they contained any relics, I subsequently visited these prairies, and opened three of the mounds, but found nothing in them but a pavement of round stones." 2 Baldwin (Ancient America, pp. 31-2) remarks: "Lewis and Clark re- ported seeing them on the Missouri River a thousand miles above its junc- tion with the Mississippi River; but this report has not been satisfactorily verified." 3 See Mr. A. Barrandt in Smithsonian Report, 1870, for an account of dis- coveries on Clark's Creek in Dakota ; on the Bighorn River ; on the Yellow- stone ; on the Morean and the banks of the Great Cheyenne. See Foster's Pre-Historic Races, pp. 153-4. The proof is conclusive that the head-waters of the Missouri was one of their ancient seats. The same gentleman (Mr. Bar- randt) describes a remarkable mound in Lincoln County, Dakota, situated eighty-five miles north-west of Sioux City, on the west fork of the Little Sioux of Dakota or Turkey Creek. The mound is known as the " Hay Stack." Its dimensions are 327 feet in length at the base on the north-west side, and 290 on the south-east side, and 120 feet wide. It slopes at an angle of about 50, is from thirty-four to forty feet in height, the north-east end being the higher. To the summit, which is from twenty-eight to thirty-three feet wide, there is a well-beaten path. The remarkable feature of the mound is the fact that part 32 JAMES RIVER MOUNDS. made interesting discoveries in Dakota Territory, near the North- ern Pacific Railroad crossing of the James Eiver. Mounds were examined giving evidence of perhaps greater antiquity than those common in the interior of the country, if their contents be depended upon as furnishing a means of test. 1 The Missouri of the north-east side is walled up with soft sandstone and limestone, brought a distance of at least three miles from an ancient quarry. The remainder of the surface is pronounced to be of calcined clay. The mound contained a large interior circular chamber, in which the bones of animals, thirty-six pieces of pottery, and a mass of charcoal and ashes were found. Smithsonian Report for 1872, pp. 413 et seq. 1 Since this is a contested point, both as to the presence of the works of the Mound-builders in the North-west and as to their great antiquity, I subjoin a portion of a report on these mounds made by Gen. H. W. Thomas, U. S. A., to Dr. Thomas of the Surveying Expedition, in the Sixth Annual Report of the U. 8. Geological Survey under Dr. Hayden in 1872, pp. 656-7 : " ' Lewis and Clarke reported seeing Indian mounds 1000 miles above the confluence of the Mississippi and Missouri, but this report is not verified.' So says Mr. John D. Baldwin, A. M., in his work entitled ' Ancient America.' " I now and here propose to contribute my mite toward the verification of the statement of Lewis and Clarke. "The few men whom duty or wild inclination have from time to time brought into this, for the most part, uninhabited region of treeless prairie, have all known of the existence of thousands of artificial mounds. What was in them they knew not, and but two or three, to my knowledge, have ever been opened. On August 16, 1872, I opened one on the high table lands that spread out on both sides of a little stream called the James. The point is about 47 north latitude, and 98 38' longitude west from Greenwich. It is within three miles of the line of the North Pacific Railroad. The mound is circular in form, 80ir feet in its shorter, and 35 T S jj feet in its longer diameter, and five feet high. I opened four trenches, three feet wide, from the outer edge, meeting in the centre, forming a cross when finished. I then excavated the entire mound from the centre outward, until there was nothing more to find. For results I had several two-bushel bags full of bones, eight skulls, many pieces of skulls too small to be of value (there must have been at least twenty-five bodies buried there), a rough-hewn stone ten inches high and five and a half inches in diam- eter, in shape resembling closely a conical shell, a cutting half an inch deep around the centre. (This was evidently tied with thongs to a stout handle, and used in pulverizing their maize.) A portion of a shell necklace, two flints, two heads of beaver, and some bones of animals unknown, and a large quantity of bivalves, much like the clam (Mya oMongata) of our Atlantic coast, but thicker, and the interior surface much more pearly. " The mounds and their contents are apparently of great antiquity. They are, in every case, on the very highest point in their immediate neighborhood", ANIMAL MOUNDS IN WISCONSIN. 33 valley seems to have been one of the most populous branches of the wide-spread Mound-builder country. The valleys of its affluents, the Platte and Kansas rivers, also furnish evidence that these streams served as the channels into which flowed a part of the tide of population which either descended or ascended the Missouri. The Mississippi and Ohio river valleys, however, formed the great central arteries of the Mound-builder domain. In Wisconsin we find the northern central limit of their works ; occasionally on the western shores of Lake Michigan, but in great numbers in the southern counties of the State, and especially on the lower Wisconsin River. The peculiar and fantastic forms of most of these mounds have led some writers to suppose that they belonged to a different race from that which occupied the valleys to the south. Instead of the usual type of the pyramid and circle, these remains mostly represent animals, or birds, or men. Still Dr. Lapham, who has described them fully in his admirable work 1 on the Antiquities of Wisconsin, concluded that sufficient resemblances between these remains and those of the south exist to ascribe to them a common origin. A few instances of the circle and square are found in association with the animal mounds, while in Ohio, on Brush Creek in Adams and perfectly drained. The climate is excessively dry ; so dry that the James River is entirely dry at a point about 500 feet above the contemplated railroad- bridge across the river. Notwithstanding this, many of the bones crumbled into white dust on being brought to the air, like those found in Herculaneum and Pompeii, and it was absolutely impossible to get out a single one in anything like perfection. Around and over these bodies stones and sticks were placed, doubtless to preserve the remains from the coyote and the fox. The wood could be rubbed into fine yellow-brown dust between the thumb and forefinger. Any trace of excavation around the mound for dirt to heap it with had been entirely obliterated. The upright position of the skulls also indicated that the bodies were buried in a sitting posture. The leg-bones, however, lay lower and horizontal. " The number of mounds indicates a denser population than ever has been known here, or than the natural resources of this region can now support by the chase. At the same time the number of dry lakes scattered all over would indicate that at some remote period the country may have been a better one than now, and supported a larger population." 1 "Antiquities of Wisconsin," Smithsonian Contributions to Knowledge, vol. vii, 18oo. 3 34 THE "GREAT SERPENT" AND THE "ALLIGATOR." GREAT SERPENT, ADAMS Co., O. no effigy mounds were believed County, the "Great Ser- pent," and the "Alligator" in Licking County furnish proof that either the same people built them or at least the same impulses, religious or otherwise, actuated the people of both districts. The former of the above figures is well described by its name, " with its head conforming to the crest of a hill, and its body winding back for 700 feet in graceful undu- lations, terminating in a triple coil at the tail." The length of the latter "from the point of the nose follow- ing the curves of the tail to the tip, is about 250 feet, the breadth of the body forty feet and the length of the legs or paws each thirty- six feet. " J Until recently to exist further south than 1 Squier and Davis : Ancient Monuments, pp. 97-99. Recent and possibly more exact surveys of the Alligator give the figures as somewhat less than the above. Isaac Smucker, a very reliable antiquarian of Licking Co., Ohio, in an address before the Ohio State Archaeological Convention, held at Mansfield in September, 1875, corrects the figures in the following statement : " The Alliga- tor mound is upon the summit of a hill or spur, which is nearly 200 feet high, six miles west of Newark, and near the village of Granville. The outlines of the Alligator (or Crocodile) are clearly defined. His entire length is 205 feet. The breadth of the body at the widest part, twenty feet, and the length of the body between the fore-legs and hind-legs is fifty feet. The legs are each about twenty feet long. The head, fore-shoulders and rump have an elevation vary- ing from three to six feet, while the remainder of the body averages a foot or two less." ELEPHANT MOUND. 35 Ohio ; however, Mr. C. C. Jones, Jr., in the Smithsonian Report for 1877 has shown this to be a mistake. Mr. Jones describes an eagle-shaped stone mound north of Eaton ton, in Putnam Co., Georgia, of the following dimensions : Height of tumulus at the breast of the bird, seven or eight feet ; length from the top of the head to the extremity of the tail, 102 feet ; distance from tip to tip of the wings, 120 feet ; greatest expanse of tail, 38 feet. A careful regard to the proportions of the bird are shown. A similar stone mound, of nearly the same propor- tions, was found near Lawrence Ferry on the Oconee Kiver in Putnam County. In this instance a circle of stones encloses the effigy. At Trenton, Wisconsin, and in many other places ex- amined by Dr. Lapham, cruciform works were found, some of which were constructed with the arms extending toward the cardinal points. 1 Instances of extinct or unknown animal forms occur occasionally : one instance is that of an animal somewhat resembling a monkey, having a body of about 160 feet in length, while the tail describes a semicircle and measures alone 320 feet. 2 The most remarkable instance of the kind, however, is that of the big elephant mound found a few miles below the mouth of the Wisconsin River, so perfect in its proportions and complete in its representations of an elephant that its builders must have been well acquainted with all the physical characteristics of the animal which they delineated. 3 This fact suggests the inquiry whether these people were Asiatic in origin and penetrated to the interior of the country before their recollections of the ele- phant were forgotten, or whether they were contemporaneous with 1 Lapluun's Antiquities of Wisconsin, pp. 18, 20, 36, 37, 39, 52, 54, 55, 56, 57, 62, G9. 2 W. H. Cftnfield's Sketches of Sank County, Wisconsin ; Foster's Pre-Uis- toric Races, p. 101. On the copper remains of the Mound-builders, see Pre- Hixtt'H'ic Wisconsin, by Prof. James D. Butler, LL.D., annual address before the State Historical Society of Wisconsin, Feb. 18, 1876. Wisconsin Hist. Col., vol. vii. Privately printed. 3 Smithsonian Report for 1872, figured and described on p. 416 by Jared Warner of Patch Grove, Wis. (Oct. 1872). A further description of mounds in the same locality, by Moses Strong, M. E., will be found in Smithsonian Report for 1876, p. 424.' 36 ELEPHANT MOUND. 051 20 30 TO 60 60 70 80 Feet Scale r>l feet to the inch.^ ELEPHANT MOUND, WISCONSIN. the mastodon of North America ? In the remarkable works at Aztalan, Dr. Lapham finds not only resemblances to the Ohio antiquities, but striking analogies with those of Mexico. 1 1 Antiquities of Wisconsin, pp. 43-5 : " The main features of these remains is the enclosure or ridge of earth (not brick, &? has been erroneously stated), ex- tending around three sides of an irregular parallelogram ; the west branch of Rock River forming the fourth side on the east. The space thus enclosed is seventeen acres and two-thirds. The corners are not rectangular, and the em- bankment or ridge is not straight. The earth of which the ridge is made was evidently taken from the nearest ground, where there are numerous excava- tions of very irregular form and depth ; precisely such as may be seen along our modern railroad and canal embankments. These excavations are not to be confounded with the hiding-places (caches) of the Indians, being larger and more irregular in outline. Much of the material of the embankment was doubtless taken from the surface without penetrating a sufficient depth to leave a trace at the present time. If we allow for difference of exposure of earth thrown up into a ridge and that lying on the original flat surface, we can perceive no differ- ence between the soil composing the ridge and that found along its sides. Both consist of a light yellowish sandy loam. The ridge forming the enclosure is 631 feet long at the north end, 1419 feet long on the west side, and 700 feet on the south side ; making a total length of wall 2750 feet. The ridge or wall is about twenty-two feet wide, and from one foot to five in height." * * * After DISCOVERIES AT DAVENPORT, IOWA. 37 Across the Mississippi in Minnesota and Iowa, the predomi- nant type of circular tumuli prevail, extending throughout the latter State to the Missouri. There are evidences that the Upper Missouri region was connected with that of the Upper .Mississippi by settlements occupying the intervening country. Mounds are found even in the valley of the Ked Kiver of the North. 1 Eastern Iowa, especially in the neighborhood of Davenport, has furnished some of the most interesting mounds that have yet been examined. Several gentlemen especially Kev. Mr. Gass of the Davenport Academy of Sciences have within a couple of years recovered a number of fine specimens of copper axes, nearly all wrapped in Mound-builder's cloth. This cloth had been " preserved by the antiseptic action of the salts of copper, in all probability of the carbonates. In all specimens one thread of the warp is double or twisted, and there are about four to the one-fourth of an inch." 2 Stone pipes of excellent workmanship carved to represent various animals were found. Pottery, copper beads in considerable numbers, mica and sea- shells (Pyrula and Cassis), one which had an internal capacity of 152 cubic inches, or five and one-half pints, were among the relics recovered. Most of the human remains were much de- cayed ; although some, among them a skull, were preserved. The character of the Altar mound in this group is rather unusual. Within the mound hewn rectangular stones were laid upon one another with perfect regularity, so as to break joints, forming something resembling the exterior appearance of a chimney. describing one of the mounds of this enclosure, he remarks : " The analogy between these elevations and the ' temple mounds ' of Ohio and the Southern States, will at once strike the reader who has seen the plans and descriptions. They have the same square or regular form, sloping or graded ascent, the terraced or step-like structure, and the same position in the interior of the enclosure. This kind of formation is known tD increase in numbers and im- portance as we proceed to the south and south-west, until they are represented by the great structures of the same general character on the plains of Mexico." 1 D. Gunn in Smithsonian Report for 1807. 2 Dr. Farquharson in Proceedings of Am. Asa. foe the Adv. of Science, vol. xsiv, p. 305. Sr* " O f\ 0.; 38 THE DAVENPORT TABLET. We are not aware of any similarly shaped altar ever having been discovered ill the mounds. The most remarkable discovery of all, however, was made January 10, 1877,, by Rev. Mr. Gass and his assistants in one of the mounds which previously had been examined in part. Two tablets of coal slate covered with a variety of figures and hieroglyphics were found. 1 One 1 Through the courtesy of Dr. K. J. Farquharson I am enabled to append the original report made by Mr. Gass to the Davenport Academy, Jan. 20, 1877. It is as follows : " We broke the surface on the north-east slope of the mound about ten or twelve feet from the opening on the west side made in 1874. The earth was frozen to a depth of about three and a half feet. Five or six inches below the surface we came upon a layer of shells one or two inches in thickness, which sloped downward toward the south-east, reaching a depth of two feet or rather more below the surface, and extending for a distance of ten or twelve feet. Between the surface and this first layer of shells a number of small fragments of human bones were found scattered through the soil. Under this shell layer was a stratum of earth of from twelve to fifteen inches in thickness, resting on a second layer of shells, from three to four inches in thickness. Both shell layers sloped downward nearly parallel with each other. " Below the second shell layer the earth was of the nature of a light mould, darker in color than the earth above and thickly interspersed with fragments of human bones. These circumstances arrested my attention and caused me to proceed from this time on with the greatest caution. At a depth of about fifteen inches under the lowest part of the shell layer exposed in this excava- tionthe shell stratum at this point being five or six inches thick the inscribed slates were found. The slate is the same as that usually found overlying coal eds in this vicinity, and is such as is frequently seen cropping out from the hill-sides or in isolated slabs in the beds of streams. Both plates lay close together on the hard undisturbed clay bottom of the mound. "The engraved side of the smaller tablet was upward, and also that side of the larger one presenting the heavenly bodies, hieroglyphics, etc. The larger plate being partially divided by natural cleavage, its upper layer was unfor- tunately broken in two by a slight stroke of the spade. The two plates were sely encircled by a single row of weathered limestones. These stones are ilar in shape, but almost of the same size, their dimensions beingabout three 3 by seven or eight inches, and the diameter of the circle about two feet In the immediate vicinity were found a number of fragments of human les, one being a portion of a skull saturated with carbonate of copper A ce of copper was found ; afeo many fragments of slate and a piece of bone artificially wrought." T/"^ f the Da^port Academy of Natural Sciences for h rf B f T^T f ******* ^ % Rev. J. Gass, with A Descrip- Dr. R. J. Farquharson. Davenport, Iowa, July, 1877. Cuts and views. THE DAVENPORT TABLET. 39 of these, the larger, is of a most interesting character. On one side, as will be seen in the accompanying cut, a number of persons with hands joined have formed a semicircle around a mound, upon which a fire has been kindled, probably for the purpose of sacrifice, or for converting into a hardened and water- THE DAVENPORT TABLET. proof covering the layer of clay which may have been spread over the remains of some distinguished personage beneath. The presence of a layer of baked clay above human remains in so many Ohio mounds leads to this conjecture. The three pros- trate human figures may be those of wives or servants of the deceased, to be sacrificed upon his grave, as has been the custom from the remotest times in India and among many savage tribes. The conspicuousness of the sun, moon, and stars, suggest even CAHOKIA MOUND. a sadder thought, that perhaps it may be purely a religious ceremony in which human victims are being ottered to the heavenly bodies. Sabine worship, which spread throughout the entire length of the continent, is known to have been accompanied with the most horrid rites. Above the arch of the firmament are hieroglyphics which if deciphered no doubt would tell of the nature of this and other similar scenes. On the reverse side of the tablet is a rude representation of a hunting scene m which various animals, such as the buffalo cow, deer, bear, etc., etc., are figured. It has been conjectured that a large animal in the upper left-hand corner may be a mammoth, but there is little ground for the supposition. The scene is probably a representation of the exploits of the person buried in the mound. The smaller tablet is evidently a calendar stone with signs of the zodiac regularly marked upon it ; of this calendar we shall speak in a future chapter. The above conjectures as to the significance of the representations on these tablets are based upon the suppo- sition that they are genuine and not the work of an impostor, of which we cannot refrain from expressing a slight suspicion. That Rev. Mr. Gass has given a true account of his discovery there cannot be the slightest doubt that he and his co-laborers in the work of excavation believe them to be genuine is equally certain. Descending to the interior, we find the heart of the Mound- builder country in Illinois, Indiana and Ohio. It is uncertain whether its vital centre was in Southern Illinois or in Ohio probably the former because of its geographical situation with reference to the mouths of the Missouri and Ohio Rivers. To enter upon a detailed description of the antiquities of this remark- able region would alone more than occupy the entire limits which we have prescribed for this work. This undertaking has already been well performed by Atwater, Squier and Davis, Foster, Baldwin, and many others. We shall therefore confine our remarks to notices of the most conspicuous remains and the general peculiarities of Mound-builder architecture. This people possessed a due appreciation of the physical advantages of certain localities for their cities. The site of St. Louis was formerly covered with mounds, one of which was thirty-five feet high, ANALOGIES WITH MEXICO. 41 DRILLED CEREMONIAL WEAPONS. (Nat. Mus.) while in the American bottom on the Illinois side of the river their number approximates two hundred. In a group of sixty or more, lying between Alton and East St. Louis, stands the most magnificent of all the Mound-builders' works, the great Mound of Cahokia, which rises to a height of ninety-seven feet and extends its huge mass in the form of a parallelogram, with sides measuring 700 and 500 feet respectively. On the south- 42 RECENT EXPLORATIONS IN THE AMERICAN BOTTOM. west there was a terrace 160 by 300 feet, reached by means of a graded way. The summit of the pyramid is truncated, afford- ing a platform of 200 by 450 feet. Upon this platform stands a conical mound ten feet high. Dr. Foster remarks : " It is prob- able that upon this platform was reared a capacious temple, within whose walls the high-priests gathered from different quarters at stated seasons, celebrating their mystic rites, whilst the swarming multitude below looked up with mute adoration." l When we consider the analogy between the general features of this pyramid and that on which the temple of Mexico was situated, it is not unnatural to reflect that Cahokia may have served as the prototype of the more magnificent structure which was so often deluged with the blood of its thousands of human victims. The temple of Mexico and many others of its type may have been the embodiment of the same principles of architecture employed at Cahokia, but carried to greater perfection under the more favorable conditions afforded in the valley of Anahuac, or precisely the reverse may be true. Such speculations are, how- ever, more easily set forth than sustained. Dr. Foster, through a mistake, states that the monster mound has been removed. This, we are happy to say, is not the case. 2 Numerous interesting explorations have been conducted re- 1 Pre-Historic Races of the U. S., p. 107. See especially 12th Annual Report Peabody Museum. 2 In a paper, A Deposit of Agricultural Flint Implements Found in Southern Illinois, Smithsonian Report, 1868, Dr. Clias. Rau treats the subject of Aboriginal Agriculture at considerable length. In the Smithsonian Report for 1873, p. 413 et seq., Dr. A. Patton describes the exploration of several remarkable mounds in La%vrence Co., Illinois. In the Smithsonian Report for 1874, p. 351, Taylor McWhorter describes a number of mounds in Mercer Co., Illinois. He estimates the number in the county at one thousand, mostly on the Mississippi River bank. The Antiquities of White/tide County, 111., by W. H. Pratt, of Davenport, Iowa, printed in the same Report, p. 354 et seq., is a most valuable contribution to our knowledge of the mounds. The first mound examined yielded eight skulls, two of which were preserved. The third mound opened yielded the skeletons of four adults and several articles of interest, such as pieces of mica, a lump of galena and a dove-colored arrow-head. From the fifth mound opened, a remark- ably well-preserved skeleton was recovered. Dr. Farquharson, of the Daven- port Academy of Sciences, has contributed one of the most valuable tables of mound-cranial measurements ever published. THE ROCKFORD TABLET. 43 cently in Illinois with rich results. Among the most notable of these are the discoveries of Mr. Henry K. Howland, reported in a paper read before the Buffalo Society of Natural Sciences, March, 1877 (Bulletin of the Buffalo Soc. of Nat. Sc., vol. iii., p. 204 et seq.). In January, 1876, Mr. Howland witnessed the removal of a mound near Mitchell Station in the American Bottom. In a stratum four or five feet from the base, composed chiefly of human bones, a large quantity of matting and a num- ber of copper relics were disclosed to view. The matting was a coarse vegetable cane-like fibre simply woven, without twisting. Among the articles wrapped in the matting were several minia- ture tortoise shells formed of copper. They were of beaten copper of one sixty-fourth of an inch in thickness, the largest being but two and one-eighth inches in length. " A narrow flange or rim, about five thirty-secondths of an inch in width, is neatly turned at the base, and over the entire outer surface the curious markings peculiar to the tortoise shell are carefully produced by indenta- tion the entire workmanship evincing a delicate skill of which we nave never before found traces in any discovered remains of the arts of the Mound-builders." These shells were covered with several wrappings, the first and nearest to the shell proving to be of vegetable fibre, the second of a dark-brown color ; when placed under the microscope and examined by Dr. G. J. Engle- man and Sir Joseph Hooker, proved to be a very fine cloth woven from animal hair of the rabbit and possibly of the deer. The third envelope was made from the intestine of some animal. The lower jaws of deer were discovered in which the forward part containing the teeth were encased in thin copper and wrapped in the fine hair-cloth just described. From holes bored in the back of each jaw, it is inferred that the articles were suspended from the neck as totems or badges of authority. Three wooden spool-like objects were found in the same place, partially plated with thin copper. Copper rods or needles from fourteen to eighteen inches in length, a beautiful shell necklace, and a spear head of chert a foot long, were also discovered. Among the rest were several sea-shells (Busy con Perversum), evidently brought from the Gulf a thousand miles distant. In the summer of 1874, 44 CINCINNATI TABLET. Mr. H. R. Enoch, of Rockford, 111., discovered a tablet in a mound situated on the bank of Kock River, five miles south of Rockford. The "Rockford Tablet" created quite a sensation at first because it was thought to bear upon its face several sym- bols found upon the Mexican Calendar stone. However, a thorough investigation of its claims prove it to be a fraud, no doubt placed in the mound where discovered for the purpose of deception. Mr. J. Moody of Mendota, 111., in referring to the twelve symbols of the tablet said to be Mexican, remarks : " Six are nearly exact counterparts of that number of Lybian charac- ters which I find represented in Priest's American Antiquities. * * * From a comparison of the Rockford Tablet with the plates in the work referred to above, the inference is almost irresistible that the engraver had a copy of Priest's American Antiquities before him while doing his work/' (See Congres International des Americanistes, Luxembourg, 1877. Tome ii, p. 160.) The same sagacity which chose the neighborhood of St. Louis for these works, covered the site of Cincinnati with an extensive system of circumvallations and mounds. Almost the entire space now occupied by the city was utilized by the mysterious builders in the construction of embankments and tumuli built upon the most accurate geometrical principles, and evincing keen military foresight. 1 Dr. Daniel Drake described these works in 1815, and many others subsequently. 2 The most im- portant discovery made among these remains was that of the "Cincinnati Tablet" in 1841. This singular relic was taken from a large mound formerly thirty-five feet high, removed at the above date from the extension of Mound Street across Fifth The best and most exhaustive treatment of the above is by Mr. Robert Clarke : The Pre-Historie Remains which were Found on the Site of Cincinnati, Ohio, with a Vindication of the Cincinnati Tablet. Cincinnati, 1876. 8vo, 34 pp. s to be regretted that this valuable discussion of the genuineness of one of emost important Mound-builder relics is only "privately circulated." Mr. Clarke has fully accomplished the design for which he wrote. Dr. Daniel Drake's Picture of Cincinnati, Cincinnati, 1815. Squier and Dams in Ancient Monuments. Gen. Harrison : Ohio Hist, and Phil. Society Trans,, vol. i, and others. THE CINCINNATI TABLET. 45 CINCINNATI TABLET. (Front.) Street. When found, it was lying on a level with the original surface under the skull of a much decayed skeleton, with two polished, pointed bones about seven inches long, and a bed of charcoal and ashes. This stone in all probability served the double purpose of a record of the calendar and a scale for THE CINCINNATI TABLET CINCINNATI TABLET. (Back.) measurement. 1 Mr. E. Gest, the courteous owner of the tablet, 1 Dr. Daniel Wilson's Pre-Hiatonc Man, 3d ed., 1876, vol. i, pp. 274-5. The following description is given in Squier and Davis's Ancient Monuments of the Mississippi Valley : " The material is fine-grained, compact sandstone of a light- brown color. It measures five inches in length, three in breadth at the ends, MOUND-WORKS IN OHIO. provided the accompanying cuts expressly for this work, regarding them as the first correct representations of the stone. The vast number as well as the magnitude of the works found DAGGER } SIZE. (Nat. Mus.) in the State of Ohio, have surprised the most careless and indif- ferent observers. It is estimated by the most conservative, and Messrs. Squier and Davis among them, that the number of tumuli and two and six-tenths at the middle, and is about half an inch in thickness. The sculptured face varies very slightly from a perfect plane. The figures are cut in low relief (the lines being not more than one-twentieth of an inch in depth), and occupy a rectangular space four inches and two-tenths long by two and one-tenth wide. The sides of the stone, it will be observed, are slightly concave. Right lines are drawn across the face near the ends, at right angles, and exterior to these are notches, twenty-five at one end and twenty-four at the other. The back of the stone has three deep longitudinal grooves, and several depressions, evidently caused by rubbing probably produced by sharpening the instrument used in the sculpture." [Mr. Gest, however, does not regard these as tool marks, but thinks they are of peculiar significance.] " Without discussing the singular resemblance which the relic bears to the Egyptian Cartomh, it will be sufficient to direct attention to the reduplication of the figures, those upon one side corresponding with those upon the other, and the two central ones being also alike. It will be observed that there are but three scrolls or figures four of one and two of each of the others. Probably no serious discussion of the question whether or not these figures are hieroglyphical is needed. They more resemble the stalk and flowers of a plant than anything else in nature. What significance, if any, may attach to the peculiar markings or graduations at the end, it is not undertaken to say. The sum of the pro- ducts of the longer and shorter lines (24 x 7 + 25 x 8) is 368, three more than the number of days in the year ; from which circumstance the suggestion has been advanced that the tablet had an astronomical origin, and constituted some sort of a calendar." We may here add that, Col. Chas. Whittlesey published at Cleveland, Ohio, in Historical and Arch(ro',t>gic/tl Tract No. 9 (Feb. 1872) of the Western Reserve Historical Society, a statement that the " Cincinnati Tablet " was a fraud. But we are informed tliat he is sinco convinced of its genuineness. 48 WORKS NEAR LIBERTY, OHIO. WORKS IN LIBERTY TOWNSHIP, Ross COUNTY, OHIO. in Ohio equals 10,000, and the number of enclosures 1000 or 1500. In Boss County alone, 100 enclosures and upwards of 500 mounds have been examined. Some of the works exhibit fine engineering skill ; such, for instance, are those near Liberty, Ohio, where two embankments, each forming a perfect circle, are found in conjunction with a perfect square. The larger circle measures 1700 feet in diameter and contains forty acres, while the smaller has a diameter of 800 feet. The square contains twenty-seven acres and measures 1080 feet on each side. One GEOMETRICAL EXACTNESS DISPLAYED. 49 set of works in Pike County consists of a circle enclosing a square, the four corners of which each touch the circular embankment. The opening or doorway through the circle is opposite the open- ing in the square. Prof. E. B. Andrews found a conical mound enclosed by a circle, the base of the mound reaching to the edge of the ditch outside of which is the circular wall. The mound was located on the Hocking River, nine miles northward of Lancaster, Ohio (see Tenth Ann. Rep. of Peabody Mus. of Arch. CELTS. (Nat. Mus.) The large celt, upper line, from a mound (Tenn.). The others Surface Finds. and Eth., p. 51). The works at Hopetown, near Chillicothe, present seVeral combinations of the square and circle. The two principal figures of these works are a square and circle each containing exactly twenty acres. The discovery of these geometrical combinations executed with such precision in many parts of the country, lead to the belief that the Mouncl- buiklers were one people spread over a large territory, possessed of the same institutions, religion, and perhaps one government. These facts are highly important as shedding light upon the 4 FORTIFIED PLACES. degree of their civilization. The evidence is ample that they were possessed of regular scales of measurement, of the means of determining angles and of computing the area to be enclosed by a square and circle, so that the space enclosed by these figures standing side by side might exactly correspond. In a word, their scientific and mathematical knowledge was of a very respectable order. ABORIGINAL CHISELS, GOUGES AND ADZES. (Nat. Mus.) Surface Finds. The military works of the Mound-builders, other than those previously mentioned as existing on the Lakes and in Western New York State, are of a twofold character, consisting first of fortified eminences, of which an instance is found in Butler County, Ohio, where 16y\ acres are walled in on the summit of a hill, and the entrance to the enclosure guarded by a compli- cated system of covered ways. On Paint Creek, Ross County, a remarkable stone work encloses 140 acres, in the centre of which was an artificial lake, probably to supply water in case of a siege. Perhaps the most remarkable fortification left by the FORT ANCIENT, OHIO. 51 Mound-builders is that known as Fort Ancient, Ohio, on the Little Miami River, forty-two miles north-east of Cincinnati. The specialist is already familiar with the oft-quoted description of the Survey by Prof. Locke, made in 1843. We will therefore only refer to a few of the measurements contained in that description. " The work occupies a terrace on the left bank of the river, two hundred and thirty feet above its waters. The place is naturally a strong one, being a peninsula defended by two ravines, which, originating on the east side, near to each other, diverging and sweeping around, enter the Miami, the one above, the other below the work. The Miami itself, with its precipitous bank of two hundred feet, defends the western side." vr # * The whole circuit of this work is between four and five miles. The number of cubic yards of excavation may be approximately estimated at 628,800. The embankment stands in many places twenty fact in perpendicular height. The most interesting and valuable paper on this work is that by Mr. L. M. Hosea, of Cincinnati, in the Quarterly Journal of Science (Cin- cinnati), October, 1874, p. 289 et seq. This writer observes that it has often been remarked that the form of Fort Ancient resem- bles a rude outline of the continent of North and South America. None of the mounds contained in the enclosure have yielded any relics of special interest. The greatest possible diversity of opinion exists concerning the antiquity of the abandonment of the works. Judges Dunlevy and Force, the latter in his memoir on the Mound-builders, 1 estimate the period as a thousand 1 Judge M. F. Force: Mound- Builders. Cincinnati, 1872. Rev. S. D. Peet in the American Antiquarian for April, 1878, refers to the visit of the Ohio Archaeological and the National Anthropological Conventions to Fort Ancient in September, 1877, and states that during the visit the significance of the walls of the lower enclosure was discovered. " They bear a resemblance," he remarks, " to the form of two massive serpents, which are apparently contending with one another. Their heads are the mounds, which are separated from the bodies by the opening which resembles a ring around the neck. They bend in and out and rise and fall, and appear like two massive green serpents rolling along the summit of this high hill. Their appearance under the overhanging forest trees is very impressive" p. 50. See also Mr. Feet's memoir on a Double- walled Earthwork in Ashtabula County, Ohio, in Smithsonian Report for 1876, pp. 443-4. 52 SIGNAL SYSTEMS MIAMISBURG MOUND. years, while Mr. Hosea thinks several thousand years would be required to produce the numerous little hillocks and depressions which mark the spot where trees have grown, fallen and decayed. Reasoning from other data, we are inclined to the more conser- vative opinion of Judge Force as altogether the safer. Fort Ancient, which could have held a garrison of 60,000 men with their families and provisions, was one of a line of fortifications which extend across the State and served to check the incursion of the savages of the North in their descent upon the Mound- builder country. The second class of military works, which are exceedingly numerous on all the watercourses existing not only on the Ohio and Mississippi, but on all their tributaries, especially on the Muskingum, Scioto, Miami, Wabash, Illinois, Kentucky, and minor streams are mounds which served as outlooks. These were always placed in positions to command extended views, and from which signals could be given to still others of the same character, or probably to settlements remote from the watercourses. A system of these works no doubt formerly existed on the Great Miami River extending north of Dayton, Ohio, southward to the Ohio River, and connected with the great settlement on the site of Cincinnati and with the high bluffs on the Kentucky shore. The great Mound at Miamisburgh, ten miles south of Dayton, formed a part of this chain. This monster mound is sixty-eight feet high and 852 feet in circumference, and may have served the double purpose of a signal station and the base of a small edifice devoted to astronomical or religious purposes. There is little doubt that the Mound-builders in the latter period of their occupancy of this region, when apprehensive of danger from their enemies, employed a system of signal telegraph by which communication was had, through means of the watch- fire or the torch, between localities as distant as those now occupied by Cincinnati and Dayton. Only a few minutes were necessary by means of such a perfected system in which to trans- mit a signal fifty or one hundred miles. Squier and Davis remark on this subject : " There seems to have existed a system of defences extending from the sources of the Allegheny an- 1 WORKS AT NEWARK. 53 Susquehanna in New York, diagonally across the country, through Central and Northern Ohio to the Wabash. Within this range the works which are regarded as defensive are largest and most numerous." The signal system we have reason to believe was employed throughout the entire extent of this range of works. The majority of the enclosures found in the Ohio and Mississippi valleys are presumed not to have been designed for military pur- poses, since the trench is usually inside of the embankment. However, instances of the trench being outside of the parapet occur in Southern Ohio. 1 The most magnificent Mound-builder remains in Ohio are the extensive and intricate works near Newark in Licking County. The survey made by Col. Whit- tlesey and published in the Ancient Monuments of the Missis- sippi Valley, is the most reliable as well as the fullest source of our information concerning their magnitude, though the plan has been corrected considerably by more recent surveys. These works occupy an area of two miles square, and formerly consisted of twelve miles of embankment. The spacious gateways one of which has embankments on both sides measuring thirty-five feet in height from the bottom of the interior trench the labyrinthine system of avenues, the strangely-shaped mounds, one of which resembles a huge bird-track with a middle toe 155 feet in length and the remaining two each 110 feet in length together with the solitude of the ancient forest which entombed this buried city, we confess impressed us with a sense of wonder- ment and that strange perplexity which an insoluble mystery exercises over the mind. We can appreciate the remark of Mr. Squier in his description : " Here covered with the gigantic 1 Dr. Foster, Prc-Historic Races, p. 145, cites a letter from Prof. E. B. Andrews, of the Ohio Geological Survey, describing an earthwork discovered by him in Vinton County with the ditch outside the parapet. In his Report of Explorations of Mounds in Southern Ohio, published in Tenth Ann. Report of tiie Peabody Museum of Am. Arch, and Eth., p. 53 (Camb., 1877), the IVofessor remarks : "On a spur of a ridge about two miles east of Lancaster is an earth Avail, evidently for defence. The ditch is on the outside of the wall, where it should be according to modern ideas of defence. In this particular the earth- work differs from all the circles and so-called 'forts,' either circular or square, j-vhich I have seen, these having the ditch on the inside." MARIETTA WORKS. trees of a primitive forest, the work truly presents a grand and impressive appearance ; and in entering the ancient avenue for the first time, the visitor does not fail to experience a sensation of awe, such as he might feel in passing the portals of an Egyp- tian temple, or in gazing upon the ruins of Petra of the Desert." It is estimated that a force of thousands of men assisted by modern appliances and implements as well as horse-power, which the Mound-builder did not possess, would require several months in which to construct these works. 1 At Marietta a most inter- esting system of works exist, covering an area three-fourths of a mile long and half a mile broad. These occupy the river terrace or second bottom at the confluence cf the Muskingum River with the Ohio, and present analogies with the works further south and with those of Mexico. 2 Two irregular squares inclose fifty and twenty-seven acres respectively. The walls of the larger are between five and six feet high and from SQUARE MOUND, MARIETTA. 1 Foster'* Pre-Historic Races, p. 128 : " No one, I think, can view the com- plicated system of works here displayed and stretching away for miles without arriving at the conclusion that they are the result of an infinite amount of toil expended under the direction of a governing mind, and having in view a definite aim. At this day, with our iron instruments, with our labor-saving machines, and the aid of horse-power, to accomplish such a task would require the labor of many thousand men continued for many months. These are the work of a peo- ple who had fixed habitations, and who, deriving their support in part at least from the soil, could devote their surplus labor to the rearing of such structures. A migratory people dependent upon the uncertainties of the chase for a living, would not have the time, nor would there be the motive, to engage in such. a stupendous undertaking." 5 Foster's Pre-Historic Racea, p. 129. GRADED WAY NEAR PIKETON, OHIO. twenty to thirty feet wide at the base. Within an enclosure are four truncated pyramids or platforms, one of which, the largest, is 188 feet long, 132 feet wide, and only 10 feet high, with a graded way reaching to its summit, as have also two of the other pyramids. No one can look at these structures without seeing the force of Lewis H. Morgan's Pueblo theory, 1 which GRADED WAY NEAR PIKETON, OHIO. makes these mounds or flattened pyramidal elevations the foun- dation for edifices of a perishable nature ; constructed perhaps of hewn wood, but not of a combination of the adobe and wood as he supposes, since no material for such a combination is found in the Ohio valley. 2 The most elevated of the Marietta works is an elliptical mound thirty feet high, enclosed by an embankment. The most recent and satisfactory exploration of mounds in Ohio, was that conducted by Prof. E. B. Andrews for the Pea- 1 North American Review, July, 1876. * Robert Clarke's Pre-Historic Remains at Cincinnati, p. 18 : "I believe I am correct in saying that there is no clay in Ohio which could be applied in this way and resist for any leng-th of time the washing rains and sudden winter changes of temr>erature of our climate." et xeq. 56 ANDREWS' EXPLORATIONS IN SOUTHERN OHIO. body Museum of American Archaeology and Ethnology, and published in the Tenth Annual Report of the Trustees (Cam- bridge, 1877). The mounds examined are in Fail-field, Perry, Athens, and Hocking Counties. In Fairfield County they were all located upon hills and commanded extensive views. Their contents indicated great age, being much decayed. At New Lexington in Perry County, ancient flint diggings, unquestion- ably worked by the Mound-builders, were examined, many of the pits being six to eight feet deep. In Athens County, on Wolf Plain, situated in Athens and Dover Townships, several circles and nineteen conical mounds are found. One of the latter measures forty feet high, with a diameter of 170 feet, and con- tains 437.742 cubic feet. Another, known as the Beard Mound, was excavated, and the interesting fact discovered that in its construction the dirt had been " thrown down in small quan- tities averaging about a peck as if from a basket." Prof. Andrews is of the opinion that the mound was a long time in building, " for we find," he remarks, " at many different levels, the proof that grasses and other vegetation grew rankly upon the earth heap and were buried by the dirt." In a neighboring mound known as the George Connett Mound, under a bed of charcoal five feet below the summit, a skeleton was found in a box or coffin, enclosed by timbers. The upper part of the coffin and middle of the body had been destroyed by fire. A circle of five hundred copper beads was found around the body. A cop- per instrument resembling a calker's chisel, measuring 141 mm. in ^ length, width at flattened end, 52 mm., diameter of cylin- drical part, 20 mm. The instrument was formed from sheet copper, beaten with such care that no traces of the hammer are visible. "The edges arc brought together and united very closely by a slight overlap." Professor Andrews describes and figures a piece of leather ornamented with oval copper beads taken from a point eight feet below the surface of a mound designated as the "school-house mound." The original piece measured eight or ten inches square, but unfortunately fell into the hands of bystanders, who tore it in pieces for relics. The Professor regards the curiosity as of Mound -builder origin, and GRAVE CREEK MOUND. 57 thinks it belonged to an ornamented dress. We cannot detail these interesting explorations here, and must dismiss them with the deduction that in certain cases the cremation of the bodies found in mounds was accidental, caused by the heat penetrating through a layer of earth on which a fire had been kindled. In other instances, the body seems to have been burned intention- ally, and the ashes and charred bones heaped together in the centre of the mound. Some clay and stone tubes of fine work- manship were obtained. The same document above cited con- tains a valuable paper by Mr. Lucian Carr on his interesting exploration of a mound in Lee County, Virginia. Grave Creek Mound, situated twelve miles below Wheeling in West Virginia, is the Monster work of the Ohio Valley. It measures seventy feet in height and nine hundred feet in circum- ference. Its form is that of a truncated cone, the flattened area on the top being fifty feet in diameter. 1 The States of Indiana 2 and Illinois formed with Ohio a portion of the great centre of the Mound-builder country, as the remains found on the water- 1 See A. B. Tomli neon's Grave Creek Mound (1838). Schooler aft in American Ethnological Soc. Transactions, vol. i. Especially Squier and Davis. * Dr. Patton has described some interesting mounds near Vincennes, Indiana. A giant mound, which towers above many others of considerable proportions, is called the Sugar-loaf Mound, and stands on a promontory which over- looks the rich valley of the Wabash. The height of the Sugar-loaf is seventy feet, with a circumference at the base of one thousand feet. Dr. Patton in June, 1873, sank a shaft in this mound to the depth of forty-six feet. The composition of the mound was of siliceous sand, nowhere found in the region except in other mounds. At ten feet below the summit bones were found, but much decayed. Immediately below them was a layer of charcoal and ashes. Thirty feet deeper the same conditions were repeated, and the bones again were so brittle as to render it impossible to save them. A bed of calcined clay was next entered which could not be penetrated with the instruments at command. One mile south of the Sugar-loaf is a pyramidal mound forty-three feet high, with a circumference of 714 feet at the base and a platform on top fifteen feet wide and fifty feet in length. Others of as great proportions are described. Smithsonian Report, 1873, pp. 411 et seq. See also Antiquities of La Porte County, Indiana, by 11. S. Robertson in Smithsonian Report for 1874, pp. 377 et seq. A very low type of cranium was exhumed from one of the mounds in this county. Also see Mounds at Merom and Hutsonmlle on the Wabash, by F. W. Putnam Proceedings of the Boston Soc. of Nat. Hist., vol. xv, 1872. Fifty-nine mounds were examined, and three stone graves discovered. 58 EXPLORATIONS IN TENNESSEE. courses of both States testify. Kankakee, Illinois and Saline dwelling-places of a thrifty and thousands of structures behind tains, the natural limit of the to have served as the eastern The valleys of the Wabash, Rivers were the once populous industrious people who have left them. 1 The Alleghany Moun- great Mississippi basin, appears and south-eastern boundary of PENDANTS AND SINKERS. (Nat. Mus.) Surface Finds. the Mound-builder country.- In Western New York Western Pennsylvania, West Virginia, and in all of Kentucky and ermessee, their remains are numerous and in some instances imposing. In Tennessee especially, the works of the Mound- builders are of the most interesting character. Prof. Joseph the University of New Orleans, has by his thorough 1 For an excellent treatment of this part of the subject, see Foster's Pre- Races, pp. 130-144 inclusive. 59 and recent explorations under the patronage of the Smithsonian Institution, brought to light very interesting materials for the study of the history of this people. The works of defence in the shape of stone forts, by some thought to be peculiar to New York and the lake boundaries, with occasional exceptions in the Ohio Valley, have been found to abound in Coffee and other counties. Scale, 660ft.to inch,. One very perfect example of this kind of fortification, but very imperfectly described and figured by Hay wood, 1 is that known as the stone fort near Manchester, Tenn. This enclosure, con- taining over fifty-four acres, has been minutely described by Prof. Jones. 2 In the accompanying cut the reader will obtain a 1 In Ancient Monuments of Missisxippi Valley. 9 Exploration* of the Aboriginal Remains of Tennessee. tribution No. 259. Oct. 1876, p. 100. Smithsonian Con- RUDE STONE COFFINS. pretty clear idea of the form of this fort. The wall, which varies from four to ten feet in height, is composed of loose rocks gathered apparently from the bed of the streams below, and the vicinity. The ditch shown in the cut at the rear of the works was probably designed to convey water from one creek to the other. The entrance is quite complicated and constitutes the most remarkable feature of the fortification. One peculiarity of burial noticeable in this locality, and one which evidently indicates progression when we come to compare these people with those farther north, is the fact that the ancient race of Tennessee buried their dead in rude stone coffins or cists, constructed of flat pieces of limestone or slaty sandstone which abound in the central portions of the State. In most of the mounds this mode of burial prevailed, but was not confined to them, for outside of the mounds in many enclosures a large number of stone graves occur. Of the class of " Stone-grave Burial Mounds," one situated twelve miles from Nashville, near Brentwood, is worthy of mention. This mound was about forty- five feet in diameter by twelve feet high, and contained one hun- dred skeletons. These were mostly in stone graves, which were constructed in ranges one above another, three or four deep. The lower graves were short and square, containing bones that had apparently been deposited after the flesh had been removed. The upper graves were full length and contained remains in which the bones occupied their natural relation to each other. The workmanship both of the mound and stone cists was of the most perfect character. The lids of the upper stone cists were so arranged as to present a perfectly rounded, sloping rock surface. The mound was situated on the eastern slope of a beautiful hill, covered with a heavy growth of the native forest. In a large and carefully constructed stone tomb, Prof. Jones discovered the skeleton of an aged individual of immense length, having toothless jaw bones. In a grave occupied by a skeleton of a female, a small compartment or stone box was found near the head, separated from the main coffin by stone slabs, in which was the skeleton of an infant. It should be added that in the square or short graves so often met with, the RUDE STONE COFFINS. 61 skull was placed in the centre and the other bones arranged around it. 1 Numerous stone graves not covered by mounds were found on the Cumberland Kiver opposite the mouth of Lick Branch, surrounding a chain of four mounds. A similar graveyard was found on the same bank of the Cumberland, a mile and a half farther down. Others were met with on White Creek, nine miles from Nash- ville, at Sycamore in Cheatham County; at CLAY IMAGE FROM A STONE GRAVE IN BURIAL MOUND NEAR BRENTWOOD, TENNESSEE. Brentwood, in White County near Sparta, and along the tributaries of the Cumberland and Tennessee Rivers at short intervals. At Oldtown on the Big Harpeth, is an extensive and remarkable collection of stone graves. All these burial grounds seem to be those of the people who constructed the mounds, for most of the mounds examined contained stone 1 Antiquities of Tennessee, p. 39, and other places. 62 TEMPLE BASE NEAR NASHVILLE. graves, not in their upper strata, but on the level of the sur- rounding land. A mound opposite Nashville, on the east bank of the Cumberland River, of great interest, was examined. Jones is convinced that it formerly served as the site or base of a temple Its dimensions were one hundred feet in diameter by only ten feet high. In the centre of the mound and only three feet from its surface the Professor uncovered a large sacrificial vase or altar, forty-three inches in diameter, composed of a mix- ture of clay and river-shells. The rim of this flat earthen vessel or sacrificial altar was three inches in height and appeared SHELL ORNAMENT FROM THE BREAST OF A SKELETON FOUND IN A CAREFULLY CONSTRUCTED STONE COFFIN IN A MOUND NEAR NASHVILLE, TENN. mathematically circular. The surface of the " altar " was cov- ered by a layer of ashes about one inch in thickness. The antlers and jawbone of a deer were found resting on the surface of the altar, and it is probable that part of the animal had been consumed as a sacrifice. The whole had been carefully covered with three feet of earth and the ashes preserved. In this mound rude sarcophagi were ranged around this sacred centre with the heads toward the altar and the feet toward the circumference of the circle, while the directions of the bodies were those of radii. Those bodies near the altar were ornamented with numerous beads of sea-shell and bone. In a carefully constructed stone OLDTOWN, TENNESSEE. 63 sarcophagus, in which the face of the skeleton was turned toward the setting sun, the beautiful shell ornament shown in the cut, measuring 4.4 inches in diameter, was found lying on the breast-bone of the skeleton. It was made from some large shell derived from the sea-coast. Of the numerous interesting places examined by Prof. Jones, the site of Oldtovvn, on the Big Har- peth River, about six miles south-west of Franklyn, Tennessee, is worthy of special attention. The plan of the works and their general dimensions will be seen in the cut. At present, the Scab, 330JUoinch PLAN OF OLDTOWN WORKS. crescent-shaped wall of 2470 feet in extent is but from two to six feet in height, having been reduced to its present condition by the plowshare. Thirty years ago it is said to have, been so steep that it was impossible to ride a horse over it. Within the enclosure are two pyramidal mounds ; the larger is one hundred and twelve by sixty-five feet and eleven feet high, and the smaller, seventy by sixty feet by nine feet high ; also a small burial mound measuring thirty by twenty feet and 2.5 feet hi^h. Another burial mound is covered by the residence of the owner, Mr. Thomas Brown. Many curiously-shaped clay vessels were obtained at these works l>y the explorers. Some of the vases were fashioned into effigies of frogs and various animals, and one 64 OLDTOWN ART. vase obtained by Mr. Brown in excavating for the foundation for his residence, had a neck terminating in two human heads. Some of the vessels from Oldtown are figured m the cut. STONE PIPE, MURFREESBORO, TENN. % NATURAL SIZE. POTTERY FROM OLDTOWN, TENN. The art of painting seems to have been extensively practised by the mound people of Tennessee, not only in the decoration of pottery, but in representing ideal conceptions, which they spread out in extensive pictures upon the smooth faces of rocky PROFESSOR PUTNAM'S EXPLORATIONS. 65 walls overhanging the rivers. The material generally used was red ochre. Prof. Jones says : " The painting representing the sun on the rocks overhanging the Big Harpeth River, about three miles below the road which crosses this stream and con- nects Nashville and Charlotte, can be seen for a distance of four miles, and it is probable that the worship- pers of the sun assembled before this high place for the performance of their sacred rites." 1 The Professor's vast collection of relics in stone and clay, including several images, we cannot here describe. We refer the reader to the Memoir itself. The Professor has clearly shown that the Mound- builder people and the Indians were distinct, and has set at rest a question upon which some few doubts were still entertained by a certain school of Archaeologists, which has really never been very strong. The connection with or identity of the Mound-builders and the Toltics or the same family of people is also shown satisfactorily. We will add that the Professor is disposed to consider the Natchez as the connecting link between the Mound-builders and the Nahuas. We regard the Memoir one of the most impor- tant which has ever appeared on the subject of mound explora- tion. The rich collection of crania will be referred to in a future chapter. In September, 1877, Prof. F. W. Putnam and Mr. Edwin Curtiss, also a party under Major Powell excavated a large num- ber of mounds and stone graves, mostly in the neighborhood of Nashville, Tennessee. The results were substantially the same as those obtained by Prof. Jones. Prof. Putnam found within an earthwork near Lebanon, in Wilson County^ sixty miles east of Nashville, what he considers to be the remains of dwell- BLACK VASE FROM AN ABO- RIGINAL CEMETERY, NINE MILES FROM NASHVILLE. Antiquities of Tennessee, p. 138. PROFESSOR PUTNAM'S EXPLORATIONS. PAINTED JAR FROM CHILD'S GRAVE (TENNESSEE). (Prof. Putnam's Exploration.) ings of the Mound-builders. There were circular ridges of earth varying from a few inches to a little over three feet in height, with diameters ranging from ten to fifty feet. Within these enclosures, a few inches below the surface, hard floors, upon which fires had been made, were discovered. Under these floors, in many instances, infants and children had been buried, while the adults had been interred in a neighboring mound. Accom- panying the skeletons of the children, many beautiful vessels of strange and artistic forms were found (cuts of three of these were PROFESSOR PUTNAM'S EXPLORATIONS. kindly furnished by Prof. Putnam for this work), all evincing the tenderness with which the offspring of this people were regarded. Prof. Putnam examined nineteen of the earth-circles, which he adds, " proved to my satisfaction that the ridges were DISH FROM CHILD'S GRAVE (TENNESSEE). (Prof. Putnam's Exploration.) formed by the decay of the walls of a circular dwelling. * * * These houses had probably consisted of a frail circular structure, the decay of which would only leave a slight elevation, tli formation of the ridge being assisted by the refuse from the house." J Colonies of Mound-builders seem to have passed the great natural barrier into North Carolina and left remains in Marion County, while still others penetrated into South Carolina and built on the Wateree River. In March, 1873, Mr. Jas. R. Page examined several mounds in Washington and Issaquena Coun- ties in the State of Mississippi. One mound explored in Wash- 1 Eleventh Annual Report ofPeabody Museum, pp. 348-300. Cambridge, 1878. See also Antiquities of Jackson County, Tenn., by Rev. Joshua Hale, in Smithso- nian Reports for 1874, p. 384. Very interesting and valuable explorations have teen conducted in Tennessee by Mr. E. 0. Dunning for the Peabody Museum of Am. Arch, and Eth. See Reports, 3d, p. 7 ; 4th, p. 7 ; 5th, p. 11. MOUND COLONIES. JAR FROM CHILD'S GRAVE (TENNESSEE). (Prof. Putnam's Exploration.) ington County on the old bank of the Mississippi Kiver, was a truncated cone eighty feet in diameter by forty feet high. A mound in the neighborhood, only eleven feet high, yielded rich returns for the labors of excavation. A white oak on its summit measured thirty-six inches in diameter. This mound yielded twelve skeletons with their crania. The group was in a sitting MISSISSIPPI MOUNDS. 69 posture around a circle, with their faces looking toward its centre. Directly in front of the mouth of each skeleton were placed two or three vessels of pottery, beautifully ornamented with etchings and graceful lines. The object of the vessels, placed in such near proximity to the mouths of the buried remains, SOOfl.lo I In WORKS IN WASHINGTON COUNTY, Miss. can only be conjectured. We regret that no measurements of the crania are given, and what is more, we deplore the loss of most of the crania in the course of their transportation. 1 Mr. W. Marshall Anderson, of Circleville, Ohio, examined Mounds in Issaquena County, Miss., with interesting results ; in one mound 1 Mr. Jas. R. Page's Results of Investigations of Indian Mounds, in Transac- tions of St Louis Acad. of Science, vol. iii, p. 22G, and copied in Cincinnati Quar. Journal of Science, Oct. 1875, vol. ii, No. 4, pp. 371 et seq. 70 THE SERPENT SYMBOL. opened, not far from its outer edge, three skeletons were found buried in a standing position, as though they had acted as the guards of a more distinguished person deposited in the centre. Penetrating the mound still farther by means of a trench, Mr. Anderson reached a large deposit of ashes and burnt earth. Near the centre of the mound and five feet above the level of the earth, upwards of twenty-five unbroken specimens of fine pottery were discovered. At the very centre three individuals had been buried apparently in great state, with all the insignia of their important positions in life. These were ornaments, urns, vases, beads, and arrow-points ; while adjoining the heads of each were food and drinking vessels. Not far removed from these, two skeletons were found with bowls placed upon their heads like helmets. Mr. Anderson is the possessor of a very remarkable stone disk obtained for him by Dr. Robinson from a Issaquena mound near Lake Washington, Miss. The disk is nearly eight and a half inches in diameter and three-quarters of an inch thick, of fine-grained sandstone. The device which it bears upon its face is composed of two entwined rattlesnakes. A trifling ornamental border is graven on the reverse side of the disk. When found it was broken in two pieces. Mr. Anderson, in comparing its strange device to the Aztec Calendar Stone, remarks : " Here are the eighteen pipes of the border corres- ponding to the eighteen months of the year, but the twenty days of the month and the five intercalaries are not to be found. The thirteen hieroglyphical figures, and the four zodiacal signs, which as multiples give the fifty-two years of the Aztec cycle, are also absent on the Mississippi stone." ! The serpent-symbol appears to have played its part among the Mound-builders, as well as in Mexico and Central America. The great serpent of Adams County, Ohio, is the most extensive delineation of the all-important symbol on the continent. Out of eighteen engraved circular plates made of the shell of the Pyrula and taken from Brakebill and Lick Creek Mounds in East Tennessee (and now deposited in the Peabody Museum of Archeology) thirteen bear 1 In Cincinnati Quar. Journal of Science, Oct. 1875, p. 378. Also see Wil- son's Pre-Historic Man, vol. i, p. 318. MOUNDS OF THE LOWER MISSISSIPPI VALLEY. 71 the device of a rattlesnake. In one of the mounds of " Mound City," Boss County, Ohio, several small tablets representing the rattlesnake were unearthed, while other mounds in the same locality yielded pipes bearing the same representation. 1 On the Southern Mississippi, in the area embraced between the termination of the Cumberland Mountains near Florence and Tuscumbia in Alabama and the mouth of Big Black River, this people left numerous works, many of which were of a remarkable character. 2 The whole region bordering on the tributaries of the Tombigbee, the country through which the Wolf River flows ABORIGINAL SHUTTLE-LIKE TABLETS. (Nat. Mus.) Surface Finds. and that watered by the Yazoo River and its affluents, was densely populated by the same people who built mounds in the Ohio Valley. Mr. Fontaine describes the mounds of this region and of the Tennessee River Valley as being most frequently of the truncated pyramidal type, and refers to one (seen by him in 1847) seventy feet high, covering an acre of ground. It is remarkable that the entire valley of the great river from Cairo to the mouth of Pointe a la Hache, fifty miles below New Orleans, is thickly studded with mounds. 3 As at Cahokia the 1 See Wilson's Pre-Historic Man, vol. i, p. 317. 2 Fontaine's How the World was Peopled, p. 278, and Foster's Pre-Historic Races, pp. Ill et seq. 3 How the World was Peopled, p. 278. 72 ALABAMA AND GEORGIA MOUNDS. Monarch Mound occupied a space equal to six acres, so at Ssltzertown, Mississippi, we have another immense mound cover- ing nearly the same area. Its dimensions are : length, about six hundred feet ; breadth, four hundred feet at the base ; height, forty feet, with a summit nearly four acres in area, reached by means of a graded way. The structure lies with its greatest length nearly due east and west. Upon the platform summit are three conical mounds, one at each end and the third in the centre. The mound at the western extremity of the summit rises to a height of nearly forty feet, while the one at the oppo- site extreme does not fall far short of the same altitude. This would give a total height of eighty feet above the level of the base. Both of these mounds are truncated. Eight other mounds of minor proportions are observable. The most remarkable feature connected with this mound is a wall of sun-dried bricks, built two feet thick, as its support on the northern side. These were filled with grass rushes and leaves, while some of the bricks of great size used in angular tumuli which mark the corners of the mound, retain the impressions of human hands. 1 The Mound- builders were certainly numerous in the Gulf States east of the Mississippi. On the Etowah River in Alabama a mound seventy- five feet high and twelve hundred feet in diameter at the base, has a graded avenue leading to its flattened summit. It has close affinities to the Mexican and Yucatan mounds. 2 M. F. Stephenson describes a group of ten mounds near Cartersville, Georgia, on the Etowah River, the principal one of which is eighty feet high and one hundred and fifty feet square on the top. A stone idol, gold beads, mica mirrors, translucent quartz beautifully wrought, and many relics of interest were here dis- covered. He also describes three chambers hewn out of the solid rock at the falls of Little Eiver, near the Alabama line ; while at Nacooche the crest of a conical hill was cut off at fifty feet from its base, leaving a platform top with an area 1 Squier and Davis' s A ncient Monuments, pp. 117 et seq. Foster's Pre Historic Races, p. 112. 8 E. Cornelius in Sillimaris Journal, vol. i, p. 223, and Foster's Pre-Historic Races, p. 122. PYRAMID OF KOLEE MOKEE. 73 of an acre and a half. Two sides are quite precipitous, but the others are protected by a ditch and wall. Two other instances of the stone wall are mentioned. First at Yond Mountain, four thousand feet high of solid granite, and perpendicular on all sides except a small space which is protected by a stone wall of arti- ficial construction. The second instance is quite similar, occur- ring at Stone Mountain, which reaches a height of 2360 feet. 1 These natural eminences no doubt were utilized for the purposes of worship or observation, just as many natural hills in Mexico were graded and shaped symmetrically to serve similar uses. Wm. McKinley, Esq., has described and surveyed additional works in Georgia of quite a remarkable character, on Sapelio Island in Mclntosh County and on Dry Creek in Sacred Grove, Early County. But the most lofty work of all, the giant of the mounds, is the pyramid of Kolee Mokee in the same county, reaching a height of ninety-five feet and having a circumference at its bass of 1128 feet. Its form is that of a parallelogram, 350 feet long and 214 wide. The plane on the summit measures 181 feet in length by 82 feet in width. 2 In Florida the works of the Mound-builders have been extensively examined by Prof. Jeffries Wyman, to whose labors we shall refer in the next chap- ter. Dr. A. Mitchell made some interesting explorations in 1848 on Amelia Island, and was rewarded by the recovery of some well-marked mound crania. 3 Keturning to the confluence of the Missouri with the Missis- sippi, the point at which we left the western boundary of the Mound-builder country in order to treat the characteristics of its central region, we find mounds, as we previously stated, in great numbers in the neighborhood of St. Louis. In the valley of the St. Francis River, mounds that have been explored have yielded 1 Smithsonian Report, 1870, and Foster's Pre-Eistoric, Races, p. 123. A further description of works on Etowah River in Bartow Co., Qa., by Mr. Stephenson in Smithsonian Report for 1872, p. 421. A full and elaborate treat- ment is also that by Charles C. Jones, Jr., entitled Monumental Remains of Georgia. Savannah, 1861. 12mo, pp. 118. * Smithsonian Report, 1872. 3 Smithsonian Report, 1874, pp. 390 et seq. 74 GREAT MOUND, WASHINGTON COUNTY, MISSOURI. many rich relics, artistic water vessels, vases and statuettes. In Green County, Missouri, N. Lat. 37 20' and 16 Long, west of Washington City, is a very remarkable truncated conical mound which has only been externally surveyed. This mound is 60 feet high, 3W feet in diameter at the base, and 130 feet in diameter on the top. It is surrounded by a trench (except about twenty feet at the north) about two hundred feet wide and four feet deep. On the north the excavation is seven or eight feet deep. 1 These trenches served a double purpose that of furnish- ing material for the construction of the mound, and when com- pleted, of providing an impassable moat filled with water, that neither enemies nor the rabble might approach the sacred mount. 2 1 These measurements were carefully made by Dr. S. H. Headlee, of St. James, Missouri, and communicated to the editors of the Cincinnati Quar. Jour, of Science, published in January number, 1875, pp. 94-5. - A sensational description of this mound which appeared in the St. Louis Times is used by Mr. S. M. Hosea as the basis of an article on Sacrificial Mounds in the above number of the Cincinnati Quarterly Jour, of Science, p. 62. The account, contains some wonderful statements, which are evidently made by some unscientific person, and hence are utterly worthless. Although, judging from internal evidence, we have little faith in the reliableness of the correspondent, we give a paragraph for what it is worth : " The approach or causeway which leads across the trench from the north is ten feet in width. Ascending from this causeway to the summit of the mound are the remains of a rude flight of stairs, constructed originally of roughly-hewn stones. Most of these steps are now displaced, and quite a number have rolled down into the trench below, but there is unmistakable evidence that they were at one time arranged in regular order of ascent, and could doubtless be again replaced in position by an intelli- gent architect." "By a series of investigations, I found that about a foot beneath the surface there was a regular solid platform of stone covering the entire top of the mound. This platform, though constructed by rude and unmechanical hands, is placed in position with a precision and firmness that might well defy the ravages of the elements in all coming ages. About twelve feet from the northern edge of the mound, and directly on a line with the approach and stairway, I noticed a very perceptible elevation of the earth, covering an area of about twenty by fifteen feet ; and driving a pick into the elevated ground, the point struck upon solid rock a few inches below the surface. f Pushing our work, we soon unearthed a piece of workmanship that an antiquarian would have worked a week to bring to light. The newly-discovered curiosity consisted of a flat rock twelve feet long, ten feet wide, and eleven inches thick. The centre of the stone was hollowed to a depth of six inches, with a margin of about one foot around the edge." "At the south end of the MOUNDS AT NEW MADRID, MISSOURI. 75 In Phillips County, Prof. Cox discovered an ancient fortification near Helena, built like a part of the Seltzertown mound, of sun- dried bricks ; stems and leaves of the cane were used instead of straw in making the bricks. 1 Professor Swallow, in company with a number of scientific gentlemen, opened a large mound in Lewis' Prairie, west of New Madrid, Missouri (in December, 1856), in which he found a great collection of earthen dishes and vases. The mound was elliptical in form, measuring 900 feet in periphery at the base, 570 feet at the top and twenty feet in height. The remarkable feature of the mound was that it contained a room formed of poles, lathed with split cane and plastered with clay both inside and out, forming a solid mass. " Over this room was built the earthwork of the mound, so that when it was completed the room was in its centre. The earthwork was then coated with the plaster, and over all nature formed a soil. This mud plaster- ing was left rough on the outside of the room, but smooth on the inside, which was painted with red ochre."* Some of the plastering was burned as red and hard as brick, while other parts were only sun-dried. Professor Swallow believes the mounds of the region to be very ancient. On mounds and neighbor- ing embankments a sycamore tree twenty-eight feet in circum- ference, three feet above the ground, a black-walnut twenty-six feet in circumference, a white ash twelve feet and a chestnut oak eleven feet in circumference were observed. In addition to these evidences of age, the Professor states that six feet of strati- fied sands and clays have formed around the mounds since they were deserted. (See Eighth A nnual Report of Peabody Museum, pp. 10 et seq. Cambridge, 1875.) stone, a round hole five inches deep and four in diameter was drilled. Amongst the dirt taken out of this place hewn in the stone, was a large fossil tooth and a piece of small broken stone column, and several bits of pottery ware." This description is very sui^e-tive of the Mexican Temple or Teocalli, but unfor- tunately for the facts, Dr. Hcadlee, who made the measurements given in Mu- test a short time subsequently, failed to find any certain evidences that cillicr a stairway or temple had existed on the mound. 1 /Ay/'//-/ on the Oeolof/i/ <>f .1 //>///. /*, vol. ii, p. 414 ciled by Foster. 5 See on chambered mounds similar to Kn-lish barrows. Curtiss in Pea body Mutseum Reports, vol. ii, p.717; Broadhead in Smitlixoiiinn, Report for 1879, pp. 350 ct aeq. (with cuts). 76 MR. CONANT'S INVESTIGATIONS. Mr. A. J. Conant, in a very able paper published in the Transactions of the St. Louis Academy of Sciences for April 5, 1876, has more fully described the mound works near New Madrid. On the western bank of the Bayou St. John, partly in a cypress swamp covered with heavy timber and partly on adja- cent prairie land, an earthwork encloses an area of about fifty acres. In this enclosure are three large mounds, one of which is pyramidal in form and still has traces of a graded way. An ancient well is discernible near it. A circular mound at the opposite end of the enclosure is estimated by Mr. Conant to have afforded a place of burial for a thousand individuals. The bodies were buried with their heads pointing toward the centre of the mound. A gourd-shaped vase, a small jug or drinking vessel, and an earthen pan or platter was found with each skeleton. The mouths of the vases were fashioned into the form of the head of some bird or the figure of some animal or of a human female. In depressions about three feet deep, within the enclosure, remains of burnt clay ovens were found. Fire-places were disclosed, as well as fragments of earthen vessels capable of holding ten or twelve gallons. The veritable kitchens of the Mound-builders, with their furniture, seem to have been brought to light. In front of the enclosure and pro- jecting out into the bayou, are tongues of land about thirty feet long by ten or fifteen feet in width, and about the same distance apart, " resembling upon a small scale the wharves of a seaport town." Mr. Conant pronounces them artificial, and that when employed by these builders, the present cypress swamp was the channel of a river. The multitude of mound works which are scattered over the entire south-eastern portion of Missouri indi- cate that the region " was once inhabited by a population so numerous, that in comparison its present occupants are only as the scattered pioneers of a newly-settled country." : "Within the State, from Pulaski County to Arkansas, in all the little valleys which wind in and out among the flint-crowned hills of the Ozarks, are sen what may be termed garden mounds. These are elevated about two or three feet above the natural surface of the land, and are from fifteen to fifty t m diameter, varying thus in size according to the amount of richer soil REMAINS IN THE SOUTH-WEST. 77 Prof. C. G. Forshey in Foster's Pre-Historic Races, presents most valuable information relative to the mounds in the south- west. His observations convince us that the State of Louisiana and the valleys of the Arkansas and Bed Kivers were not only the most thickly populated wing of the Mound-builder domain, but DISCOIDAL STONES. (Nat. Mus.) Central figure, upper line, from Illinois Mound. also furnish us with remains presenting affinities with the great works of Mexico so striking that no doubt can longer exist that the same people were the architects of both. He describes works, some of them of immense proportions, on the Mississippi fifty which could be scraped together. Their presence may always be detected in fields of growing grain by its more luxuriant growth and deeper green." A. J. Conant in the Transactions cited above, p. 354. The same writer has treated the subject more fully in a recent work published at St. Louis, entitled, "The Commonwealth of Missouri." 78 LOUISIANA MOUNDS. miles above Vicksburg ; <5h Walnut Bayou ; the south-west bend of Lake St. Joseph, and at Trinity in the parish of Cata- hoola, Louisiana. On the east bank of the Little River, a couple of miles above its mouth, where it empties into Lake Ocalohoola, stands a bluff walled with roughly hewn stone. The same writer observed a mound near Natchez twenty-five feet high, standing isolated in a swamp. This mound is one among many in dif- ferent parts of the lower Mississippi region surmounted by com' paratively younger trees than are found on the remains farther north. Works occur in the Atchafalaya basin, in the rear of Baton Rouge, on the uplands of Lake Pontchartrain and on the banks of Bayou Gros Tete. A remarkable group of truncated pyramids, peculiarly Mexican in their style of architecture, exist in Madison Parish, Louisiana, and are figured in Squier and Davis and copied by Foster. 1 It is needless to discuss the fact that the works of the Mound-builders exist in considerable num- bers in Texas, extending across the Rio Grande into Mexico, establishing an unmistakable relationship as well as actual union between the truncated pyramids of the Mississippi Valley and the Tocalli of Mexico and the countries further south. 2 There can be no doubt as to the unity of the origin of the works in both countries. There are evidences also that the most recent works of Louisiana and Texas do not compare in antiquity with any found in the Ohio Valley, showing it to be altogether proba- ble that the Mound-builders occupied the Lower Mississippi Valley and Gulf coast for a considerable period after they were driven from the northern and central region by their enemies. 3 1 Ancient Monuments, p. 115, and Pre-Historic Races, p. 120. 2 Baldwin's Ancient America, p. 72. 8 Prof. Forshey, in Foster's Pre-Historic Races, pp. 121, 122, remarks: 1 There is a class of mounds west of the Mississippi Delta and extending from the Gulf to the Arkansas and above, and westward to the Colorado in Texas, that are to me, after thirty years' familiarity with them, entirely inexplicable. In my Geological Reconnoissance of Louisiana in 1841-2, 1 made a pretty thorough report upon them. I afterwards gave a verbal description of their extent and character before the New Orleans Academy of Sciences. These mounds lack every evidence of artificial construction based on implements or other human vestigia. They are nearly all round, none angular, and have an elevation ARCHITECTURAL PROGRESS. 79 Several recent writers, with no more proof than that obsidian from Mexico has been found in the mounds, have confidently expressed the belief that the Mound-builders entered the Missis- sippi Valley and the Central Region from the South. This was based also on the assumption that no remains were found in the North-west. It, however, is proper to note here the marks of architectural progression observable in the geographical distri- bution of ancient works. Men all around the world have been mound or pyramid builders. To attempt to demonstrate this well-known fact to an intelligent reader by citing the customs of antiquity and the works of the present great Asiatic nations, would seem little less than pedantry rather than the work of serious investigation. The religious idea in man, whether observed in the darkest heathenism or partially enlightened civilization, has always associated a place of sanctuary with the conditions of elevation and separateness. It matters not whether you apply the rule to the practices of the most obscure antiquity, where a hill or natural eminence was the sanctuary of an idol, the residence of a god, or examine the motives which prompt hemispheroidal of one foot to five feet, and a diameter from thirty feet to one hundred and forty feet. They are numbered by millions, In many places, in pine forests and upon the prairies, they are to be seen nearly tangent to each other as far as the eye can reach, thousands being visible from an elevation of a few feet. On the gulf-marsh margin, from the Vermillion to the Colorado, they appear barely visible, often flowing into one another, and only elevated a few inches above the common land. A few miles interior they rise to two and even four feet in height. The largest I ever saw were perhaps one hundred and forty feet in diameter and five feet high. These were in Western Louisiana. Some of them had abrupt sides, though they are nearly all of gentle slopes. There is ample testimony that the pine trees of the present forests antedate these mounds. The material for their construction is like that of the vicinity everywhere, and often there is a depression in close proximity to the elevation." \Ve can make no conjecture concerning: the use of those mounds described by Prof. Forshey, except to suggest that they in all probability served as founda- tions for dwellings in a low country, which at that time may have been moister and more marshy than at present. If such was the case, the whole region must have presented the appearance of a continuous community instead of the proper proportion of country and village. This crowded state of affairs could have been produced by the pressure from enemies in the north, and the lack of agri- cultural lands evidently was sufficient alone to cause a migration to the south. 80 OBSERVATIONS OF PLACES OF SANCTUARY. the erection of the dome of a St. Paul or a St. Peter's, or coming nearer home, analyze the reasons for the construction of the ordinary church spire, the same inexplicable intuition is found at the bottom of them all. The simple mound so common in the northern and central region of the United States, represents probably the first attempts at the imitation of nature in pro- viding a place of worship. In the absence of hills and natural eminences on great plains like the prairies of the North-west (for instance in such cases as are cited on pages 28 and 29), nothing would be more natural than the construction of an arti- ficial hillock, especially if the elements and nature were the objects of worship. The next step might have been again a copy or an imitation, but instead of choosing a subject from inanimate nature, an advance is made in the artistic scale, and the animal kingdom furnishes not only one but varied models for reproduction. The custom among savage tribes of personi- fying the deity, of dressing him up in some form, tangible and visible, was especially characteristic of the mythology of the Nahua nations of Mexico. It is not necessary to go to Egypt, or India, or China to find animals of various kinds dedicated to and associated with the national gods, for in the Maya and Nahua mythologies, as well as in the traditions of some of the wild tribes of the Pacific coast, the serpent, the coyote, the beaver and the buzzard play an active part. The erection of religious structures representing animals no doubt sacred to the Mound-builders, was carried on to a remarkable extent in Wis- consin. These strange works probably indicate the second step in their scale of architectural progression. In the Ohio Valley, while the ordinary mound is found in great numbers, and a few instances of animal mounds occur, three new architectural fea- tures present themselves in marked prominence, all of which are artistically in advance of those existing in the North and North- west. These are the enclosures, the truncated mounds, and principally the truncated pyramids, all of which are a departure from the strict imitation of nature, and exhibit the gradual growth of the architectural idea and the outcropping of the notion of utility. South of the Ohio Valley the animal mounds CLASSIFICATION OF MOUNDS. 81 disappear altogether and the truncated mounds grow less com- mon, while the truncated pyramid, the highest artistic form, with its complicated system of graded ways and its nice geomet- rical proportions, becomes the all predominant type of structure. In the Lower Mississippi Valley, in some cases, as we have observed, dried brick were used in the walls and angles of ..^^MB^^^te. STONE PLATES. NATURAL SIZE. (Nat. Mus.) The left and central figures from an Alabama Mound. pyramids of the most perfect type. Stone was also employed in a few instances. Here we find the transition to Southern Mexico complete. No break exists in the architectural chain. Squier and Davis (and Foster as well as most other writers have followed their example) classified the works of the Mound- builders as follows : f For Defence. I. ENCLOSURES \ Sacred. [ Miscellaneous. II. MOUNDS r Of Sacrifice. F r Temple-Sites. | Of Sepulture. I Of Observation. To this some have added mounds for residence. It does not fall within the scope of this work to treat of the specific character and uses of the works of the Mound-builders, 6 2 CLASSIFICATION OF MOUNDS. but rather to note their extent and indications of age with rela- tion to their bearing on the antiquity of man in this country. Some of the arts and manufactures of the Mound-builders are set forth in the illustrations interspersed throughout the chap- ter. 1 A few of the cuts figure objects found upon the surface. Yet it is not improbable that a due proportion of these objects were of Mound-builder origin. The domestic arts appear the most advanced of any among this ancient people. Pottery of respectable quality and of va- ried patterns is abundant among their remains. Coarse cloth woven of vegetable fibre, and in some instances partly made of hair, has been discovered in mounds in several localities. Shell and copper beads for the purposes of ornamentation were made in great numbers. Copper axes of good quality have occasion- ally been exhumed. Copper and bone needles with well-drilled eyes were made by them. They wove baskets and coarse mat- ting. They carved pipes in stone or moulded them in clay, some- times in fantastic forms, while again they fashioned them with rare skill into the perfect effigies of animals and birds, or possi- bly ornamented them with likenesses of their own faces. With 1 A number of the cuts in this chapter illustrative of the Arts of the Mound-builders, are copies of those used by Dr. Charles Rau in his Cata- logue of the Archaiological Collection of the National Museum, Washington, Smithsonian Contribution No. 287 (1876), granted me through the courtesy of Professor Henry. A few also are from the memoir by Prof. Jos. Jones on the Aboriginal Remains of Tennessee. Smithsonian Contribution No. 259 (1876), For an able classification of these Mound Relics (a work which I could not undertake in a volume not devoted exclusively to the Mound-builders), I refer the reader to Rau's Memoir above cited, as being altogether the most satisfac- tory attempt of the kind of which I have any knowledge. For a classification of works in Ohio, see Antiquities of Ohio : Report of the Committee of the State Archaeological Society to the Centennial Commission of Ohio (Columbus, Ohio, 1877, 8vo). The incompleteness of the work is to be regretted. Ohio, out of its vast fund of material, certainly ought to furnish a more satisfactory contri- bution to the subject of archfeology. The work comprises seven chapters, of which the last is the least satisfactory of all, for while bearing the title " Loca- tion of Ancient Earthworks in Ohio," it enumerates only one hundred and sixteen out of the ten thousand mound-works in the State. Still the memoir is not without value. Its chapters on Stone Relics, Copper Relics, and Insignia and Ornaments are comparatively thorough. ALTAR MOUNDS. 83 the exception of a few observations on the altar and sepulchral mounds, we refrain from a further treatment of the works above classified, as having no particular bearing on the question in hand, and refer the reader to the works of Squier and Davis, and also to that of Dr. Foster, already often quoted. Of the Altar or Sacrificial Mounds, the first-named authors remark : The general PESTLES AND MULLERS. (Nat. Mus.) Surface Finds. characteristics of this class of mounds are : 1. That they occur only within the vicinity of the enclosures or sacred places ; 2. That they are stratified; 3. That they contain symmetrical altars of burned clay or stone, on which were deposited various remains which in all cases have been more or less subjected to the action of fire. 1 The same authors present the following 1 Ancient Monuments, p. 143. Prof. E. B. Andrews has shown that the supposed uniformity of stratification in altar mounds is a fallacy. In many instances the earth has been dumped together indiscriminately. ALTAR MOUNDS. section of a mound examined by them at Mound City, near Chillicothe, Ohio, which is a fair sample of the usual stratifica- tion observed in altar mounds. 1 The altar which this mound contained was a parallelogram measuring 8 x 10 feet at its base and 4x6 feet at its top. It was only eighteen inches in height, and contained a basin with a dip of nine inches. In this basin SECTION OF ALTAR MOUND. (After Squier and Davis.) were found fine ashes, fragments of pottery and shell beads. A reference to the figure shows that the sand-stratum is semicir- cular, with its extremities resting on the outer sides of the altar. The skeleton shown in the figure designates a point three feet below the apex of the mound where two well-preserved skeletons were found. The strata were disturbed for their burial evidently 1 Ancient Monuments, p. 148, the following general description is given : " The altars or basins found in these mounds are almost invariably of burned clay, although a few of stone have been discovered. They are symmetrical, but not of uniform size or shape. Some are round, others elliptical, and others square or parallelograms. Some are small, measuring barely two feet across, while others are fifty feet long by twelve or fifteen feet wide. The usual dimensions are from five to eight feet. All appear to have been modelled of fine clay brought to the spot from a distance, and they rest on the original sur- face of the earth. In a few instances a layer or small elevation of sand had been laid down, upon which the altar was formed. The height of the altars, never, theless, seldom exceeds a foot or twenty inches above the adjacent level. The clay of which they are composed is usually burned hard, sometimes to the depth of ten, fifteen, and even twenty inches. This is hardly to be explained by any degree or continuance of heat, though it is manifest that in some cases the heat was intense. On the other hand, a number of these altars have been noticed which are very slightly burned ; and such, it is a remarkable fact, are destitute of remains," CONTENTS OP OHIO MOUNDS. 85 at a considerable period after the construction of the mound. This is a fair example of the " intrusive burial " practised in the mounds by Red Indians. The same authors found some of these altars rich in relics ; one especially in the vicinity of the above- described mound contained nearly two hundred pipes carved in stone. Also a considerable number of pearl and shell beads and copper ornaments covered with silver. It is quite probable that the copper was from their Lake Superior mines, as they alone are known to yield deposits of silver with copper. The same pecu- liarity was observed with refer- ence to the copper ornaments and implements found in the Marietta works. The pipes secured in this mound were much calcined by heat, and considerable copper had been fused in the basin of the altar. In some of the mounds examined large collections were obtained, and in some instances, articles made of obsidian, which it is believed could be pro- cured nowhere nearer than the Mexican mountains of Cerro Grordo, or the region west of the Eocky Mountains. 1 The evidences are abundant that some mysterious rites were performed at the altar mounds ; cremation only may have been practised, but we fear that even more awful and heart-sickening ceremonies took place upon these altars as well as upon the high temple sites in which human victims may have been offered to appease the elements or the sun or moon by their death agonies. What splendid ceremonial, what mystic rites administered by a national priesthood in the presence of a devout multitude may have accompanied these horrible sacrifices, are beyond even the limits of conjecture. Besides cremation, inhumation was also VASE FROM AN OHIO MOUND. > Charles Rau in Smithsonian Report, 1872, p. 367. Baldmn's Ancient America, p. 41. 8G CONTENTS OF OHIO MOUNDS. STONE PIPES FROM OHIO MOUNDS. practised extensively. Multitudes of mounds were devoted either partly or exclusively to such uses, Mr. Tomlinson, the owner GRAVE CREEK MOUND. 87 of the Grave Creek Mound, who sank a shaft from its original summit to its centre, and intercepted it by a tunnel along the surface of the ground, speaking of the latter excavation, remarks : " At the distance of one hundred and eleven feet we came to a vault, which had been excavated before the mound was com- menced, eight by twelve feet and seven in depth. Along each side and across the ends, upright timbers had been placed, which supported timbers thrown across the vault as a ceiling. These timbers were covered with loose unhewn stone, common to the neighborhood. The timbers had rotted and tumbled into the vault. * * * In this vault were two human skeletons, one of which had no ornaments, the other was surrounded by six hun- dred and fifty ivory (shell) beads, and an ivory (bone) ornament six inches long." Thirty-five feet above the bottom vault another was found containing a skeleton decorated with copper rings, plates of mica and shell disks. The number of disks cut from the shell known as the Buscycon perversum and collected by the excavators was 2350 ; of mica 250 specimens, and of the little shell known as Marginella apicina, 500 ; all of which had been pierced and strung as beads. Ten skeletons were subse- quently found together upon enlarging the horizontal tunnel. Ashes, charcoal and burnt bones were also discovered in large masses. Though this was the largest of this class of mounds, still the general characteristics of the contents are the same in all of them, and are usually disposed in the same relative posi- tion to each other. 1 One of the most interesting explorations of sepulchral mounds was that conducted in the autumn of 1865 by Professor 0. C. Marsh, assisted by Mr. Geo. P. Russell, of Salem, Mass., in what is known as the " Taylor Mound," situated two and a half miles south of Newark, Ohio. The mound was ten feet high and eighty feet in diameter, and was surmounted by a forest of oak trees ranging from two and a half to eight 1 Squier and Dams: Op. Cit., pp. 169-70. Foster: Op. Git., pp. 188-196. Schoolcraft in vol. i, Tran.*. Am. Ethnol. Sor. M. C. Kr;iiii< : x. Vnnnee 1670, p. 84, tome iii. Quebec reprint, 1858. 1 Ancient Mining, p. 22 et seq. 94 ASTRONOMICAL KNOWLEDGE. rior mines, and adds that no evidences exist that copper was mined in Mexico or Central America prior to the Spanish Con- quest. 1 Humboldt affirms that various metals were mined by the Mexicans, but does not specify copper. 2 Col. Whittlesey and Prof. Andrews estimate that in the ancient Lake Superior mines worked by the Mound-builders, the removed metal would aggregate a length of one hundred and fifty miles in veins of varying thickness. This fact certainly indicates that great supplies were transported southward. This remarkable people was evidently pos- sessed of the beginnings of science ; at least if the Davenport and Cincinnati tablets are genuine, astronomy must have received con- siderable attention at their hands. In the former tablet we observe a cycle divided into twelve months (which, however, is so modern and coincides so strictly with our division as to excite suspi- cion of fraud), while in the latter we have the number 368 as the sum of the pro- ducts of the longer and shorter lines, suggestive of an approximation to the number of days in a year. Other supposed astronomical instruments have been dis- COPPER CELTS THE SMALLER FROM A MOUND NEAR SAVANNAH, TENNESSEE. (Nat. Mus.) 1 Congres International des Americanistes. Luxembourg. 1877, torn, i, pp. 51-2. 2 Essai Politique (Paris, 1825-27), vol. iii, p. 114. Dr. Charles Rau has courteously furnished me the following references on ancient mining in Mexico : Clamgaro's History of Mexico, Phil., 1817, vol. i., p. 20. Prescott's Mexico, vol. i, p. 138 ; Despatches of Hernando Cortes addressed to the Emperor Charles V (trans, by Folsom, New York, 1842), p. 412. Memoirs of Bernal Diaz (trans, of Lockhart, London, 1844), vol. i, p. 36. Dr. Rau remarks : " We are forcibly led to the conclusion that the Mexicans obtained copper by the mining process." Letter to the Author, Aug. 24, 1878. VESSELS FROM MOUNDS IN THE MISSISSIPPI VALLEY. 95 CLAY VESSELS FROM MOUNDS IN THE MISSISSIPPI VAII.EY. ^ SIZE. (Nat. Mus. gg ASTRONOMICAL KNOWLEDGE. covered in the mounds of Ohio, and several of these, antique tubes, telescope devices, were discovered in the course of excavations made in 1842 in the most easterly of the Elizabeth town group, West Virginia. Mr. Schoolcraft makes the following statement concerning them : " Several tubes of stone were disclosed, the precise object of which has been the subject of various opinions. The longest measured twelve inches, the shortest eight. Three of them were carved out of steatite, being skillfully cut and polished. The diameter of the tube externally was one inch and four-tenths ; CLAY TUBE FROM AN OHIO MOUND. ^ NATURAL SIZE. (Peabody Mus.) the bore eight-tenths of an inch. By placing the eye at the diminished end, the extraneous light is shut from the pupil, and distant objects are more clearly discerned." 1 A silver figure found in Peru represents a man in the act of studying the heavens through one of these tubes, and Captain Dupaix saw a stone in Mexico bearing the figure of a man sculptured on its side in the act of using a similar tube. 2 With reference to the civilization of the Mound-builders, however much writers may differ, we think the following con- clusions may be safely accepted : That they came into the 1 Colonel Whittlesey in the Report of the State Archaeological Society to the Centennial Commission of Ohio, Chap. IV, pi. 10, has figured several symmetrical tubes of stone from Ohio Mounds. The most perfect of these he thinks may have served "as telescopic helps for distant views." The most general use to which most of them were applied, it is believed, was the making of signals, or possibly rude music. One of the tubes taken from the Tippet Mound near Newark, Ohio, and figured in the report, has its upper end flattened like a whistle or flute, and has a hole penetrating it just below the mouthpiece, which indi- cates that it may have been a musical instrument. The Huron slates were most frequently employed in the manufacture of tubes, as they were in the production of the class of objects known as ceremonial relics. 2 Baldwin's Ancient America, p. 42, and Dupaix, quoted on pp. 122-3. CONCLUSIONS. 97 country in comparatively small numbers at first (if they were not Autochthones, and there is no substantial proof that the Mound- builders were such), and during their residence in the territory occupied by the United States they became extremely populous. Their settlements were widespread, as the extent of their re- mains indicate. The magnitude of their works, some of which LARGE CLAY VESSEL FROM MILLEDGEVILLE, GEORGIA. SIZE 14 INCHES HIGH AND 13 INCHES ACROSS APERTURE. (Nat. Mus.) approximate the proportions of Egyptian pyramids, testify to the architectural talent of the people and the fact that they had developed a system of government which controlled the labor of multitudes, whether of subjects or slaves. They were an agri- cultural people, as the extensive ancient garden-beds found in Wisconsin and Missouri indicate. Their manufactures afford proof that they had attained a respectable degree of advance- ment, and show that they understood the advantages of the 7 gg CONCLUSIONS. division of labor. 1 Their domestic utensils, the cloth of which they made their clothing, and the artistic vessels met with every- where in the mounds, point to the development of home culture and domestic industry. There is no reason for believing that the people who wrought stone and clay into perfect effigies of animals have not left us sculptures of their own faces in the images exhumed from the mounds. They mined copper, which they wrought into implements of war, into ornaments and articles for domestic use. They quarried mica for mirrors and other purposes. 2 They furthermore worked flint and salt mines. They probably possessed some astronomical knowledge, though to what extent is unknown. Their trade, as Dr. Rau has shown, was widespread, extend- ing probably from Lake Superior to the Gulf, and possibly to Mexico. 3 They constructed canals by which lake systems were 1 Dr. Rau has shown that division of labor and its advantages was recog- nized among the aborigines ; that certain individuals who were qualified to manufacture particular implements devoted themselves exclusively to that work. He bases his conjecture " on the occurrence of manufactured articles of a homogeneous character in mounds or in deposits below the surface of the soil. There is little doubt, for instance, that there were persons who devoted their time chiefly to the manufacture of stone arrow-heads and of other articles pro- duced by chipping, among which may be mentioned those remarkable large digging tools described by me several years ago, and the oval or leaf-shaped implements made of the peculiar hornstone of 'Flint Ridge 'in Ohio." See Stock-in-trade of an Aboriginal Lapidary, by Charles Rau, Smithsonian Report for 1877. 2 Dr. S. S. Schoville, in the Cincinnati (Quarterly Journal of Science, April, 1875, p. 164, describes the discovery of numerous mica plates in a mound on the east bank of the Little Miami River, about twenty-five miles east of Cincinnati. He states, that at the base of the mound, on a level with the surrounding coun- try, the remains of several skeletons were found, placed with their heads together and lying in a horizontal position. " Lying upon or immediately over the cranial debris, were found plates of mica, some a foot in diameter. These plates were disposed in such a way as to cover an area somewhat larger than that occupied by the crania beneath. However, it could not definitely be deter- mined whether the design had been to make a continuous or common roof over the faces as a group, or whether each face had a covering of its own." The writer ventures the rather fanciful conjecture that the mica in this and many other cases served the purpose of exhibiting temporarily the features of the dead in the manner that glass is now used on caskets. 3 See a most interesting and extensive memoir on Aboriginal Trade in COPPER RELICS FROM WISCONSIN Eir RELICS FROM WISCONSIN. (From photos furnished by Prof. Butler.) 100 CONCLUSIONS. united, a fact which Mr. Conant has recently shown to be well established in Missouri. 1 Their defences were numerous and constructed with reference to strategic principles, while their system of signals placed on lofty summits, visible from their settlements and communicating with the great water-courses at immense distances, rival the signal systems in use at the begin- ning of the present century. Their religion seems to have been attended with the same ceremonies in all parts of their domain. That its rites were celebrated with great demonstrations is certain. The sun and moon probably were the all-important deities, to whom sacrifices (possibly human) were offered. We have already alluded to the development in architecture and art which marked the possible transition of this people from north to south. Here we see but the rude beginnings of a civilization which no doubt subsequently unfolded in its fuller glory in the valley of Anahuac, and spreading southward engrafted a new life upon the wreck of Xibalba. Though there is no evidence that the Mound-builders were indigenous, we must admit that their civilization was purely such the natural product of climate and the conditions surrounding them. 2 North America, by Charles Rau, first published in vol. iv of the ArcJiw fur Anthropologie (Braunschweig, 1872), and translated in Smithsonian Report for 1872, pp. 249-394. 1 Mr. A. J. Conant in the Commonwealth of Missouri, pp. 77-8 (St. Louis, 1877), refers to ancient canals fifty feet wide and twelve feet deep observed by Dr. G. C. Swallow. He quotes a pretty full account from Geo. W. Carleton, Esq. Mr. Conant considers some of the southern bayous of artificial origin. 2 For further material on the Mound-builders, see the documents cited throughout the chapter. No less important is Dr. Foster's admirable work so often quoted, and which we must add has been of great service in the prepara- tion of this chapter. A very good paper on the Mound-builders is that by Robert S. Robertson of Fort Wayne, Indiana, in the Congres International des Ameri- canistes Compte-Eendu de la Sec. Ses. Luxembourg, 1877, torn, i, pp. 39-50, though we do not fully agree with the author's views as to the colonization of the Mis* sissippi valley from the south. The classification of Mound-works by Rev. Stephen D. Peet in the same document, p. 103, is very satisfactory, and corre- sponds to that adopted in this chapter. The learned article by Judge Force of Cincinnati in the same document, vol. i, pp. 121-156, is full of interest. For recent mound explorations, see Appendix. CHAPTER II. ANTIQUITY OF MAN ON THE WESTERN CONTINENT. Antiquity of the Mounds No Tradition of the Mound-builders Vegetation Covering the Mounds Age of Mo and Crania Probable Date of the Aban- donment of the Mounds Ancient Shell-heaps Man's Influence on Nature Supposed Testimony of Geology Agassiz on the Floridian Jaw-bone Remains on Santos River The Natchez Bone Remains on Petit Anse Island Brazilian Bone-caves Dr. Koch's Pretended Discoveries Ancient Hearths Age of the Mississippi Delta Dr. Dowler's Discovery at New Orleans Dr. Abbott's Discoveries in New Jersey Discoveries in Cali- fornia Inter-Glacial Relics in Ohio Crania from Mounds in the North- west No Evidences as yet Discovered Proving Man's Great Antiquity in America. AT the opening of the preceding chapter we made some allu- sions to the supposed antiquity of the Red Indian, a subject of growing archaeological significance, though as yet it affords us rather unsatisfactory evidence, scientifically considered, rela- tive to the problem of man's antiquity on this continent. Quite different, however, is the estimate which we place on data left us by the people of the mounds. The question of the antiquity of the Mound-builders is one which cannot be accurately deter- mined ; no chronometric scale can be applied to the uncertain record which they have left behind them. Their history is a sealed book, and the approximate date of their first occupancy of the Mississippi Basin is as uncertain as the period of man's origin. However, certain data present themselves for our consideration which lead us to conclude that a few thousand years, three or four perhaps, and possibly even less time, is all that is required in which to account for their growth into a nation and the moderate advancement which they made toward civilization. As to when the Mound-builders left this country, is another question, and 102 NO TRADITION OF THE MOUND-BUILDERS. can be approximated more closely. It is a well-known fact that no tradition was ever found among the Indians as to the origin or the purpose for which the mounds were constructed. They described them as having been found by their ancestors in the same condition in which we now see them, and clothed, if not with the same, at least with a growth of vegetation similar to that which covers them to-day. It is true the Iroquois, who are supposed to have reached the lake regions and the Ohio Valley some time previous to the Algonquins, had certain vague tradi- tions of a people whom they called the " Allighewi ; " but there seems to be nothing in those indefinite allusions which would associate that unknown people with the mounds. Still, Indian tradition is nearly valueless in determining this question, since any fact, however grave, was soon forgotten by a people so savage and unsettled. The tribes of the lake region, says Dr. Lapham in his Antiquities, so soon forgot the visit of the Jesuit Fathers that their descendants a few generations later had no tradition of the event. The same is true of the Indians of the Mississippi Valley with reference to De Soto's expedition, " which must," remarks Dr. Foster, "have impressed their ancestors with dread at the sight of horses ridden by men, and the sound of fire-arms, which they must have likened to thunder. Sir John Lubbock states that the New Zealanders at the time of Captain Cook's visit had forgotten altogether Tasman's visit, made less than one hundred and thirty years before." l Another 1 Pre-Historic Times, p. 425. Also cited by Foster. In this connection I refer the reader to the argument of Mr. John H. Becker of Berlin, in the Congres International des Americanistes, Luxembourg, 1877, torn, i, pp. 345-6 : " These northern nations * * * have not quite forgotten the former exist- ence and the exodus of these Nahua Mound-builders in and from the western prairie country. Cusick's remarkable history of the Iroquois (Schoolcraft, vol. v) states again and again that ' their hunters were opposed by big snakes,' that the ' great horned snake appeared on Lake Ontario/ that the ' lake serpent traversed the country, and they were compelled to build fortifications in order to save themselves from the devouring monsters,' that ' a snake with a human head prevented the intercourse of their several villages, as it had settled near the principal path of communication,' also ' that it retreats,' etc., etc. Now, in order to understand the force of these passages, it is necessary to remind the reader that the Nahua race were perhaps even more properly and generally ANTIQUITY OF MOUNDS. 103 argument for the construction of the mounds at a remote period, and which is certainly of little more value than Indian tradition, is that which supposes the Mound-builders to have erected works on the lowest of the river terraces existing at the time of their occupancy of the country. Much stress has been laid on the fact that no works have been found on the lowest-formed of the river terraces which mark the subsidence of the western rivers. " And as there is no good reason," remarks Mr. Baldwin, " why their builders should have avoided erecting them on that terrace while they raised them promiscuously on all the others, it follows, not unreasonably, that this terrace has been formed since the works were erected." 1 To any one familiar with the great rise and fall which takes place annually in the water-level of the Ohio and Mississippi and all of their tributaries, the fallacy of such an argument is at once apparent. We must at least allow that the Mound-builders learned by experience, just as animals do, even if we could deny them a very high order of intelligence. Little time could have elapsed after their advent to these valleys before they observed the impracticability of erecting mounds or enclo- sures on most of the alluvial bottoms bordering these streams. The raging torrents which sometimes sweep through the valleys of the central basin, uprooting the largest trees, carrying away natural embankments, forming immense deposits of new allu- vium, submerging miles of adjacent country, and in many ways changing its physical conformation, would in a few years oblit- designated as the ' Culhua ' the ' Snake ' race, and one branch, remotely con- nected with them in blood and language, though wofully degenerated, the Snakes or Shoshones of Oregon, etc., carry the name to this very day. * < ' An expedition was sent towards the Mississippi River ; they crossed it, reached an extensive meadow ; they discovered a curious animal, a winged fish ; it flew about the tree, it moved like a humming bird ' * * * the humming bird was the totem of the last tribe of Nahuas. arriving in Anahuac from Aztlan. The Cherokee tradition, told by Timberlake, is equally significant : ' The prince of rattlesnakes lives in the glens of the mountains. His palace is guarded by obedient subjects. * * * And in the myth of the Algonquins, the god-hero Michabo is in conflict with the shining prince of serpents who lives in the lake ; he destroys the reptile with a dart : clothes himself with the skin of his foe, and drives the rest of the serpents to the south.' " 1 /. D. Baldwin's Ancient America, p. 47. 104 AGE OF VEGETATION. erate any traces of earthworks built within their reach. 1 Far more certain data, however, is furnished in the arborescent vegeta- tion which covers many of the works, with which to measure part of the period during which they have remained unoccupied, though we are left in uncertainty as to the remoteness of their abandonment. The annular rings of a tree present us indisputa- ble evidence as to its age. 2 It is evident that the forests which cover these remains have grown up since they were vacated, as no difference exists between them and the surrounding vegeta- tionno break exists in the density of the forests in the imme- diate vicinity of the works. The oldest of the trees found upon the works present eight hundred annual rings, indicating as many years of growth. 3 This cannot, however, be set down as the limit of the period of their abandonment, since, as it seems that this country was open and mostly unwooded in the sections thickly settled by the Mound-builders, a considerable time would be requisite for the slow encroachments of a forest, even when the trees which now stand upon the mounds may have been pre- 1 Foster, pp. 172-3, remarks : " Squier and Davis hastily stated that none of these works occupied the alluvial bottoms (an error which Mr. Squier subsequently corrected), and from this statement the most erroneous conclu- sions as to their antiquity have been drawn. There is nothing to indicate but that those works were constructed after the surface had assumed its present configuration, and that the climate had become essentially as it is now. That they should not occur as abundantly on the bottoms as on the river terraces is not to be wondered at, when we consider the great fluctuations of the Missis- sippi and its tributaries. The extreme range between low and high water of the Upper Mississippi at its mouth is thirty -five feet"; that of the Missouri at its mouth about the same ; and that of the Ohio at Louisville, forty-two feet. Hence, during the flood time a greater portion of the bottom lands are subject to overflow, and it would be natural for the Mound -builders to shun such situations. Where the immediate valleys lie above high water, we find their works. Of this the ' American Bottom ' is a notable instance." 8 See Dr. Lapham's communication in Foster's Pre- Historic Maces, pp. 373-5, in which he shows the possibility of finding the average increase of wood each year by measuring annual rings of growth. 3 Sir Charles Lyell, Antiquity of Man, p. 41, says : " When I visited Marietta in 1842, Dr. Hildreth took me to one of the mounds, and showed me where he had seen a tree growing on it, the trunk of which when cut down displayed eight hundred rings of annual growth." GREAT AGE OP MOUND CRANIA. 1Q5 ceded by trees of other species or by two or three generations of their own. 1 The age of the trees on the mound-works in the Ohio Valley or farther north, rarely exceeds five hundred or six hundred years, and such cases as that cited by Sir Charles Lyell are the exceptions. Farther south, in the Mississippi Valley and near the Gulf, they are still younger than those at the north. 2 So noticeable is this that we are led to think the Gulf coast may have been occupied by the Mound-builders for a couple of centuries after they were driven by their enemies from the country north of the mouths of the Missouri and Ohio Rivers. The condition of skeletons found in the mounds indicate an antiquity which they furnish us no means of measuring. It is not to be presumed that all human remains discovered in exca- vating the works were interred immediately previous to the abandonment of the country. Some of them may belong to the middle or beginning of the period of their residence in the terri- tory occupied by the United States. Human remains taken from the mounds, perhaps furnish us better evidence of the long resi- dence of the Mound-builders in this country than any other data in our possession. It suffices to say that few Mound-builder crania have been recovered in a condition to be of any service to science ; although of late years, several valuable collections 1 See Prof. Asa Gray in Foster's Pre-Historic Races, p. 392 ; also Lyell's Antiquity of Man, p. 41, where the opinion of President Harrison is quoted as follows : " We may be sure that no trees were allowed to grow so long as the earthworks were in use ; and when they were forsaken, the ground, like all newly-cleared land in Ohio, would for a time be monopolized by one or two species of tree, such as the yellow locust and the black or white walnut. When the individuals which were the first to get possession of the ground had died out one after the other, they would, in many cases, instead of being replaced by other species, be succeeded, by virtue of the law which makes a rotation of crops profitable in agriculture, by other kinds, till at last, after a great number of centuries (several hundred years perhaps), that remarkable diversity of species characteristic of North America, and far exceeding what is seen in European forests, would be established." 8 Foster's Pre-Hixtoric Races, pp. 118, 119, 122, and M. Stronck, Reperes chronologiques de Vhistoire des Mound-builders in Congres dex Americanistes, Luxembourg, torn, i, pp. 316-18, catalogues the record of the age of trees found on mounds. 106 KITCHEN-MIDDENS, OR SHELL-HEAPS. have been made. The preservation of the skeletons depends greatly on the composition of the soil in which they are found. The Loess has afforded well-preserved remains, however, with the gelatinous matter leached out. The crania of the sandy loam of river bottoms, on the other hand, are in all cases so far decayed upon discovery that the greatest precautions fail to pre- vent them from crumbling to dust when exposed to the light and air. Mastodon bones, on the contrary, recovered from peat swamps, and much older than any of the remains of the Mound- builders, are found to have retained so much of their gelatinous matter as to furnish a nourishing soup. 1 To these evidences may be added the testimony derived from the ancient ruins which points to long-continued occupation and to a considerable lapse of time since their abandonment. How long the Mound-builders occupied the country north of the Gulf of Mexico it is impossible in the present state of science to determine. Some authors conjecture that they were here two thousand years ; that we think would be time enough, though after all it is but conjecture. It seems to us, however, that the time of the abandonment of their works may be more closely approximated. A thousand or two years may have elapsed since they vacated the Ohio Valley, and a period embracing seven or eight centuries may have passed since they retired from the Gulf coast. As an evidence of a large population having existed in this country at a former period, we have immense shell-heaps artificially collected, extending along the Atlantic coast from Nova Scotia to Florida, on the Gulf coast and up the river valleys through nearly all of the Southern States. It is difficult to assign the formation of these vast remains to any definite period or to any particular people. Though of the same charac- ter as the Kj'Mcen-ModtUngs (Kitchen-Middens) of the Danish, they furnish no indications of so great an antiquity. This has been shown by Dr. Jeffries Wyman in his researches in Maine and Massachusetts. 2 Sir Charles Lyell made an examination of a shell-bank on St. Simon's Island, near the mouth of the Alla- 1 Foster's Pre-Historic Races, p. 370. * American Naturalist, Jan. 1868. KITCHEN-MIDDENS, OR SHELL-HEAPS. 107 maha River, Georgia, so extensive that it covers ten acres to a depth varying from five to ten feet. 1 Dr. Brinton has described immense accumulations in Florida. On Amelia Island, shells exist to the depth of three feet over an area 150 yards wide and a quarter of a mile long. Notable instances of a similar kind are Turtle Mound near Smyrna a mass of oyster shells thirty feet thick and a shell-bank on Crystal Eiver four miles from its mouth, reaching a height of forty feet. 2 Dr. Wyman care- fully examined many of the fresh-water shell-heaps of Florida and obtained pretty satisfactory results. 3 Near the Silver spring upon a shell- heap covering nearly twenty acres, stand several live-oaks of immense size, the largest of which measured between twenty- six and twenty-seven feet in circumference. Excavations under this monster, taken together with its position on the side of the shell-bank, proved it to be of more recent origin than the latter. Prof. Wyman, by allowing twelve rings to the inch and granting it a semi-diameter of fifty inches, estimated that it was not less than six hundred years old. Of course the shell-bank may have existed a long time before any vegetation appeared upon it. The 1 Second Visit to the United States, vol. i, p. 252. 9 Dr. Brinton's Note* on t/ie Floridian Peninsula. 3 From the immense heaps distributed over an area of 150 miles between Pilatka and Salt Creek Dr. Wyman made some collections of interest. The banks were composed mostly of the Ampullaria Depresaa, the Paludina Multttineatfi and Unio Buckleyi. The bank at King Phillip's Town, 4oO feet long by 120 feet wide, and in some places eight feet thick, yielded fragments of pottery and decayed animal bones. At Black Hammock, on the St. Johns, a mound 900 feet long and from 100 to 150 in width, yielded the following : such marine shells as the strombus-gigos, pyrula carica and P. perversa. These had been shaped into hatchets, gouges and chisels. Scarcely any stone implements were found in any of the mounds examined. A chisel and twenty-five arrow-heads were collected in the vicinity of the above shell-bank. The following animal remains were found : bear, deer, raccoon, opossum, terrapin, turtle, alligator, cat-fish and garpike. But few bones of birds were found. Prof. Wyman can only explain the presence of so many of the now scarce species, the Ampulla- rius and Paludinas, on the supposition that they were much more plentiful and are now becoming extinct, or that the heaps where so abundantly found were made by slow accumulation, th rough the lapse of an indefinitely long period. American Naturalist, vol. ii, Nos. 8 and 9, and Fifth Annual Report of Peabody Museum, pp. 22-25. Also First Report of Peabody Museum, pp. 11, 18. 108 FEESH-WATER SHELL-HEAPS. crania of the shell-banks of Florida differ from those of the Mound-builders in greater thickness as well as greater mean capacity. 1 In his fresh-water Shell-Mounds of the St. John's River, and in his memoir on Human Remains in the Shell-heaps of the St. John's River (Seventh Annual Report of Peabody Museum, pp. 26 et seq.), Dr. Wyman reports having discovered the startling fact that cannibalism prevailed among the barbarous people of the shell-banks. In the Peabody Museum a collection of human bones taken from the shell-banks by Dr. Wyman are arranged to illustrate this sad discovery. It is possible that this people had some relationship to the Caribs. Prof. Forshey has described in brief the vast extent and proportions of the marine shell-banks of the Gulf coast, and the shores of the bayous, lakes and lagoons where Guathodon shells are found. Those of Louisiana, especially near New Orleans, are remarkable, but have yielded no remains, except broken pottery, flint flakes and stone hatchets. A shell-bank at Grand Lake, on the Teche, however, upon which great live-oaks are growing, situated fifteen miles inland, from which the sea has receded since its formation, "yielded unique specimens of axes of haematitic iron-ore and glazed pottery." 2 Probably the most remote shell-bank from the sea containing marine shells, occurs on the Alabama River, fifty miles inland. 3 Fresh-water shell-banks, other than those examined in Florida, furnish evidences of slow accumulation and indicate a comparatively remote antiquity for their origin. On Stalling's Island, in the Savannah River, two hundred miles above its mouth, is a shell-bank three hundred feet in length by one hundred and twenty feet in width, with an average depth of 1 A small sand-mound near Cedar Keys yielded peculiarly massive skulls ; the capacity being 1375 cubic centimetres, or nearly 84 cubic inches. They show no distortion, and the average thickness of eight of them through the parietal bones measured 10.5 millimetres, or 0.42 of an inch. The heaviest weighed 995 grams, and notwithstanding the loss of its organic matter, is heavier than any of the three hundred skulls in the collection (Peabody Museum). Fourth Annual Report of Peabody Museum, p. 13. Also see Fos- ter's Pre-Historic Races, p. 170. 8 Foster's Pre-Historic, Races, p. 159. 3 Nott and Gliddon's Types of Mankind, p. 272. THE FORMATION OF SHELL-HEAPS. 109 over fifteen feet. 1 In the American Bottom and on many of the tributaries of the Mississippi, shell-banks occur, composed of varieties of the Unios and Anodons. A remarkable example of such accumulation is the well-known shell-bank a mile and a half south of New Harmony, Indiana, and situated on a high hill 170 feet above the level of an arm of the Wabash Eiver. The bank covers an area of a quarter of an acre, and has attracted the attention of eminent scientists like Leasure, Say 3 Lyell and others, but nothing of value was developed that would refer the construction of this and similar banks to any people more ancient than the Mound-builders. 2 On the Pacific coast, great numbers of shell-banks exist, but contain nothing different from those in other parts of the country. (See Kesearches in the Kjokken Moddings of the Coast of Oregon and of the Santa Barbara Islands and Adjacent Mainland, by Paul Schumacher. Bulletin of U. S. Geol. and Geog. Survey, vol. iii, No. 1.) There can be little doubt but these strange and vast accumulations indicating the presence of an extinct population, had a remote beginning, and have been added to from time to time by different peoples, removed from each other both by the diversities of race and the lapse of time. A trifle more than a decade ago the treatment of the sub- ject of this chapter would have called for a discussion of the antiquity of the magnificent architectural remains of Southern Mexico, and of the still older ruins of the Maya civiliza- tion in Yucatan, and the branches of that people in Central America ; but the indefatigable labor which has been bestowed by several eminent antiquarians upon the ancient history of the civilized nations of the New World previous to its discovery by Europeans, has transferred this part of the subject to another field ; has elevated it from the uncertain position it occupied in archaeology to a place in the realm of history. It is true that it is difficult to draw the line between tradition and history, and especially so in this case ; but as tradition does not conflict with 1 C. C. Jones, Jr., Antiquities of the Southern Indians. 2 Further consult, Second Indiana Report, p. iii ; Smithsonian Report for 1870 ; Humphreys and Abbot's Physics and Hydraulics of the Mississippi Valley, p. 89, and Foster's Pre-Historic Races, Chap. IV. MAN'S INFLUENCE UPON NATURE. archaeology in its bearing on the ancient civilization of Tropical America, it is better than nothing ; certainly archaeology thus far has amounted to little more than nothing in revealing the approximate period of the origin of these remains. While it lias done much towards verifying tradition and assisted largely in its interpretation, it has not been adequate to the task of solving the age of these remains. Tradition, on the contrary, and we might almost say history, carries us back three thousand years, if not farther, as the period when man whether the first here or not appeared upon the Western Continent. The discussion of this part of our subject will be given in a future chapter. Too much doubt exists with reference to the stupendous remains of Peru, especially in the neighborhood of Lake Titicaca, Tiahua- naco, Old Huanaco, and Grau-Chirnu, as to whether they ante- dated the arrival of the Incas by a great lapse of time, to admit of a serious discussion here. Nothing of a scientific character is available as yet upon which even to base conjecture. Rivero and Tschudi, it is true, have treated the subject, and their work has been often quoted, but after all it amounts to but little more than a description of the remains, which serves the good end of exciting interest in the subject. The antiquities and legendary history of the Peruvians have so recently been treated with such ability by Mr. E. G. Squier, that the South American civiliza- tion needs no attention in this connection. In considering the question as to how long man has inhabited this continent, his influence upon nature cannot be overlooked. In the animal kingdom, certain animals were domesticated by the aborigines from so remote a period that scarcely any of their species, as in the case of the lama of Peru, were to be found in a state of unrestrained freedom at the advent of the Spaniards. In the vegetable kingdom more abundant testimony of the same nature is presented. A plant must be subjected to the trans- forming influences of cultivation for a long time before it becomes so changed as no longer to be identified with the wild species, and infinitely longer before it becomes entirely dependent upon cultivation for propagation. Yet we find that both of these facts have been accomplished with reference to the maize, tobacco, MAN'S INFLUENCE UPON NATURE. cotton, quinoa and mandico plants ; and the only species of palm cultivated by the South American Indians, that known as the Gulielma speciosa, has lost through that culture its original nut-like seed, and is dependent upon the hands of its cultivators for its life. 1 Alluding to the above-named plants, Dr. Briuton remarks : " Several are sure to perish unless fostered by human care. What numberless ages does this suggest ? How many centuries elapsed ere man thought of cultivating Indian corn ? How many more ere it had spread over nearly a hundred degrees of latitude and lost all resemblance to its original form?" 2 Cer- tainly this class of evidence, though furnishing no chronometric scale, points us to an antiquity for man on this continent more venerable than that suggested either by tumuli or architectural remains. The peculiar value of this argument rests in the fact that with the exception of cotton, none of the plants indicated 1 Martius : Von dem Rechtszustande unter den Ureinwohner Brasiliens, p. 80, and reprinted in his Beitrdge zur Ethnographic, etc., Leipzig, 1867, quarto. " Der dennalige Zustand dieser Naturwesen beurkundet, dass die amerikanische Natur schon seit Jabrtausenden den Einfluss einer verandernden und umge- staltenden Menschenhand erfahren hat. Auf den An ti lien und dem Festlande fanden die ersten Conquistadores den stummen Hund als Hausthier und auf der Jagd dienend, ebenso das Meerschweinchen in St. Domingo in einem heimi- schen Zustande . . . Das Llama war in Peru schon seit undenklicher Zoit als Lastthier bentitzt worden, und-kam nicht mehr im Zustand dor Freiheit vor; ja sogar das Guanaco und die Vicunna scheinen damals nicht ganz wild, son- dern in einer beschrankten Freiheit den Urbewohnern befreundet, gelebt zu haben, da sie, um geschoren zu werden, eingefangen, so dann aber wieder frei- gelassen wurden. . . . Die Cultur dieser Pflanze (Maize) aus welcher die Perua- ner auch Zucker bereiteten, ist uralt ; man findet sie, und die Banane, den Baumwollenstrauch, die Quinoa- und die Mandioca-Pflanze ebenso wenig wild in America als unsere Getreidearten in Asien, Europa und Africa. Die ein/ige Palme, welche von den Indianern angebaut wird, hat durch diese Cultur den grossen, steinharten Saamenkern verloren, der oft in Fasern zerschmolzen, oft ganzlich aufgelo'st ist. Ebenso findet man die Banane, deren Einfuhr nach America goschichtlich nicht nachgewiesen werden kann, immer ohne Saamen. Man weias aber aus anderen Erfahrungen, welch* lange Zeit nothwendig ist, um den Pflanzen einen solchen Stempel von der umbildenden Macht mensch- lichen Einflusses aufzudrllcken. Gewiss, auch in America sind die dort heimi- schen Nutz-Pflanzen der Menschheit seit undenklichen Zeiten zinobar unter- worfen." 2 Briuton's Myths of the New World, p. 87. AGASSIZ AND THE HUMAN JAW. have ever been cultivated by any other people than the aborigines of America, and could not have matured their characteristics of dependence in the old world, and been brought hither through the channel of immigration. Back of the age of man's monuments of an architectural character, beyond the beginning of the first existing shell-heap, and at a time probably more remote than the first cultivation of maize, it has been supposed that man occupied the Western Con- tinent as a contemporary with the mastodon, megalonyx and other extinct animals. Our information in this department is entirely dependent upon the revelations of geological science. Unfor- tunately very little data which may be termed truly scientific has been brought to light. While considerable seeming testi- mony to man's antiquity on this continent has been produced from a geologic quarter, still it mostly has been of an unscientific character. Fossils and human remains are said to have been discovered in localities and in associations that if the statements of those who found them could be relied on, would give man an antiquity here as great as in the valley of the Somme or in the bone caves of Belgium, France, and England. In the instances alluded to, it is not so often feared that the veracity of discov- erers is doubtful as that their general lack of acquaintance with the science should make them liable to error. Where a com- petent geologist is not present to examine a fossil in situ, and report intelligently upon its position and surroundings, the case must remain open to suspicion. Unfortunately for science, this is precisely the weak point in most of the reputed "finds" which are cited as evidence in this field. In 1848, Count Pour- tales found in Florida, according to Agassiz, a human jaw and teeth, and bones of the foot, embedded in a calcareous con- glomerate forming a part of a coral reef. This reef, according to Agassiz, may be 135,000 years old, and the human remains at least ten thousand years. 1 This statement has been accepted as reliable by Sir Charles Lyell, 2 Daniel Wilson, 3 and other noted scientific gentlemen. Count Pourtales, however, makes a state- 1 Nott and Gliddon's Types of Mankind, p. 352. 1 Antiquity of Man, p. 44. Pre-Historic Man, p. 12. REMAINS AT SANTOS RIVER, BRAZIL. ment which materially alters the case. He says : " The human jaws and other bones found by myself in Florida hi 1848, were not in a coral formation, but in a fresh-water sandstone on the shore of Lake Monroe, associated with fresh- water shells or species still living in the lakes (Paulina, Ampullaria, etc.). No date can be assigned to the formation of that deposit, at least from present .observation." J Human remains were found a number of years ago embedded in the solid rock in the island of Guadaloupe. " But more careful investigation proved the rock to be a con- cretionary limestone formed from the detritus of corals and shells." a This rock was ascertained to have been one of very rapid formation. Sir Charles Lyell, in his Travels in America in 1842, ex- pressed the opinion that certain human remains found embedded in the solid rock near the town of St. Paul on the Santos River, Brazil, were of great antiquity. 3 Subsequently referring to the memoir of Dr. Meigs on the shell-heap of which the rock was a part, 4 he expresses the opinion that shells were brought to the place and heaped up over the remains, and " were bound together in a solid stone by the infiltration of carbonate of lime, and the mound may therefore be of no higher antiquity than those above alluded to on the Ohio." 5 In a few instances it has been alleged that the remains of man have been found associated with the remains of the mastodon and other extinct animals. More than thirty years ago Dr. Dickson of Natchez discovered the pelvic bone of a man, the os innominatum, mingled with the bones of extinct animals (megalonyx and mylodon). This discovery was made two and one-half miles from Natchez, at the bottom of what is known as Bernard's Bayou, an immense ravine from thirty to sixty feet deep and several miles long, formed by the convulsions of the earthquake of 1811-12. This bone is now in the possession of the Academy of Natural Sciences of Philadel- phia. Sir Charles Lyell visited the spot where it was discovered 1 American Naturalist, vol. ii, p. 434, 18G8. Also quoted by Foster, Pre- Historic Races, p. 77. 2 Daniel Wilson's Pre- Historic Man, p. 12. 8 Vol. i, p. 200. 4 Meigs : Trans. Am. Phil 8oc., 1828, p. 385. B Antiquity of Man, p. 43. 8 THE NATCHEZ 08 INNOMINATUM. in 1846, and made a careful examination of the bone then in the possession of Dr. Dickson, and also explored the " Mammoth Ravine." He discusses the case as follows : " It appeared to be quite in the same state of preservation and was of the same black color as the other fossils, and was believed to have come like them from a depth of about thirty feet from the surface. In my Second Visit to America in 1846, l 1 suggested as a possible explanation of this association of a human bone with remains of a mastodon and megalonyx, that the former may possibly have been derived from the vegetable soil at the top of the cliff, where, as the remains of extinct mammalia were dis- lodged from a lower position, and both may have fallen into the same heap or talus at the bottom of the ravine, the pelvic bone might, I conceived, have acquired its black color from having lain for years or centuries in a dark superficial peaty soil common in that region. I was informed that there were many human bones in old Indian graves in the same district stained of as black a dye." * * * " No doubt, had the pelvic bone belonged to any recent mammifier other than man, such a. theory would never have been resorted to ; but so long as we have only one isolated case, and are without the testimony of a geologist who was present to behold the bone when still engaged in the matrix, and to extract it with his own hands, it is allowable to suspend our judgment as to the high antiquity of the fossil. 2 Both Dr. Joseph Leidy 3 and Prof. C. G. Forshcy, 1 who have examined the case, agree with the above. A few years ago a fragment of 1 Vol. ii, p. 197. 2 Antiquity of Man, p. 203. 3 Extinct Mammalia of North America, p. 365 : " The specimen may have been contemporary with the remains of extinct animals, with which it is said to have been found, though it appears to me equally if not more probable that it may have fallen into the formation from an Indian grave above at a compara- tively recent date, and become stained like the true fossils from ferruginous infiltration." 4 Foster : Pre- Historic Paces, p. 61. "A dozen plantation burial places and Indian mounds and camps had been exposed above for centuries ; and in recent years since uninhabited by the whites (for a hundred years), the drains had cut through the surface to the depth of twenty and even forty feet of the bluff loam-beds. The probabilities are a hundred to one that this bone was not of the bluff (mastodon) formation but of the recent era." REMAINS AT PETIT ANSE ISLAND. H5 matting composed of the outer bark of the southern cane (Arun- dinaria macrosperma) was discovered on Petit Anse Island in Verrnillion Bay, Louisiana, in connection with the remains of a fossil elephant. This island, containing about five thousand acres, is the locality of an extraordinary mine of rock salt, dis- covered and worked considerably during the late rebellion. The salt is found in nearly all parts of the island at the depth of fifteen or twenty feet below the surface of the soil. The matting was discovered near the surface of the salt, and about two feet above it were the remains of an elephant, including the tusks. Prof. Henry was the first to call public attention to the matter in a notice based on the verbal statements of T. F. Cleu, Esq., who presented a specimen of the matting to the Smithsonian Institu- tion. 1 In 1867, Prof. B. W. Hilgard and Dr. E. Fontaine, secretary of the New Orleans Academy of Sciences, examined the locality. We regret to say that the report made by the latter is so confused in its use of terms and so conflicting in its statements as to be of no service to science. 2 Prof. Hilgard is, on the contrary, clear on the subject. He considers the heap in which the matting, elephant bones, and subsequently pottery in great profusion, were found, " A mass of detritus washed down from the surrounding hills." " The pottery/' he remarks, " at some points form verita- ble strata three and six inches thick." He then adds in a note that "it is very positively stated that mastodon bones were found considerably above some of the human relics. In a detrital mass, however, this cannot be considered a crucial test." 3 Dr. Foster, after citing the above, interposes the objection, " That in an island whose area is less than eight miles square, there would be few floods of sufficient power to transport such heavy bones as the tusks and molars of mastodons to any considerable distance." 4 Certainly the question is an open one, and in its 1 Foster in Transactions of the Chicago Academy of Sciences, vol. i, part ii. 2 Fontaine's How the Wprld was Peopled, pp. 67-89. A book with many good points, but obscure as to this particular case. 3 On the Geology of Lower Louisiana and the, Salt Deposit on the Petit Ante Island, p. 14, in Smithsonian Contributions to Knowledge, No. 248. 4 Foster's Pre-Historic Races, p. 58. BONES AT MINAS GERAES, BRAZIL. present unsettled status proves nothing. The same uncertainty attaches itself to the discoveries of Dr. Lund, the distinguished Swedish naturalist, made many years ago in the bone caves of Minas Greraes, Brazil. This indefatigable investigator examined more than eight hundred caverns, and in only six were human remains found. In one instance out of the six, the remains were associated with the bones of animals now extinct, but the original stratification had been disturbed, and the presumption is that it was a case of comparatively recent interment. 1 The most remarkable instance of the supposed, or we might be allowed in this case to say pretended discovery of human remains in association with those of extinct animals, is that set forth by Dr. Koch. This collector of curiosities described his discovery of a mastodon giganteus in 1839 in Gasconade County, Missouri, at a spot on the Bourbeuse River, first in a newspaper article of January 1839, and cited in the American Journal of Science and Arts. 2 And a second time in the St. Louis Com- mercial Bulletin of June 25, 1839, which article was also noticed in the above Journal. 3 This article was signed " A. Koch, Proprietor of the St. Louis Museum." Subsequently he pub- lished descriptions in pamphlets, which unfortunately did not always convey the same impressions. 4 Dr. Koch, after referring to the discovery of a back and hip bone of this remarkable animal, 1 Brinton's Myths of the New World, p. 35. 2 Vol. xxxvi, p. 198. 3 Vol. xxxvii, p. 191. 4 J. D. Dana : Koch's Evidence on the Contemporaneity of Man and the Mas- todon in Missouri, in tlie Am. Jour, of Sci. and Arts, Art. xxxv. May, 1875, gives the title of two of these pamphlets as follows : 1. Description of the Mis sourium or Missouri Leviathan, together with its Supposed Habits ; Indian Tra- ditions Concerning the Location from, trhich it was Exhumed ; Also, Comparisons of the Whale, Crocodile, and Missourium with the Leviathan, as described in the Forty-first Chapter of the Book of Job : by Albert Koch, 16 pp. octavo, St. Louis, 1841 (1840 on the cover, indicating that the copy is from a second edition). 2. Description of the Missourium Theristocaulodon (Koch] or Missouri Leviathan (Leviathan Missouriensis), together with its Supposed Habits and Indian Tradi- tions; Also, Comparisons of the Whale, Crocodile, and Missourium with the Leviathan, as described in the Forty-first Chapter of the Book of Job : by Albert Koch. Fifth edition enlarged, 28 pp. octavo. Dublin, 1843. (A third edition of twenty-four pages appeared in London in 1841.) DR. KOCH'S MASTODON AND ARROWHEAD. H7 gives the following description: "I immediately commenced opening a much larger space ; the first layer of earth was a vegetable mould, then a blue clay, then sand and blue clay. I found a large quantity of pieces of rocks, weighing from two to twenty-five pounds each, evidently thrown there with the inten- tion of hitting some object. It is necessary to remark that not the least sign of rocks or gravel is to be found nearer than from four or five hundred yards, and that these pieces were broken from larger rocks, and consequently carried here for some express purpose. After passing through these rocks I came to a layer of vegetable mould ; on the surface of this was found the first blue bone, with this a spear and axe ; the spear corresponds precisely with our common Indian spear ; the axe is different from any I have seen. Also on this earth were ashes nearly from six inches to one foot in depth, intermixed with burned wood and burned bones, broken spears, axes, knives, etc. The fire appeared to have been the largest on the head and neck of the animal, as the ashes and coals were much deeper here than in the rest of the body ; the skull was quite perfect, but so much burned that it crumbled to dust on the least touch ; two feet from this was found two teeth broken off from the jaw, but mashed entirely to pieces. By putting them together, they showed the animal to have been much larger than any heretofore discovered. It appeared by the situation of the skeleton, that the animal had been sunk with its hind feet in the mud and water, and, unable to extricate itself, had fallen on its right side, and in that situation was found and killed as above described ; consequently the hind and fore-feet on the right side were sunk deeper in the mud, and thereby saved from the effects of the fire ; therefore I was able to preserve the whole of the hind foot to the very last joint, and the fore foot, all but some few small bones that were too much decayed to be worth saving. Also between the rocks that had sunk through the ashes, were found large pieces of skin that appeared like fresh-tanned sole leather, strongly impregnated with the lye from the ashes ; and a great many of the sinews and arteries were plain to be seen on the earth and rocks, but in such a state as not to be moved except DR. KOCH'S SECOND DISCOVERY. in small pieces the size of a hand, which are now preserved in spirits." " Should any doubts arise in the mind of the reader of the correctness of the above statement, he can be referred to more than twenty witnesses who were present at the time of digging." l Subsequent accounts agree substantially with the above except that we never again hear of the " large pieces of skin," the " sinews and arteries," " which are now preserved in spirits." The presumption is that the author, upon mature reflection, arrived at the conclusion that in reality he had seen nothing of the kind, and in fact had never preserved such relics in spirits. Dr. Koch made a second discovery about one year subse- quently in Benton County, Missouri, in the bottom of the Pomme-de-Terre River, at about ten miles above its junction with the Osage Eiver. His description is as follows : " The second trace of human existence with these animals I found during the excavation of the Missourium. There was embedded immediately under the femur or hind-leg bone of this animal, an arrow-head of rose-colored flint, resembling those used by the American Indians, but of larger size. This was the only arrow- head immediately with the skeleton ; but in the same strata, at a distance of five or six feet, in a horizontal direction, four more arrow-heads were found. Three of these were of the same formation as the preceding. The fourth was of very rude work- manship. One of the last-mentioned three was of agate, the others of blue flint. These arrow-heads are indisputably the work of human hands. I examined the deposit in which they were embedded, and raised them out of their embedment with my own hands. The original stratum on which this river flowed at the time it was inhabited by the Missourium theristocaulodon and up to the time of its destruction, was of the upper green sand. On the surface of this stratum, and partly mingled with it, was the deposit of the before-described skeleton. The next stratum is from three to four feet in thickness, and consisted of 1 American Journal of Science and Arts, 1830, Art. xxxvi, p. 198, and copied by Mr. J. D. Dana, in his article before cited, May, 1875. DR. KOCH'S SECOND DISCOVERY. a brown alluvium of the Eocene region, and was composed of vegetable matters of a tropical production. It contained all the remainder of the skeleton." " Most of these vegetables were in a great state of preservation and consisted of a large quantity of cypress burs, wood and bark, tropical cane, ferns, palmetto leaves, several stumps of trees, and even the greater part of a flower of the strelitzia class, which when destroyed was not full blown. There was no sign or indication of any very large trees ; the cypresses that were discovered being the largest that were grow- ing here at the time. These various matters had been torn up by their roots and twisted and split into a thousand pieces apparently by lightning combined with a tremendous tempest or tornado ; and all were involved in one common ruin. Several veins of iron pyrites ran through the stratum." " The next over this formation was a layer of plastic clay of the Eocene region, also with iron pyrites. It was three feet in thickness ; over this a layer of conglomerate from nine to eighteen inches in thickness ; over this a layer of marl of the Pliocene region, from three to four feet in thickness; next, a second conglomerate from nine to eighteen inches in thickness. This was succeeded by a layer of yellow clay of the Pliocene; over this a third layer of conglomerate from nine to eighteen inches in thickness, and at last the present surface, consisting of brownish clay mingled with a few pebbles, and covered with large oak, maple, and elm trees, which were, as near as I could ascertain, from eighty to one hundred years old. In the centre of the above-mentioned deposit was a large spring which appeared to rise from the very bowels of the earth, as it was never affected by the severest rain, nor did it become lower by the longest draught." l The preced- ing accounts were presented to the St. Louis Academy of Sciences in a special paper several years later (1857). 2 Dr. Foster is inclined to believe that Dr. Koch was not mis- taken in his claimed discovery, having arrived at that opinion by pointedly questioning him on the subject a short time before 1 Dr. Koch's Pamphlet of 1843, pp. 13, 14, 27, copied by J. D. Dana. * Transactions of St. Louis Academy of Sciences, vol. i, 1857. 120 J. D. DANA VS. DR. KOCH. his (Koch's) death. 1 Charles Bau is also of the opinion that he was truthful. 2 Mr. J. D. Dana, however, discusses the case as follows : " In the account of the second case above cited Dr. Koch says that the Missourium was embedded in a brown alluvium of the Eocene region resting on the 'upper green sand; ' that next over it was plastic clay of the ' Eocene region' and beds of the ' Pliocene region.' He thus makes his Missou- rium to have come from the lower tertiary, and from a bed just above the green sand (cretaceous) when actually from quartenary beds ; and he uses the terms Eocene and Pliocene, as if he had no familiarity with geological facts or language. The earlier pamphlet of 1840 avoids this bad geology, ' the upper green sand,' in that being called simply quicksand and the other beds merely beds of clay and conglomerate. All the pamphlets sustain the conclusion that Dr. Koch knew almost nothing of geology, and that what he gradually picked up from inter- course with geologists, he generally made much of but seldom was able to use rightly." 3 The same critic says : " In zoologi- cal knowledge he was equally deficient," and cites the fact of the discoverer recognizing the resemblance to the mastodon, still makes the animal an inhabitant of the watercourses like the hippopotamus ; states that his food " consisted as much of vegetables as of flesh, although he undoubtedly consumed a great abundance of the latter," and makes the marvelous revela- tion that he "was capable of feeding liims'lf with his fore-foot after the manner of the beaver or otter." Mr. Dana continues : "He says that one arrow-head lay 'immediately under the femur or thigh-bone,' and he further states in his later article of 1857, that 'he carefully thought to investigate the point as to its having been brought thither after the deposit of the bone ' and decided against it. The observation and conclusion would have been more satisfactory had the author been a better ob- 1 Foster's Pre-Historic Races, p. 62. 2 Smithsonian Report, 1872, p. 396, in a note to his article on North Ameri- can Stone Implements. 3 J. D. Dana in American Journal of Science and Arts, May, 1875, p. 340. KOCH A MISTAKEN ENTHUSIAST. server." " The descriptions of the deposits in Gasconade County containing the remains of an animal the principal part of which was consumed by fire is a still more unsatisfactory basis for a safe conclusion as to age. But in the article of 1857, he says that the layer of ashes, etc., ' was covered by strata or alluvial deposits consisting of clay, sand and soil, from eight to nine feet thick, forming the bottom of the Bourbeuse (River] in general,' which seems to make it almost certain that the beds were of quite recent origin." 1 Mr. Dana considers Dr. Koch's evidence as "very doubtful." 2 Dr. Foster has figured a fossil which, for a better name, he has designated as a " stone hatchet," from the modified drift of Jersey County, Illinois. 3 He is positive as to the position in which it was found, but has doubt as to its human origin. The probabilites are that its peculiar shape is due to its exposure to atmospheric agents. He remarks, however : " On the whole, I will not positively assert that this specimen is of human workmanship, but I affirm that if it had been recovered from a plowed field I should have un- hesitatingly said it was an Indian hatchet." In the Proceedings of the Philadelphia Academy of /Sciences for July, 1859, Dr. Holmes describes the occurrence of fragments of pottery in close proximity with the bones of the mastodon and megatherium, on the Ashley Eiver in South Carolina. The case, however, has not been considered authentic by scientific men. Dr. Holmes is possibly mistaken. 4 Col. Charles Whittlesey, in 1838, saw at 1 Article cited, p. 344. 9 Though the above argument by so eminent a specialist must satisfy any one that Dr. Koch's claim, as it now stands, is valueless to science ; still, it is due to the memory of the latter, to admit that he was the most indefatigable and successful collector in his department in this country. Though unscientific himself, his service to science must ever be recognized. The great Mastodon in the British Museum is a monument to his persevering research. Perhaps the disposition to acknowledge his services, has unduly biased the judgment of many in favor of his groundless claim. 3 Pre-Historic Races, p. 67. 4 " But it is one of those isolated cases which require further investiga- tion before full credence can be attached to it." Foster's Pre-Historic Races, p. 71. 122 ANCIENT HEARTHS. Portsmouth, Ohio, on the Ohio River, remains of ancient fire- places situated eighteen to twenty feet above low water and about fifteen feet below the surface. He states, "at low water and thence up to a height of twelve or fifteen feet is a bed of sand and transported gravel, containing pebbles of quartz, granite, sandstone and limestone, derived partly from the adjacent Carboniferous and Devonian rocks and partly from the northern drift, the upper part much the coarsest. On this is a layer of blue quicksand from one to five feet thick, in which is a timber- bed including large numbers of the trunks, branches, stumps and leaves of trees, such as are now growing on the Ohio, princi- pally birch, black-ash, oak and hickory. Ovar the dirt-bed is the usually loamy yellow clay of the valley, fifteen to thirty feet thick, on which are very extensive works of the Mound-builders. In and near the bottom of this undisturbed homogeneous river- loam I saw two places where fire had been built on a circular collection of small stones, a part of which were then embedded in the bank." : Near these fire-places the writer of the above found the membranous covering of common river shells (the Unios). We think that no geologist familiar with the constant changes of the Ohio River bed, will consider that the conditions surrounding these ancient fire-places warrant us in assigning them a much greater antiquity than we attach to the Mound- builders' works in the neighborhood. In 1846, Sir Charles Lyell, when at New Orleans, made an estimate of the time required to account for the immense annual deposit of the Mis- sissippi River in the neighborhood of its delta. From a compu- tation based on certain data, which assumed the area of the alluvial plain which is the result of those deposits, to equal 30,000 square miles, several hundred feet thick in some places, he estimated that probably 100,000 years would be requisite. 2 Subsequently, during the process of excavating for the New Orleans Gas Works, it was found necessary to cut through four 1 Antiquity of Man in the United States, Transactions of American Asso- ciation for Advancement of Science. Chicago, 1869. 2 Second Visit to the United States- AGE OF THE MISSISSIPPI DELTA. 123 buried cypress forests. At the depth of sixteen feet and on the fourth forest level, a human skeleton distinctly of the Indian type, 1 was found under the roots of a cypress tree, together with burnt wood Dr. Dowler, dividing the history of the delta into, 1. The epoch of grasses or aquatic plants ; 2. That of the cypress (Taxodium distichum) basins, and 3. That of the live-oak platform, tabulates the age of the strata overlying the skeleton as follows : Epoch of aquatic plants 1,500 years Epoch of the cypress basin, in which he assumes only two successive growths 11,400 " Epoch of live-oak platform 1,500 " Total 14,400 years The basis for his estimate of the age of the cypress basins was the computed age of the trees of the fourth level, ten feet in diameter and probably reaching 5,700 years. 2 Sir Charles Lyell in a later work, though still adhering to his former estimate of the time required in which to form the delta, cannot accept Dr. Dowler' s great antiquity for the remains. 3 The question in hand of course involves the question of the antiquity of the deposit where the skeleton was found, which is well-nigh identical with the vexed question of the age of the delta. The very diversity of opinion on this subject precludes the possibility of its con- sideration here. We will content ourselves by citing two esti- mates in addition to those already given. Professor Edward Hitchcock calculated that the entire delta embraced a bulk of matter equal to 2,720 cubic miles, for the deposit of which he thought 14,204 years necessary. 4 Humphries and Abbot think that both the area and thickness of the deposit have been over- stated, and instead of 30,000 square miles for the former, they 1 Nott and Gliddon's Types of Mankind, p. 336, and Lycll's Antiquity of Man, p. 43. 2 Tableau of New Orleans, 1852, cited by Foster, Pre-Historic Races, p. 73. 3 Antiquity of Man, p. 43. 4 Surface Geology, p. 92, Smithsonian Contributions to Knowledge, vol. ii. 124 THE NEW ORLEANS SKELETON NOT VERY ANCIENT. claim only 19,450. As to the latter, they estimate the thickness of the alluvial matter as but twenty-five feet on the river banks along the St. Francis swamp ; thirty-five along the Yazoo swamp, and continuing of uniform thickness to Baton Rouge ; while the artesian well at New Orleans showed it in that locality to reach a point forty feet below the level of the Gulf. These authors base their calculations as to the age of the deposits on the following ascertained facts : the total yearly contributions of the river equal a prism two hundred and sixty-eight feet in height, with a base of one mile square ; two hundred and sixty-two feet is the supposed mean yearly advance of the river ; the original mouth of the Mississippi was near the afflux of the Bayou Plaque- mine, and has hence progressed two hundred and twenty miles since it began to empty its deposits into the Gulf. Supposing these data to be correct, they estimate that only four thousand four hundred years have elapsed since that period. 1 This would give the skeleton alluded to a comparatively recent origin. We are inclined to believe that the above estimate assigns a period for the formation of the delta as much too short as that of Sir Charles was too long. As to the antiquity of the skeleton, probably Dr. Foster's solution of the question is as near correct as any that ever may be proposed : " Thus, then, with these carefully-observed computations before us, we are not prepared to accept the high antiquity assigned by Dr. Dowlor to the human remains found beneath the surface at New Orleans. What he regards as four buried forests which once flourished on the spot, may be nothing more than driftwood brought down the river in former times which became embedded in the silts and sediments which were deposited on what was then the floor of the Gulf." 3 If all the indications were verified, we should be justified in assigning man a much greater antiquity in the Rocky Mountain region and on the Pacific slope than in any other part of North America. Mr. E. L. Berthoud collected numerous stone implements in what he considers to be tertiary gravel on Crow Creek and in the region of the South Platte River, Lat. 40 N., Long. 104 W. 1 Physics and Hydraulics of the Mississippi, pp. 150 et seg., and 435. s Pre-Historic Races, p. 76. PROFESSOR WHITNEY'S TESTIMONY. 125 Two shells secured in the same locality by him have been pro- nounced a corbicula and a rangia respectively, and are thought to belong to the older Pliocene or possibly to the Miocene. 1 The evidence in this case is, however, unsatisfactory, and cannot be admitted to be of scientific value without further authentication. In 1857 a portion of a human cranium was found associated with bones of the mastodon at the depth of one hundred and eighty feet below the surface in a mining 'shaft at Table Moun- tain, California. Dr. C. F. Winslow sent this fragment to the Boston Natural History Society, but no importance was attached to it, since no other evidence other than that furnished by work- men in the mine could be obtained. Subsequently, when an entire skull was reported to have been found in the gold drift near Angelos in Calaveras County, in a shaft one hundred and fifty feet deep, the intelligent portion of the community pro- nounced the finder guilty of a scientific fraud, and it is not yet a certainty that their decision was incorrect. However, Professor Whitney, of the State Geological Survey, upon hearing of the case examined the mine, and found that the shaft passed through five beds of lava and volcanic tufa and four beds of auriferous gravel. It was in one of these beds that the skull was said to have been found. Some of the cemented gravel was still adhering to the skull when it came into the Professor's possession, and Professor Wyman, to whom it was submitted subsequently, refers to the difficulty which he had in removing the incrustation. Professor Whitney, on the testimony of the possessor of the skull, pronounced it an authentic "find," and while his decision has been acquiesced in by a number of scientific gentlemen of repute, Professor Wyman among them, still the great majority, we believe, are unwilling to rest their faith on such slender evidence. Though no crack was apparent through which the skull might have fallen from the surface, such might have existed at an earlier period. In a region which is the product of volcanic action there is room for suspicion, especially in cases like both of these, where, as Sir Charles Lyell has said, no geologist was 1 Philadelphia Acad. of Natural Sciences. Proceedings, Part 1, 1872. Also Foster, pp. 69-71. 126 INTER-GLACIAL RELICS IN OHIO. present at the moment of discovery to see the fossil in situ and extricate it with his own hands from the matrix which con- tained it. President Edward Orton, of the Ohio State University, recently called our attention to the discovery of relics of human workmanship found many years ago near Waynesville, Ohio, at the depth of over twelve feet below the surface. Dr. Robert Furnas, a clergyman of the Society of Friends, courteously furnished us the following statement : " The relic was obtained about the year 1824. It was in the process of digging a well for my grandfather. My father, then twenty-one years of age, was performing the work of excavation, when at the depth of thirteen or fourteen feet he came to a dark mould about two feet deep, on the top of which was lying a thimble and a piece of coarse cloth six inches wide and a yard long. The outer edge containing the fringe showing the end of the chain or warp at the end of the fabric and point of fastening in weaving." " The removal above after passing through the soil consisted of solid clay of a yellowish-brown color. The farm was purchased by my grandfather in 1803, and occupied by him to the time of his death in 1863. He was the pioneer of the place, having settled there in an unbroken forest. The location is on the top of the hill on the east side of the Little Miami River forty or fifty feet above the level of the stream. The cloth soon lost all traces of texture on coming in contact with the air. The thimble was in a pretty good state of preservation." l Professor Orton, who has examined the locality and studied the case in hand, expressed the opinion to us that it was not only authentic, but (while not amounting to absolute proof) seemed to associate man's works with a deposit which has furnished remains of the mastodon. The Professor considers the dark mould referred to as that upon which the relics were lying to be of an inter-glacial vegetable deposit peculiar to Southern Ohio, and once constituting an ancient surface of the land inhabited with animal life. 2 The 1 This letter bears date December 24, 1876, written from Waynesville, Ohio, and signed by Robert F. Furnas, M.D. 2 Prof. Orton in Geology of Highland County in " Progress of the Ohio INTER-GLACIAL MAN IN NEW JERSEY. 127 cloth from its coarse character bears a resemblance to that of the mounds, while its length of just a yard is suggestive of more modern measurements. 1 Dr. C. C. Abbott has unquestionably discovered many palaeo- lithic implements in the glacial drift in the valley of the Dela- ware Kiver near Trenton, New Jersey. Among a number of rude implements from the undisturbed gravel of the region is a spear-head, found six feet from the surface, on the site of the Lutheran Church, Broad Street, Trenton, N. J. The circum- stances surrounding it were such as to justify the conclusion that the weapon had not gotten into its position where found " sub- sequently to the deposition of the containing layer of pebbles." Subsequent investigation has brought to light sixty well fin- ished flint implements, all of them from what appears to be undisturbed drift. Some of the relics have as many as from twenty to forty planes of cleavage, all equally weathered. The specimens are not unlike their neolithic counterparts taken from the aboriginal graves and stone cists of Tennessee. 2 Dr. Ab- bott concludes that the gravel, boulders, and rude implements associated with them were deposited by ice-rafts on the descent of a glacier down the valley, and that man more rude and ancient than the red Indian dwelt at the foot of the glacier, being driven south by its advance and following it again to the Geological Survey in 1870," published 1871, and in vol. i. of State Geological Report, p. 442. 1 Prof. Winchell remarks : " The very general interest that is being excited in this country in the problems that invest the history of the drift is my only excuse for calling your attention to the prevalence of vegetable remains in the Drift of the North-west, and to the wide divergence of higli authorities on the relative position of those remains in respect to the boulder clay." See Proceed- ings, p. 56, Am. Aits, for Adv. Sci, 1875, 24th Meeting. s Eleventh Annual Report of the Peabody Museum, p. 226, Cambridge, 1878. Dr. Abbott concludes his interesting report by citing a letter from Mr. Thomas Belt, dated Grant, Colorado, June 29, 1878, in which the writer reports the discovery of " a small human skull in undisturbed loess, in a railway cutting about two miles from Denver, near the watershed between the South Platte and Clear Creek. All the plains are covered with a drift deposit of granitic and quartzose pebbles, overlaid by a sandy and calcareous loam closely resem- bling the diluvial clay and the loess of Europe." The skull was found at a point three and a half feet from the surface. Ibid, p. 257. 128 INTER-GLACIAL MAN IN NEW JERSEY. north upon its return. 1 Professors Shaler and Pumpelly, how- ever, while considering the deposit as of glacial origin, think it was subsequently modified by water-action. Dr. Abbott, with great fairness, admits that, "Inasmuch as such subsequent action may have occurred long after the final deposition of the gravel, as true glacial drift, the antiquity of the contained stone imple- ments is proportionately lessened." Professor Shaler, after a partial examination of the locality, remarks that " if these re- mains are really those of man, they prove the existence of inter- glacial man on this part of our shore." 2 Dr. Abbott and Prof. Aug. E. Grote believe that the Eskimo is the surviving rep- resentative of paleolithic and glacial man in North America. The latter believes that man reached this continent during the Pliocene, and before the ice-period had interfered with a warm climate in the north. 3 Recently Dr. Abbott has said: "It may be that, as investigations are carried further, it will result not so much in proving man of very great antiquity, as in showing how much more recent than usually supposed was the final disappear- ance of the glacier." 4 On page 30 we referred to mounds exam- ined in the Northwest, K lat. 47, W. long. 98 38', by General H.W. Thomas. 5 In these mounds crania indicating a very low type of intelligence were discovered in form resembling skulls of the great Gibbon monkey. 6 From the standpoint of the de- 1 Tenth Annual Report of Peabody Museum, Cambridge, 1877, vol. ii, pp. 30-43; American Naturalist, June, 1876, p. 329. 2 Tenth Annual Report of Peabody Museum, p. 47. 3 Grote, The Peopling of America, American Naturalist, April, 1877. 4 Primitive Industry, by C. C. Abbott, M.D., 1881, p. 551. A truly scientific work. 5 Sixth Annual Report of the United States Geological Survey, under Dr. Hayden in 1872, p. 657. 6 General Thomas gives the following account of this form of skull discov- ered by him, p. 657 : " It is unlike that of any human being to-day alive on this continent ; the frontal bone being low, receding, growing narrow and pinched from the brows up ; the top of the head depressed in the centre. The cavity of the cranium is full seven inches long, and a scant four and a half inches wide. The orbital ridges or eyebrows are excessively developed, like those of the great Gibbon monkey. In fact the whole skull resembles that, of the great Gibbon monkey. The malar or cheek bones run down very low and deep toward the lower jaw, are set very far to the front, and are not wide at top, but widen very much toward the bottom. The nose, and here is the ANTIQUITY OF MAN IN THE NORTH-WEST. 129 velopment theory (and by this we do not mean evolution, but that progression which takes place when a savage advances from his low state toward civilization), the evidences are abundant that man is older by far on the Western side of the continent and perhaps in the Northwest, than elsewhere in the new world. Though this discovery by General Thomas does not reach back in antiquity to geologic times, still it cannot be denied that a considerable period must have elapsed before low-type crania of the Northwest could have developed into the crania of the Ohio Valley Mounds. Professor James Orton, in commenting on the investigations of Wilson on the coast of Equador, refers to the discovery of gold, copper and stone vestiges of a former population in the system of terraces tiaced from the coast through the province of Esmeraldas to Quito. He remarks: " In all cases these relics are situated below high-tide mark, in a bed of marine sediment, from which he (Wilson) infers that this part of the country formerly stood higher above the sea. If this be true, vast must be the antiquity of these remains, for the upheaval and subsidence of the coast is exceedingly slow/' 1 The antiquity of man in Europe is an established fact, but how anomaly, is much more aquiline than that of the Indian. The superior maxillary is one-third deeper and much more prominent than the Indian's. The inferior maxillary is of uncommon prominence, depth, and power, far exceeding that of the Indian. The mouth is narrow and long, more dog- shaped than the Indian's. The foramen magnum or aperture at base of skull, where the spinal cord enters the head, is peculiarly smalL The condyloid pro- cesses are full, oblong, flat on the working surfaces, and at such an angle as to set the head upward and back more than any race we know to-day on this con- tinent. Set one of these skulls, without the lower jaw, on the table, and a line drawn from the upper jaw perpendicularly upward would be a good inch and a half in front of the forehead. Set on the lower jaw and it would be two inches. Mr. R. D. Guttgisal, formerly an engineer on the Mexican Central Railroad, in connection with some friends, opened a mound at Chihuahua, on the line of that railroad. The skulls resembled those I have described (so he informs me) in every particular. He especially remembers the somewhat bird-shaped head, and the excessively small foramen magnum. The bodies were not interred horizontally there, but leaning backward as if in a rocking-chair. Professor H. II. Smith, University of Pennsylvania, has one of the skulls. 1 Professor James Orton, The Andes and the Amazons, third ed., p. 109, New York, 1876. 9 130 MAN OP RECENT ORIGIN IN AMERICA. remote is a question which science as yet fails to answer. When geologic research opens up Central Asia, no doubt man will be found to have existed there a long period anterior to his advent in Europe. But for the decadence of Arabic glory and learning we should now probably be in possession of a fund of information concerning that region as well as of man's early history. Were the discovery of the human skull in the gold drift of California an authentic case, we should have strong reasons for supposing a remote intercourse existed between Asia and the Pacific coast. It is quite certain the crania of the North-west Mounds, as com- pared with those of the Mississippi region, clearly point to that fact. We have seen that as yet no truly scientific proof of man's great antiquity in America exists. This conclusion is concurred in by most eminent authorities. 1 At present we are probably not warranted in claiming for him a much longer residence on this continent than that assigned him by Sir John Lubbock, namely, 3,000 years. Future research may develop the feet that man is as old here as in Europe, and that he was contem- poraneous with the Mastodon. As the case stands in the present state of knowledge, it furnishes strong presumptive evidence that man is not autochthonic here, but exotic, having originated in the old world, perhaps thousands of years prior to reaching the new. 1 Sir John Lubbock, alluding to the changes that have transpired in the condition of man from his first appearance in America, says : " But even if we attribute to these changes all the importance which ever has been claimed for them, they will not require an antiquity of more than three thousand years. I do not, of course, deny that the period may have been very much greater, but in my opinion, at least, it need not be greater." Pre-Historic Times, p. 234, London, 1865. Dr. Foster, after giving many of the reputed proofs of man's antiquity here, sums up the argument in the following language: "The evidence, it must be confessed, rests, in most cases, upon the testimony of a single observer, and besides, there has not been a recurrence of ' finds ' in the same deposit (except in the gravel beds of Colorado and Wyoming, which require further investigation to command an unqualified belief), as in the valley of the Somme and in the European caves, which is so conclusive as to the existence of man as contemporary with the great Pachyderms." Foster's Pre-IIistoric Races, p. 71. CHAPTEK III. DIVERSITY OP OPINION AS TO THE ORIGIN OP THE ANCIENT AMERICANS. Conflict of Discovery and Dogmatism Antipodes Arabic Learning in the 8th Century Spirit of Early Writers on America Common Opinion as to the Origin of the Americans Father Duran Lost Tribes of Israel Garcia Lascarbot Villagutierre Torquemada Pineda, etc. Abbe Domenech Modern Views Pre-Columbian Colonization Plato's Atlantis Kings- borough The Book of Mormon Phoenicians George Jones Greek and Egyptian Theories The Tartars Japanese and Chinese Theories Fusang The Mongol Theory Traces of Buddhism White-Man's-Land The Northmen The Welsh Claim. "TTARIOUS perplexing problems presented themselves to the V minds of the discoverers of the new continent for solution, as well as to their immediate successors, which were greatly intensified by the dogmatic teaching of the times. The status of science in the Middle Ages was defined from time to time by some ecclesiastical utterance without any reference to the phe- nomena of nature or the revelations of accidental discovery. We say accidental, for no designed or systematic investigation was so much as tolerated, much less encouraged by friendly recogni- tion. This unfortunate antagonism to progress had its founda- tion chiefly in ignorance, and its origin in the misinterpretation and perversion of Sacred Scripture. Two questions, especially in view of the dogmatic utterances of the day, presented grave difficulties to the minds of the dis- coverers and their successors in the New World. " Is the world a sphere ? " " Are the Inhabitants of the Indias of a common origin with the rest of mankind ? " These were the most serious problems that forced themselves upon their consideration. As 132 ANTIPODES. long ago as 280 B. c., the investigations of Aristarchus of Samos, though not accepted by antiquity, suggested an affirmative answer to the first question. But the Fathers of the Church had spoken authoritatively on this subject at quite an early day, and consequently left no room for speculation. St. Augustine discusses the question as follows : " But as to the fable that there are antipodes, that is to say, men on the opposite side of the earth, where the sun rises when it sets to us, men who walk with their feet opposite ours, that is on no ground credible. And, indeed, it is not affirmed that this has been learned by historical knowledge, but by scientific conjecture, on the ground that the earth is suspended within the cavity of the sky, and that it has as much room on the one side of it as on the other ; hence they say that the part which is beneath us must also be inhabited. But they do not remark that although it be supposed or scien- tifically demonstrated that the world is of a round and spherical form, yet it does not follow that the other side of the earth is bare of water ; or even though it be bare, does it immediately follow that it is peopled. For Scripture, which proves the truth of its historical statements by the accomplishment of its prophe- cies, gives no false information ; and it is too absurd to say that some men might have taken ship and traversed the whole wide ocean, and crossed from this world to the other, and that thus even the inhabitants of that distant region are descended from that one first man." 1 Though, during the kalifate of Al-Mamoun (A. D. 813-833) Arabic learning had well-nigh demonstrated the globular form of the earth and determined its circumference, according to their measurements, to be about 24,000 miles, still not a man in Chris- tendom ventured to advocate the theory for almost half a dozen 1 De Cimtate Dei, lib. xvi, cap. 9. Above I have availed myself of the admirable translation by Rev. Marcus Dods, vol. ii, p. 118. Edinburgh, 1871. On the subject of Antipodes we may refer the reader to the view of Cosmas Indicopleustes, an Egyptian of the middle of the 6th century. See Draper's Conflict between Religion and Science, p. 65, and the opinion of the Venerable Bede, cited by the same author. See further Bancroft's Native Races of the Pacific States, vol. v, pp. 1-8, and Ogilby's America, pp. 6-7. ARABIC LEARNING IN THE EIGHTH CENTURY. 133 centuries, such was the power of the ban put upon investigation which ran counter to the pre-expressed opinions of a dark age. The theories of Tascanelli and the observations of Columbus on the polar star prepared the way for the great triumph achieved by De Gama in 1497-8, in his voyage around the Cape of Good Hope ; and the question of the globular form of the earth was . forever set at rest twenty-two years afterwards by the voyage of Magellan. 1 When it was definitely determined that America was a continent of itself and not the eastern extremity of Indie,, the fact that it was inhabited gave rise to speculations which have since been often repeated. Through an unaccountable misapprehension, not only the questions of the origin of the Americans, but the manner of their separation from the rest of the race, together with the routes they pursued in reaching the new world all were thought to be capable of solution by the light of Scripture. The education of the early writers enables us to account for the intolerance with which they looked upon any other solution of the problem than that which alone would conform to the teachings of the church. 2 It is true that the natural nobility of character possessed by such writers as Las Casas, Duran and a few others, tempered the fanaticism which had been inculcated by education, and enabled 1 R. H. Major's Prince Henry of Portugal, chap. xxi. London, 1868, 8vo. Draper's Conflict, pp. 163-5. s The narrowness of the attainments of the " educated " in Spain in the 17th century is portrayed by Buckle : " Books, unless they were books of devo- tion, were deemed utterly useless ; no one consulted them, no one collected them ; and until the 18th century, Madrid did not possess a single public library. * * * De Torres, who was himself a Spaniard, and was educated at Salamanca early in the 18th century, declares that he had studied in the uni- versity for five years before he had heard that such things as the mathematical sciences existed. So late as the year 1771, the same university publicly refused to allow the discoveries of Newton to be taught ; and assigned as u reason, that the system of Newton was not so consonant with revealed religion as the system of Aristotle." History of Civilization in England, vol. ii, pp. 72-3. New York, 1861. Of course these remarks apply to Spain's period of misfortune and decline, but it must also be remembered that the spirit of intolerance which alone brought about that condition was at its height about the time of the discovery of America. 134 OPINION AS TO THE ORIGIN OF THE AMERICANS. them to furnish invaluable information concerning the real con- dition and traditions of the so-called Indians. But, upon the other hand, there were great numbers of blind, unscrupulous ecclesiastics who either destroyed outright the manuscripts and picture-writing of the natives, committing them to the flames, or so warping tradition in order that it might conform to their mistaken theology, that in many cases the most precious infor- mation is irretrievably lost. Such men could hardly be expected to have treated calmly and with any degree of liberality the question before us one which has so often been asked, but as yet never satisfactorily answered, and one which in the present state of knowledge cannot be. 1 The unanimity with which the most celebrated writers on the Americans during three centuries following the discovery, fixed upon a solution of the problem, will be best illustrated in the following pages : One of the most ingenious and at the same time most calmly expressed opinions on the origin problem is that recorded by Father Duran, a native of Tezcuco in Mexico, in his History of New Spain, written in the year 1585. 2 1 Mr. Bancroft has illustrated the spirit of this latter class by quoting a passage from Garcia' s Origen de Los Indios, Madrid, 1729, p. 248. It is certainly one of the most venomous and narrow-minded utterances on record. See Ban- croft's Native Races, vol. v, p. 4. 2 Historia Antigua de la Nueva Espaila con Noticias de los Ritos y Costum- bres de los Indios y Explication del Calendario Mexicano, por F. Diego Duran, Escrita en el ano de 1585 ; MS. in three vols. folio of upwards of 1000 pp. each. On p. 507, torn, iii, we find notice of December, 1579, as the date at which that stage of the work was reached. Copy in the library of Congress at Washington. From Beristain's Biblioteca Hispano- Americana, Septentrional, torn, i, p. 442, Mexico, 1816, we quote the following : " Duran (F. Diego) a quien el Illmo. Eguara, p. 324, de su Biblioteca da equivocadamente el nombre de Pedro, y a quien el Jesuita Clavigero llama Fernando con igual equivocacion. Fue natural de Tezcuco, antigua corte de los Emperadores Megicanos ; y Profeso el Orden de Santo Domingo, en el Convento Imperial de Megico, a 8 de Margo de 1556. Era varon Docto en Theologla, y de vasta erudicion en la historia antigua de los Indios ; pero molestado de enfermeda- des en si^s anos ultimos, no pudo dar a luz publica los bellos libros, que tenia compuestos, los mas amenos y gustosos, que hasta entonces se habian escrito sobre las cosas de Indias, como se explica el Illmo. Daila Padilla, y repetieron despues los criticos franceses Querif y Echard. El referido Arzo-Bispo anade, LOST TRIBES OF ISRAEL. 135 He was convinced that the natives had a foreign origin, and that they performed a long journey of many years duration in their migration to the new world. He arrived at these conclusions on account of several considerations, some of which are as follows : The natives had no definite knowledge of their origin, some claiming to have proceeded from fountains and springs of water, others that they were natives of certain caves, and others that they were created by the gods, while all admit that they had come from other lands. Furthermore, they preserved in their traditions and pictures the memory of a journey in which they had suffered hunger, thirst, nakedness and all manner of afflic- tions, "with which," he adds, "my opinion and supposition is confirmed that these natives are of the ten tribes of Israel that Salmanasar, king of the Assyrians, made prisoners and carried to Assyria in the time of Hoshea, king of Israel, and in the time of Hezekiah, king of Jerusalem, as can be seen in the fourth Book of the Kings, seventeenth chapter, where it says that Israel was carried away from their land to Assyria, etc., from whence, says Esdras, in Book Fourth, chapter third, they went to live in a land, remote and separated, which had never been inhabited, to which they had a long and tedious journey of a year and a half, for which reason it is supposed these people are found in all the islands and lands of the ocean consti- tuting the Occident." 1 The preceding opinion was concurred in que el P. Juan de Torar, Jesuita Megicano, en cuyo poder paraban los manu- scritos de su paisano Duran, se los dio al P. Jose de Acosta a quien servieron mucho para su Historia Natural y Moral de las Indias, en lo qual convienen Pinelo y D. Nicolas Antonio. Los dichos MSS. eran : Historia de los Indioa de la N. E. AntiguaUas de los Indios dela N. E. 1 " Ouanto a lo prhnero tendremos por principal fundamento el ser esta Nacion y Gente Indiana advenediza de estrafias y remotas regeiones, y que en BU venida a poseer esta Tierra liizo un largo y prolijo camino, en el cual gasto mnchoB meses y anos para llegar a ella, como de su relacion y pinturas se colige, y como de algunos viejos ancianos de muchos dias he procurado saber para sacar esta opinion en limpio ; y dado caso que algunos cuenten algunas falsas fabulas conviene a saber, que nacieron de unas fuentes y manantiales de airua ; otros, que nacieron de unas cuebas ; otros, que su generacion es de los Dioses ; lo cual clara y abiertamente se ve ser fabola, y que ellos mismos ignnran su origen y principio, dado caso que siempre confiessan bavre venidode tierras; y 136 LOST TRIBES OF ISRAEL. by many Spanish writers ; but the first English writer to sup- port the theory was Thorowgood, in his work entitled, Jewes in America. 1 I/Estrange, who replied to this work, controverted the theory of the lost tribes of Israel, but concluded that Shera was the progenitor of the Americans ; that he was ninety-eight years old at the time of the flood, and was not present at the building of Babel. 2 " Thus far," he quaintly remarks, " have I offered my week conceptions, first, how America may be collected to have bin first planted, not denying the Jewes leave to goe into America, but not admitting them to be the chief or prime planters thereof, for I am of opinion, that the Americans origi- nated before the captivity of the ten tribes, even from Sem's near progeny." 3 Garcia presents an argument in favor of the same theory, based upon the presence of Scripture names in Peru and Yucatan. He is positive that the word Peru has the same meaning as Ophir, the name of the grandson of Heber, from whom the Hebrews derive their name. In Yucatan he also finds the name loctan, identical with that of Ophir's father. 4 asi lo lie hallado pintado eu sus autiguas pinturas, doude senalan grandes trabajos de hambre, sed, y desnudez, con otras iuuumerables aflicioues que en <51 pasaron basta llegar a esta tierra y poblada ; con lo cual confirmo mi opinion y sospecha de que estos Naturales seau de aquellas diez Tribus de Isrrael que Salmanasar, Rey de los Asirios cautivo y transmigro de Asiria en tiempo de Ozeas, Rey de Isrrael, y en tiempo de Ozequias, Rey de Jerusalem, como se prodra ver en el cuarto Libro de los Reyes, capitulo diez y siete, donde dice que fue trausladado Isrrael de su tierra los Asirios basta el dia de hoy,etc.; de las cuales dice Esdras en el Libro cuarto, capitulo trece, que se pasaron a vivir a una tierra remota y apartada que nunca habia sido babitada ; a la cual babia largo y pro- lijo camino de ano y medio, donde agora se hallan estas Gentes de todas las Islas y Tierra firma del mar oceano hacia la parte de occidente. Historia Antigua de la Nueva EspaTia, torn, i., pp. 1-2, MS. 1 London, small quarto, 1650 ; we have both this and the edition of 1660 before us. * Harmon L'Estrange, Kt., Americans No Jewes ; or Improbabilities that the Americans are of that Race, p. 4. 1652 ; quarto, London. 8 Id., p. 13. " De suerte que aviendose conservado este nombre Pirn, que es lo mismo que Ophir, en aquellas tierras, y hallandose que los moradores dellas parecen a los Hebreos en muchas cosas, bien se signe que a quellos Indios, y los demas proceden de Ophir nieto de Heber de quien los Hebreos, y su lengua tomaron el nombre. Tambien se halla el nombre de lectan padre de Ophir eu la provincia GARCIA AND HIS SUCCESSORS. 137 However, with a determination not to be surpassed by any other theorist who might assume the unity of the race as the basis of his conjectures, he offers a plan for populating the new world so comprehensive that no room was left for originality in any who might follow him it the same field. Hispaniola, Cuba and neighboring isles, he believed to have been peopled by the Car- thaginians. The natives of other parts proceeded from the ten lost tribes ; others from the people whom Ophir commanded to colonize Peru; others from the people living in the isle Atlantis; others from regions adjoining that island, and by means of it passed to America ; others from the Greeks ; others from the Phoenicians, and still others from the Chinese and Tartars. 1 Lescarbot cites five opinions on the subject, all based more or less on scriptural authority, and adds his own that the Ameri- cans were the descendants of Noah. He thinks it not impossible for voyagers to have reached the western continent when Solo- mon's ships were sent on voyages of three years' duration. 2 Herrera, with characteristic soberness, states that because of the lack of knowledge concerning the proximity of the continents at the "ends of the earth" he is unable to say positively from whom the natives were descended, but it seems most reasonable to him to suppose that they are the descendants of men who passed to the West Indies by the proximity of the land. 3 Vil- lagutierre reiterates the same opinion, believing that Noah's descendants were able to reach the new world either by land in some unknown quarter, or by swimming, or by embarking in canoes and balsas, for short distances. He supposes that animals reached the new continent in the first two ways. 4 Torquemada, after a long discussion of the subject, falls in with this view, quo. oy sc llama Yucatan, en la Nueva Espafia, qne no es pcquefio fundemento para provar que ya qne 110 pnsiesse aquel nombre lectan, por no haver ido a aquella tierra, pudo ser que lo diesse su hijo Ophir." Origen de Io8 Indios, p. 323. Ed., Valencia, 1607. 1 Origen de los Indios, ( Valencia,- 1607), p. 485. s Hist, de la Nouvelle France, lib. i, cap. iii. p. 25. Paris, 1611. 3 Hitioria General de los Hechoa de los Custettanos, Madrid, 1728-30, foL decada 1 , lib. i, cap. vi. * Historia de la Conquista Itza, p. 27, Madrid, 1701, fol. 138 ECHEVARRIA Y VEITIA. adding, however, the opinion that, because of their color, they in all probability were descended from the sons and grandsons of Ham. 1 Pineda adopts substantially the preceding opinion, but improves upon it somewhat by poin cing out the particular branch of the family of Ham, to which we may trace the origin of the first Americans. For some reason, perhaps no more apparent to himself than us, he designates Naphtuhim, son of Mezraim and grandson of Ham, as their progenitor. He thinks that the colonization was accomplished soon after the confusion of tongues, and may have been effected in any of the numerous ways we have previously mentioned. He cites the tradition of Votan as a proof. 3 Siguenza y Gongora and Sister Agnes de la Cruz, according to Clavigero, were the authors of this opinion, who further designated Egypt as the starting-point for that important expedition of colonists. 3 Echevarria y Veitia treats the subject fully, tracing it through the traditions of the people. He cites their creation and flood myths, their account of the building of the Tower of Babel and the confusion of tongues, their dispersion upon the face of the earth, and the passage of seven families to the new world (to Hue hue Tlappalari) by means of balsas, with which they crossed rivers and arms of the sea which they encountered in their jour- ney. Though minute in his details, he does nothing more in this respect than other important writers to whom we shall refer in a further chapter, except that his computations by means of the Mexican calendar have enabled him to assign dates to some of these occurrences, which, though they probably are not accurate, are at least interesting. His study of the Mexican paintings con- vinces him that the natives had a foreign origin. 4 The same author 1 Aunqne la verdad es que ellos,por hablar mas propriamente y los otros de quien descendieron, por Generation Natural, son de los Hijos de Noe * * * y Begun lo que tenemos dicho, en otra parte, acerca de el color de estas gentes, no tendria por cosa descaminada, creer que son descendientes de los Hijos, u Nietos de Cham, tercero Hijo de Noe.Monarqiiia Ind., torn, i, p. 30. 2 Pineda in Soc. Mex. Geog. Boletin, 1852, p. 343 ; see tradition of Votan, this work, chap. v. 3 Storia Ant. del Messico, torn, iv, p. 17 ; cited by Bancroft. 4 Historia del origen de pentes que poblaron la America Septentrional que ABBE DOMENECH. 139 in a part of his work refers to the giants as the first inhabitants of the country, but fails to state whether they came from the old world or not. 1 Ulloa thinks Noah's long and aimless voyage in the ark was not without fruit to the science of navigation. It gave confidence to his immediate descendants, who no doubt were enterprising enough to construct similar vessels and under- take voyages in them. These, falling in with adverse winds and treacherous currents, were driven to strange islands and even to the new world, and being unable to return, became the first colonists in these remote regions. He thinks the custom of eat- ing raw fish, common to the American tribes, was acquired during long sea voyages. 2 The Abbe Domenech's opinion has been cited by Mr. Bancroft in his summary of the views of this class of writers ; we presume, however, only for the amusement of the reader. 3 Tho Abbe, less than a score of years ago, committed himself to the ludicrous and antiquated theory that Ophir had colonized Peru. 4 Clavigero considers the creation, flood, and llaman la Nueva Espana con noticia de los primeros que extablecieron la Monar- quia, que en ella florecio de la Nation Tolteca, y noticias que alcamaron de la creacion del Mundo (date at end of first vol. 1755, and end of third 1780), por M. Per. de Echevarria y Veitia, pp. 24-30, chap, i, torn, i, MS. Three vols. folio, in Library of Congress at Washington. About one-fourth of the work is published in Kingsborough's Hex. Ant., torn. viii. 1 Historia, cap. xii, torn, i, p. 92, MS. ; of Kingsborough's Hex. Ant., torn, viii, p. 189. 8 Notidas Americanos, pp. 391-5, 405-7. Cited by Bancroft, Notice Races, vol. v, p. 10. 3 Native Races, vol. v, p. 11. 4 Deserts, vol i, p. 26. But what else could be expected of the editor of that curiosity of Americo-Germanic literature executed by some German school-boy and unearthed in the Arsenal Library at Paris, entitled Manuscript Picto- graphique Americain precede d'une notice sur VIdeographie de* Peaux-Rouges, par 1'Abbe Em. Domenech, Paris, 1860. Published under the auspices of the Minister of State and of the Emperor Napoleon III. See also Le Litre des Saumges au Point de Vue de la Civilization Francaiae, Brussels, 1861. The internal evidences of this remarkable MS. being the work of a German boy are plain to any one having the slightest knowledge of the German language. How the Abbe and the Emperor could have been so blinded to its real character we cannot imagine ; however, it would be unfair to leave the impression that, because of the theory of Ophir's colonization and because of this literary blun- der, the Abbe's work entitled Seven Tears Residence in the Great Deserts of 140 COMPARATIVELY MODERN VIEWS. Babel myths of the natives sufficient evidence of unity of origin. He, however, believes that the migration to this continent began at a very early period. 1 These few writers pretty well represent the opinions of their numerous contemporaries who, though they wrote voluminously enough on this subject, added nothing to what we have noted. The opinions of modern writers are as diverse as those of Garcia, and only surpass him in the ingenuity with which they press their favorite theories. Very little has been done in this field North America is without value. On the contrary, it contains much useful information. The following passage occurs on p. 66 of the above work : " The most careful study concerning the origin of the red-skins, made on the spot, has confirmed us in the belief that there is nothing in science to contradict the Bible, which represents Adam as the sole stock whence sprung the three great races which form the principal types of the human family." 1 Storia Ant. del Messico, torn, iv, p. 15. We quote the following from the translation by Cullan, London, 1807 : " We do not doubt that the population of America has been very ancient, and more so than it may seem to have been to European authors : 1. Because the Americans wanted those arts and inventions, such, for example, as those of wax and oil for light, which on the one hand being very ancient in Europe and Asia, are on the other most useful, not to say necessary, and when once discovered are never forgotten. 2. Because the polished nations of the new world, and particularly those of Mexico, preserve in their traditions and in their paintings the memory of the creation of the world and of the building of the Tower of Babel, the confusion of languages and the dispersion of the people, though blended with some fables, and had no knowledge of the events which happened afterwards in Asia, in Africa, or in Europe, although many of them were so great and remarkable that they could not easily have gone from their memories. 3. Because neither was there among the Americans any knowledge of the people of the old continent, nor among the latter any account of the passage of the former to the new world." He then cites Votan. See further on early views, Gottfried Wagner's De Originibus Amer. Disertatio Lipsice, 1669 ; Hugo Grotius's Dissertatio de Origine Gentium Ameri- canorum Amstelodami, 1642 ; Jean De Laet's Not ad Diss. H. Grotii de Origi- nine Gent. Americ., 1643 : Jean De Laet's Sesponsio ad H. Grotii Diss. de Origine Gent. Americ., 1644 ; Poisson's Animadi-ersiones in Originem Peruvianorum et Mexicanorum, Parish's, 1644; Georgius Hornius's De Originibus Americanis HagcK, 1652 ; Rocha's Tratado Unico y Singulare del Origin de los Indios Occi- dentals, del Peru, Mexico, Santa Fe, y Chile; Lima, 1681 ; Engel's Essai sur Cette Question : Commet l'Am.erique est-elle ete Peuplee d'Hommes et d'Ammaux, Amsterdam, 1767 ; Corn. De Pauw's Recherche sur VAmerique et les Ameri- cains, Berlin, 1774; Vater's Untersuchungen uber America's Bevolkerung ausdem alien Continent, Leipzig, 1810. PRE-COLUMBIAN COLONIZATION CLAIMS. 141 with a true scientific spirit. Each has been an advocate rather than an inquirer ; has had his theory to prove sometimes at the expense of reason and fact, and it is remarkable that the majority of works written by such advocates have presented the familiar anomaly of more learning than of probability. It is scarcely the province of this work to discuss these well-known productions of imaginative and too often credulous writers. To more than refer to them would be to lose sight for the time of the object before us. The claims for the Pre-Columbian colonization of this conti- nent of course include most of those already mentioned, and properly are of two classes : First, those which fix the period of colonization remote enough to account for the old civilization or some phases of it. Second, those which avowedly are too recent to have accomplished that civilization. Of the first-named class there are about a dozen thoroughly elaborated claims, while of the second there are less than half that number. Mr. Warden years ago treated them all in a manner and with a fullness which has not been excelled by any more recent writer. 1 Though it is due to Mr. Bancroft to say that never before has the subject been so exhaustively handled in our own language as by him. 2 As nothing new has been developed in this field of speculation since Mr. Bancroft, and we might add since Mr. Warden treated it, and as nothing could be contributed either to the sciences of ethnology or archaeology by a repetition of the old discussion here, for we have our doubts whether any of the claims can ever be substantiated at all, we will content ourselves with the simple enumeration of the theories. A theory which rivals in antiquity, if Egyptian chronology is reliable, the claims of the Fathers that the immediate descendants of Noah peopled the new world shortly after the deluge, is that which seeks to establish the truth of the tradition told to Solon by the Egyptian priests of Psenophis, Sonchis, Heliopolis and Sais concerning the ancient 1 D. B. Warden's RecJurrhfs tnir lea Antiqvit's de VAmcrique du Nord, in Antiqnitfg Mericainea, torn, ii, div. ii. Paris, 1834, quarto. 8 Native Races, vol. v, chap. i. The literary apparatus contained in the notes accompanying the chapter is remarkably full and valuable. 142 THE PLATONIC ATLANTIS. island Atlantis. Critias, whose grandfather had heard the tra- dition from Solon, communicated it to Socrates. Plato first committed it to writing, and states that the events which it described occurred nine thousand Egyptian years before Solon heard it. After speaking of the "Atlantic Sea," the priest adds " that sea was indeed navigable, and had an island fronting that mouth which you call the Pillars of Hercules ; and this island was larger than Libya and Asia put together, and there was a passage hence for travellers of that day to the rest of the islands, as well as from those islands to the whole opposite continent that surrounds the real sea. For as respects what is within the mouth here mentioned, it appears to be a bay with a kind of narrow entrance, and that sea is indeed a true sea, and the land that entirely surrounds it may truly and most correctly be called a continent." The priest concludes his account with the state- ment that an earthquake in a single night buried the entire island and its inhabitants. This mysterious island has been sought for in every quarter of the globe ; but the fact that part of the description seems applicable to the West Indies and the Gulf of Mexico, has led theorists to place its submerged shores between that locality and the Cape Verde or Canary groups. It is claimed that this imaginary land bridge, this backbone of earth and rock, may have once been the connecting link between the two continents. The claim has had many champions, but none so celebrated as the lamented Abbe Brasseur de Bourbourg. The labors of this learned Americaniste are too well known to require comment. 1 The Codex Chimalpopoca, a Nahua MS. of anonymous authorship, which served the Abbe as the chief "I know of no man better qualified than was Brasseur de Bourbourg, to penetrate the obscurity of American primitive history. His familiarity with the Nahua and Central American languages, his indefatigable industry and general erudition, rendered him eminently fit for the task, and every word writ- ten by such a man on such a subject is entitled to respectful consideration. Nevertheless there is reason to believe that the Abbe was often rapt away from the truth by the excess of enthusiasm, and the reader of his wild and fanciful speculations cannot but regret that he has not the opportunity or the ability to criticise by comparison the French savant's interpretation of the original docu- ments." Bancroft's Native Races, p. 127. THE JEWISH THEORY. 143 authority for the Toltec Period of his Histoire des Nations Civilisees, is the basis upon which he rests the advocacy of his " Atlantic Theory." This singular Codex, which appears to the eyes of the uninitiated to be only "A History of the Kingdoms of Culhuacan and Mexico," he considers susceptible of an allegor- ical interpretation, in which he reads the history and fate of that first of the continents, on whose soil originated all civiliza- tion and whose inhabitants were the genii of the arts, the origin of which are without even a tradition. 1 The popularity of the Jewish theory at an early date has been indicated by our citations from some of the Spanish mis- sionaries. Garcia, after a seven years residence in Peru, wrote his work for the purpose of proving conclusively that the Jews had been the chief colonists of the continent at an early date. He elaborated the argument set forth by Father Duran, 2 which is founded on passages in Esdras, but proceeded to prop up this theory with a catalogue of analogies between the Jews and Americans, some of which are so remote from each other that the very attempt to assimilate them is simply puerile. Garcia has had many disciples, some of whom have been no more critical than himself. 3 The illustrious advocate of the Jewish coloniza- tion of America was that indefatigable antiquary, Lord Kings- borough. No more masterly, no abler and more exhaustive defence was ever made in behalf of a hopeless and even baseless claim than his ; and as the result, the historian and antiquary has placed at his disposal fac-simile prints of most of the impor- tant hieroglyphic MSS. of Mexican authorship deposited in the various libraries of Europe, as well as pictures of the architecture and stone records common to ancient America. We must con- fess that the work itself, with its curious plates, its maze of 1 The work in which he repudiates his first interpretation of the Codex Chimalpopoca, and in which he advocates the allegorical meaning together with the theory of Atlantis, is entitled Qitatre Lettres sur le Mexique, Paris, 1868. * This work, p. 135. 3 Among these we may cite Adair's History of the American Indians ; Jones' History of Ancient America; Giordan's Tehuantepec ; Rossi's Souvenirs (Fun Voyage en Oregon, pp. 276-7 ; Ethan Smith's Views of the Hebrews ; Thorow- good's Jewes in America ; Domenech's D^sirts, vol. i, and Simon's Ten Tribm. 144 THE BOOK OF MORMON. notes and references, its masterly and novel discoveries of analo- gies, though many of them are imaginary, is to us, after pro- longed examination, as much of^a riddle as the great and improbable theory which it seeks to establish. 1 Closely allied to the theory of the ten lost tribes, is the claim set forth in that pretentious fraud, the Book of Mormon, which attributes the colonization of North America, soon after the confusion of tongues, to a people called Jaredites, who, by divine guidance, reached our shores in eight vessels, and developed a high state of civilization on our soil. These first colonists, however, be- came extinct about six centuries B. c., because of their social sins. The Jaredites were followed by a second colony, this time of Israelites, who left Jerusalem in the first year of the reign of Zedekiah, King of Juda. They reached the Indian Ocean by following the shores of the Ked Sea, where they built a vessel which bore them across the Pacific to the western coast of South America. Having arrived in the new land of promise, they sepa- rated into two parties, called Nephites and Laminites respec- tively, after their leaders. They grew to be great nations and colonized North America also. Eeligious strife sprang up be- tween the two nations because of the wickedness of the Lami- nites ; the Nephites, however, adhered to their religious traditions and the worship of the true God. Christ appeared in the new world and by his ministrations converted many of both peoples to Him. But towards the close of the fourth century of our era, both Laminites and Nephites backslid in faith and became involved in a war with each other which resulted in the exter- mination of the latter people. The numerous tumuli scattered over the face of the country cover the remains of the hundreds of thousands of warriors who fell in their deadly strife. Mormon and his son Morani, the last of the Nephites who escaped by concealment, deposited by divine command the annals of their ancestors, the Book of Mormon written on tablets, in the hill of Cumorah, Ontario County, New York, in the vicinity of which the last battle of these relentless enemies took place. 3 The 1 Mexican Antiquities, London, 1831-48, 9 vols. imperial folio. 2 The tablets remained in their place of concealment until discovered by PHOENICIANS AND CARTHAGINIANS. 145 claim, of course, merits mention only on the ground of its romantic character, and not on the supposition for a moment that it contains a grain of truth. The Phosnician and Cartha- ginian colonization of this continent has been much discussed and credited by a larger number of Americanists than any other theory, except that which refers the original population to those parts of Asia adjacent to Alaska. This claim is based on the maritime achievements of that nation of navigators. The three-year voyages of Hiram and Solomon's fleet to Ophir and Tarshish, has often been made to do service for this theory. Ophir has most frequently been placed by its advocates in Hayti or Peru. 1 Such speculations, however, are incapable of proof, and are scarcely deserving of sober consideration. The theory itself is one of the few that command respectful attention, since tradition, history, and many facts in natural science, seem to point to its probability. 2 Mr. Bancroft refers at some length to the voyage of Hanno, a Carthaginian navigator, whose exploits beyond the pillars of Hercules, with a fleet of sixty ships and thirty thousand men, is recorded in his Periplus. 3 With true critical insight, Mr. Bancroft rejects the opinion that Hanno reached America, and thinks he only coasted along the shores of Africa. 1 The only tradition preserved by the Americans is that of the mysterious Votan, whom some have sought to assign to a Phoenician nativity. 5 Of late years the theory of the Phoenician colonization has failed to receive its share of support from new writers. This is owing probably to the fact that the labors of Mr. George Jones, embodied in his Joseph Smith, September 22, 1827. Mr. Bancroft, Native Maces, p. 97 et *eq. (from which we draw the above), has translated a full account of this wonder- ful claim from Bertrand's Memoirs, pp. 32 et seq. 1 Pineda's De Rebus Solomonis, but especially Horn's De Oriffine Gentium Americanarum. 9 Some of these features will receive attention in a following chapter. 3 Hudson's Geographic Vetfris Scriptores Greed Minores, 1698-1712, 8vo, and Rev. Thos. Falconer's Voyage of Hanno, translated, etc., Oxford, 1797, 8vo. 4 Native Races, p. 66. 5 Chap. V.; see Tradition and Literature. 10 146 GEORGE JONES. Original History of Ancient America Founded on the Euins of Antiquity ; the Identity of the Aborigines with the People of Tyrus and Israel, and the Introduction of Christianity by the Apostle St. Thomas, 1 may have rendered all such support un- necessary. It is more probable, however, that the assumption and credulity displayed in this extraordinary work have dis- couraged any critical writer from aspiring to the honor of having his name transmitted to posterity as an advocate of the Phoaniqian theory, side by side with that of the author of the Original History. We have no space to devote to so positive a writer, except to state that he colonizes America with a remnant of the inhabitants of Tyre who escaped from their island-city when it was besieged by Alexander the Great in 332 B. c. They sailed out beyond the Pillars of Hercules to their colonies in the Canaries, whence the trade-winds bore them across the Atlantic to the shores of Florida. Ezekiel xxvii. 26, is quoted as proof : " Thy rowers have brought thee into great waters ; the east wind hath broken thee in the midst of the seas." 2 The theory that the ancient Americans descended from the Greeks has been incidentally advocated by several authors, most of the arguments being based upon supposed Greek inscrip- tions. Two advocates of the theory are, however, quite decided in its defence, namely, Mr. Pidegeon 3 and Mr. Lafitau. 4 The latter 1 By George Jones, R. S. I.; M. F. S. V., etc.; dedicated by permission to the Archbishop of Canterbury and to Frederick William the Fourth, King of Prus- sia. London, 1843. 2 Mr. Jones states in his preface that to furnish a list of the works from which he drew his material would be pedantic, and adds : " Yet being professedly an original work, the volume of the brain has been more largely extracted from than any writer whose works are already before that public to whose final judgment (upon its merits or demerits) the present author submits the first history of ancient America with all humility ; but he will yield to none in the conscientious belief in the truth of the startling proposi- tions and the consequent conclusions." With such convictions there is no opportunity for unbiased investigation. 3 Traditions of Decoodah and Antiquarian Researches, p. 16. New York, 1858, 8vo. 4 M&urs des Sauvages Ameriquains Comparees aux Mceurs des Premiers Temps. Paris, 1724. THE GREEK AND EGYPTIAN THEORIES. 147 believing that the ancient inhabitants of the Grecian archi- pelago were driven from their country by Og, king of Bashan, supposes the inhabitants of the new world descended from that people, and cites numerous analogies of a political and social nature. 1 No claim has been advanced, we believe, which advo- cates an actual Egyptian colonization of the new world, but strong arguments have been used to show that the architecture and sculpture of Central America and Mexico have been in- fluenced from Egypt, if not attributable directly to Egyptian artisans. These arguments are based on the resemblance between the gigantic pyramids, the sculptured obelisks, and the numerous idols of these pre-historic countries and those of Egypt. It requires no practised eye to trace a resemblance in general features, though it must be said that the details of American architecture and sculpture, are peculiarly original in design. 2 The principal advocate of the theory, Delafield, has furnished many comparisons, but we think no argument has been presented sufficiently supported by facts to prove that American architec- ture and sculpture had any other than an indigenous origin. 3 Turning westward our attention is arrested by the probability of the theory which claims that this continent was peopled with the Tartars and nations occupying the regions of North- western Asia. No one can consider the natural certainty of long-continued communication between the two continents at Behring's Straits without being impressed with the truth that that narrow channel served probably as the first highway be- tween the old world and the new, and vice versa. Certainly a part of the ancient population of America came upon our soil at that quarter. Mr. Bancroft remarks : " The customs, manner 1 See Bancroft's Native Races, p. 122 ; the Abbe Brasseur do Bourbourg's discovery of the Greek Gods in America (Landa, Relation, pp. Ixx-lxxx) will be considered further on. 2 Bancroft's Native Races, pp. 55 et seq.\ M'Culloch's Researches, pp. 171-2 ; Mayer's Mexico as it Was, p. 186; Humboldt's Vues, torn. 5, pp. 120-4, and Stephen's Central America, vol. ii, p. 441 ; Jones' Hist. Anc. Am., pp. 122 et seq. 3 De\&fie\(i's Inquiry into the Origin of the Antiquities of America, Cincinnati, 1839, quarto. 148 JAPANESE AND CHINESE THEORIES. of life, and physical appearance of the natives on both sides of the straits are identical, as a multitude of witnesses testify, and it seems absurd to argue the question from any point. Of course, Behring's Strait may have served to admit other nations besides the people inhabiting its shores into America, and in such cases there is more room for discussion." * Nearly as plausible is the theory which claims that if the original population of this continent were not Japanese, at least a considerable infusion of Japanese blood into the original stock has taken place from time to time, either by intentional colonization or by the accidents incident to navigation. The great number of shipwrecks which are continually being cast upon our Pacific coast by the Japanese current or Kuro-suvo are constant and substantial witnesses to the reasonableness of the claim. 2 The Chinese colonization theory, unfortunately, does not date far enough back to account for the oldest American civilization. It is nevertheless remote enough, were it proven true, to con- siderably antedate the Aztec and Inca periods. Upwards of a century ago the learned French sinologist Deguignes announced that he had found in the writings of early Chinese historians the statement that in the fifth century of our era certain adventurers of their race had discovered a country which they called Fusang. 3 He further expressed it as his opinion that the country described must be Western America, and probably Mexico. The original document on which the Chinese historians base their statements was the report of a Buddhist missionary named Hoei-Shin, who in the year 499 A. D., claims to have returned from a long journey of discovery to the remote and unknown east. This report, whatever may be its intrinsic value, was accepted as true by the Chinese, and found its way into the history of Li yan tcheon written at the beginning of the seventh century of our era. In 1 Native Races, vol. v, p. 54. In a note an excellent collection of authorities is quoted. 2 Colonel Kennon in Leland's Fusang, pp. 65 et seg. Also C. W. Brooks on Japanese Race in Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, p. 51. 3 In Memoires de I'Academie des Inscriptions et Belles Lettres, vol. xxviii, 1761. FUSANG AND HOEI-SHIN. H9 1841, Dr. Neumann, Professor of Oriental Languages and History at Munich, after a residence of a couple of years at Canton, pub- lished a translation of the narrative of Hoei-Shin with comments upon it. 1 A few of the most striking passages of the account given by this Buddhist missionary are as follows : " Fusang is about 20,000 Chinese li in an easterly direction from Tahan and east of the Middle Kingdom. 2 Many Fusang trees grow there whose leaves resemble the Dryanda cordifolia ; the sprouts, on the contrary, resemble those of the bamboo tree, and are eaten by the inhabitants of the land. The fruit is like a pear hi form, but is red. From the bark they prepare a sort of linen which they use for clothing, and also a sort of ornamental stuff. The houses are built of wooden beams ; fortified and walled places are there unknown. They have written characters in this land, and prepare paper from the bark of the Fusang. The people have no weapons and make no wars, but in the arrangement of the kingdom, they have a northern and southern prison. Trifling offenders are lodged in the southern prison, but those confined for greater offences in the northern. The name of the king is pronounced Ichi. The color of his clothes changes with the different years. The horns of the oxen are so large that they hold ten bushels. They use them to contain all manner of things. Horses, oxen, and stags are harnessed to their wagons. Stags are used here as cattle are used in the Middle Kingdom, and from the milk of the hind they make butter. No iron is found in the land ; but copper, gold, and silver are not prized, and do not serve as a medium of exchange in the market. Mar- riage is determined upon in the following manner : the suitor builds himself a hut before the door of the house where the one longed for dwells, and waters and cleans the ground every even- 1 English by Chas. G. Leland : Fitsang, or the Chinese Discovery of America. 1875. New York. 2 Bancroft, Native Races, vol. v, p. 34, note, says : " A Chinese li is abont one- third of a mile" English, we suppose, but upon what authority we are unable to say. Klaproth adopted 850 li to a degree, while D'Eichthal fixes it at 400 to a degree in the sixth century, though at present it is 250 li to a degree. Deguignes' Memoires d# I' Academic des Inscriptiones et Belles Lettres, voL xxviii, 1761, and Leland's Fusnng, pp. 128 and 140. 150 FUSANG AND HOEI-SHIN. ing. When a year has passed by, if the maiden is not inclined to marry him he departs ; should she be willing it is completed. In earlier times these people lived not according to the laws of Buddha, but it happened that in the second year named ' Great Light ' of Song (A. D. 458) five beggar-monks from the kingdom of Kipiu went to this land, extended over it the religion of Buddha, and with it his early writings and images. They instructed the people in the principles of monastic life, and so changed their manners." : Dr. Neumann does not claim that the Chinese Fusang tree is identical with the Maguay plant, but that the resemblance between it and the great numbers of the latter found in Mexico suggested a name for the country to the discoverer. Tha uncertainty as to the distance, arising out of our inability to determine what was considered the length of a Chinese li in the fifth century, is of course an obstacle to the satisfactory solution of the question. The amusing and pre- posterous statement as to the size of the horns of oxen is no argument against the general truth of the narrative, since we have no data from which to determine the capacity of the measure, the name of which is here translated bushel, since the widest possible difference exists between the ancient and modern Chinese tables of measurement. The references to horses and oxen are perplexing, and give the narrative the air either of im- posture or mistake, since both were brought to America first by the Spaniards. 2 The argument by the opponents of this theory that Fusang was Japan stands on a very slender foundation, since at a very early period, centuries before our era, Japan afforded naval stations for Chinese ships. 3 Klaproth, and later Dr. E. Bretschneider, designated the island of Tarakai, known as Saghalien on our maps, as the Fusang of Hoei-Schin. 4 1 Leland's Fusang, pp. 25 et seq. This translation was revised by Professor Neuman himself, and is more literal than that by Klaproth. 2 Klaproth's Eecherches, in Nouvelles Annales des Voyages, 1831, torn, li, pp. 57 el seq. Humboldt's Examen Critique, torn, xi, pp. 65-6. 3 Sr. Jose Perez in Revue Orientate et Americaine, No. 4, pp. 189-195. 4 Dr. E. Bretschneider in the fifth number of the Chinese Recorder and Mis- sionary Journal, vol. iii, published at Foochow, October 1870. The article entitled Fusang, or Who Discovered America, is copied in full in Leland's THE MONGOL THEORY. 151 M. D'Eichtlml and Professor Neumann liave both made able arguments in defence of the authenticity and reasonableness of this claim, but there are too many uncertainties about it to admit of its unqualified acceptance. We are more disposed to give credence to the theory that the Chinese discovered America at a very early day, than to attach much importance to the par- ticular account of that discovery by Hoei-Shin. The theory is a good one, with an abundance of geographical and ethnological testimony in its favor. 1 Closely allied to the Chinese theory is that so enthusiastically advocated by Ranking, who maintains that the Mongol emperor Kublai Khan, in the thirteenth century sent a large fleet against Japan, but that the vast armada was destroyed by a tempest, and a portion of its ships were wrecked on the shores of Peru. 2 The first Inca he believes was the son of Kublai Khan. It is a well-known fact that the Mongol fleet was dispersed by a storm, but there are grave objections to the opinion that any of the vessels were cast upon the shores of South America. No tradition was found among the Peruvians only three centuries later concerning the Incas or any other people having reached their shores by the accident of shipwreck, or who could be identi- fied as of Asiatic origin. It is true the Incas may have designed to keep their human origin as well as their misfortunes a secret, that they might the better set up their claim to imperial and divine honors among the people whom they sought to subjugate by that most powerful ally to ambition superstition. Mr. Ranking wrote a very plausible book, but often fell into errors of credulity and unrestrained enthusiasm which leaves many of his statements open to suspicion. The theory cannot be accepted Fusang, pp. 165 et seq. See also Dr. Neumann's Ost-Asien und West Amtrika; in Zeitischrift fur Allgemeine Erdkunde for April, 1864. See D'Eichthal in Revue Archeologique, 1862, vol. ii, and Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, pp. 33 et seq. 1 The strongest proof upon which the Chinese theory rests is that of physical resemblance, which on the extreme north-western coast of America is very marked. Bancroft's Native Rices, vol. v, p. 87. 2 John Banking's Historical Researches on the Conquest of Peru, Mexico, etc., by the Mongols. London, 1827. 152 BUDDHISM IN AMERICA. without additional and more satisfactory proof. 1 Should it prove to be true, it certainly cannot throw light upon the origin of the population, but only on a phase of civilization. Humboldt, Tschudi, Viollet-le-Duc, Count Stolberg and other writers have pointed out striking analogies between the religion of Southern Asia, especially of India and that of Mexico. 2 If the argument from analogy is to be relied on, there is abundant reason to believe that Buddhism in a modified form had permeated the religious systems of the new world with its mystic element besides grafting upon them some of its better and more humane institutions. These are all the colonization claims worth mentioning, which date back far enough to account for the ancient civiliza- tion. Of the second class (those too recent to have made much impression on the existing state of things) there are three. The earliest of these as to date, is the claim which credits the Irish with the colonization of the Atlantic coast from North Carolina to Florida. " White-Man's Land," so often located in this country, is no doubt imaginary. The obscure and unsatis- factory chronicle which forms the basis of this claim destroys its own authority by the statement that White-Man's Land was six days' sail from Ireland. 3 Another legend set forth by Broughton, which claims that St. Patrick preached the Gospel in the " Isles of America," carries its own refutation upon its 1 Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, pp. 44-50, contains a good review, but Ranking himself must be examined to be appreciated. 2 Native Races, vol. v, pp. 40 ct seq., gives a brief review. The subject will be fully treated in its proper place. 8 In the Landnama-book, No. 107, is found a narrative of ABE MARSON, in Hvitramanna Land. Prof. Rafn (Antiquitates American, pp. 210 et seq.), trans- lates it as follows : " Ulvus Strabo, films Ho'gnii Albi, totum occupavit Rey- kjanesum inter Thorskafjordum et Hafrafellum ; uxorem bahuit Bjargam, filiam Eyvindi (Estmanni, sororem Helgii Marci. Eorum filius Atlius Rufus, qui uxorem habuit Thorbjargam, sororem Steinolvi Humilis ; horum filius erat Mar de Reykholis, qui uxorem habuit Thorkatlam, filiam Hergilsis Hnapprassi (natibus globosis). Eornm filius fuit- Arius, qui v tempestate delatus est ad Hvitramannalandiam (Terram alborum hominum), quam nonnulli Irlandiam Magnum appellant, qui in oceano occidental! jacet prope Vinlandiam Bonam, sex dierum navigatione versus occidentem ab Irlanda." On Hvitramannaland, see Antiquitates Americana, pp. 162, 163. 183, 210, 212, 214, 447, 448, and De Costa's Pre-Columbian Discovery of America, pp. lii, 86, 63, 70, 87, 88. WHITE MAN'S LAND. 153 face by the use of the word America in its text. 1 The Scandina- vian discovery of America is a well-known fact, and requires no discussion here. The Codex Flatioiensis, as expounded by the learned Prof. Bafn in the Antiquitates Americance, has, no doubt, set at rest the whole matter. Humboldt, in reviewing the evidence upon which the claim is founded, sums it up in these words : " The discovery of the northern part of America by the Northmen cannot be disputed. The length of the voyage, the direction in which they sailed, the time of the sun's rising and setting, are accurately given. While the caliphate of Bag- dad was still flourishing under the Abbassides, and while the rule of the Samanides, so favorable to poetry, still flourished in Persia, America was discovered about the year 1000 by Lief, son of Eric the Bed, at about 41^ north latitude." No evidence of a substantial character has been produced to show that the Scandinavians left any impress upon the American civilization. It is true, Brasseur de Bourbourg, when he first began his labors in the field of American archaeology expressed such an opinion, but we believe he never repeated it in the latter years of his life. 2 The learned Abbe was guilty of many contradictions, and this may be considered one of them. The most positive claims in this direction are advanced by two recent authors, M. Gravier 3 and Prof. Anderson, 4 the former attributing the Aztec civilization to Norse influence. He cites the discovery in Brazil of an ancient city near Bahia, in which was found the statue of a man point- ing with his forefinger to the North Pole ; of course, according to M. Gravier, he was a Northman. 5 Several authorities for 1 Monastikon Britannicum, pp. 131-2, 187-8. Cited by De Costa, Pre-Col. Dis. of Am., p. xviii. 2 On this subject see Brasseur de Bourbourg in the 16th vol. of the sixth series of Nounettes Annales des Voyages, pp. 263, 281-9 ; also 3d vol. of same work , sixth series, 1855, pp. 156-7, and in New York Tribune for November 21, 1855. 8 Decouverte de I'Amerique par lea Normands au X e eiecle, par Gabriel Gravier, Paris, 1864, 4to. 4 America Not Discovered by Columbus, by R. B. Anderson, Chicago, 1874, 16mo. 5 Gravier, Decouverte de I'Amerique, p. 235, quotes Dr. Schuck as author- ity, Socitte Royale des Antiquaires du Nord, 1840-43, pp. 26-7 ; also 1844, p. 181. 154 DISCOVERY BY THE NORTHMEN. the discovery of Norse remains in the United States might be cited, but the unwarrantable arguments of most of them add nothing to the already established fact of Norse colonization in the tenth century of our era. Another pre-Columbian claim to the discovery of America is that which declares Madoc-Ap-owen and his Welsh countrymen to have reached this continent in 1170 A. D. The chronicle on which the claim is based, is want- ing in authority. A translation of it, taken from a history of Wales by Dr. Powell, was published by Hakluyt, in 1589. As this claim can have no relation to our subject, we refrain from a discussion of it here. 1 The only remaining theory, and probably the most important of all, because of its purely scien- tific character, which presents itself for our consideration, is that which not only considers the civilization of ancient America to have been indigenous, but also claims the inhabitants them- selves to have been autochthonic ; in a word, that by process of evolution or in some other way, the first Americans were either developed from a lower order in the animal kingdom or were created on the soil of this continent. As the latter theory involves a denial of the unity of the race, it requires a separate and critical examination. 1 Hakluyt's Principal Navigations, Voyages, etc., vol. iii, pp. 1 et seq.; see a good discussion of the Welsh claim in Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, pp. 116 et seq. CHAPTEK IV. THE ORIGIN OF THE AMERICANS AS VIEWED FROM THE STANDPOINT OF SCIENCE. Origin Theories Indigenous Origin Separate Creation Theory Dr. Morton's Theory Agassiz's Views Dr. Morton's Cranial Measurements Classified Prof. Wilson's Measurements Dr. Morton's Theory of Ethnic Unity Groundless Ethnic Relationships Typical Mound-skull Crania from the River Rouge Dr. Farquharson's Measurements Crania from Ken- tucky Researches in Tennessee by Prof. Jones Measurements Prof. Putnam's Collection of Crania from Tennessee Mounds Low Type Crania from the Mounds Development Observable in Mound Crania Head- Flattening Derived from Asia Diseases of the Mound-builders Physiog- nomy of the Ancient Americans Languages Evolution and its Bearing on the Origin of the American Darwin and Haeckel on the Indigenous American The Autochthonic Hypothesis Groundless Unity of the Human Family Accepted Chronology Faulty. want of evidence for the theories which designate par- - ticular nations as the first colonizers of the Western Conti- nent, long ago produced a feeling of distrust, which led some to repudiate all claims for the foreign origin of the first inhabi- tants of this continent. This theory, which claims for the most ancient inhabitants an autochthonic origin, has had from time to time among its advocates some of the most respectable ethnologists. The character of their attainments, and in many cases their arguments in behalf of this most remarkable hypoth- esis, command the respect of all who are interested in this fascinating field of speculation. At first it was maintained that the Creator had placed an original pair of human beings here, as Scripture teaches that He did in the old world. 1 Other writers equally confident that the 1 " I think, therefore (as mentioned before), we do not at all derogate from God's greatness, nor in any ways dishonor the sacred evidence given us by His 156 THEORIES FOR THE ORIGIN OF THE AMERICANS. first ancestors of the American race were indigenous, have not so definitely expressed themselves as to the manner of their origin. 1 The most recent phase of the autochthonic theory is that which designates evolution as the means by which the continent was populated with human beings, developed from its own fauna. This latter question is now the most absorbing of all that occupy servants, when we think that there were as many Adams and Eves (every one knows these names to have an allegorical sense), as we find different species of the human genus * * * * God has created an original pair here as well as elsewhere." Roman's Concise Nat. Hist, of E. and W. Florida, p. 55, New York, 1775. " We will candidly confess that we could never understand why philosophers have been so pre-disposed to advocate the theory which peoples America from the Eastern hemisphere. We think the supposition that the Red man is a primitive type of a family of the human race, originally planted in the Western Continent, presents the most natural solution of the problem ; and that the researches of physiologists, antiquaries, philologists and philosophers in general, tend irresistibly to this conclusion." Norman's Rambles in Yucatan, p. 251, New York, 1843, 8vo. " My own belief is that, whatever was the origin of the different tribes or families, the whole race of American Indians are native and indigenous to the soil. There is no proof that they are either the lost tribes of Israel or emigrants from any part of the old world. They are a separate and as distinct a race as either the Ethiopian, Caucasian, or Mongolian. In the absence of all proof to the contrary, it seems to me to be both rational and consistent to assume that the Creator placed the Red race on the American Continent as early as He created the beasts and reptiles that inhabit it." Swan's Northwest Coast, p. 206, New York, 1857. "Dieu a cree plusieurs couples d'gtres humains different les uns des autres interieurement et exterieurement ; chacun de des couples a etc place dans le climat approprie a son organisation." Lord Kames in Warden's Recherches, p. 203. 1 The reader who has not given special attention to this phase of the subject, will be surprised to learn how generally received has been the autochthonic theory among writers in this field. Mr. Bancroft has given several quotations to illustrate this fact. See Morelet's Voyage, vol. i, p. 177, Paris, 1857 ; Evens' Our Sister Republic, p. 332 ; Catlin's North American Indians, vol. ii, p. 232. We prepared extracts for insertion at this point, but the limit of our space will not permit a full consideration of the question. Mr. Bancroft says of the theory, "If we may judge by the recent results of scientific investigation, [it] may eventually prove to be scientifically correct. To express belief, however, in a theory incapable of proof, appears to me idle. Indeed such belief is not belief, it is merely acquiescing in or accepting a hypothesis or tradition until the contrary is proved." Native Races, vol. v, pp. 130-1. SEPAEATE CREATION THEORY. 157 the attention of the American Anthropologists. But to go back to the separate creation view, we find it expressed in general and unscientific utterances at first, mostly based on the hasty obser- vation of travellers who, in many cases, had little knowledge of anthropologic or ethnic principles. In fact, the subject was not fairly discussed and its advocacy based on satisfactory in- vestigation until the justly celebrated Dr. Samuel G. Morton, of Philadelphia, issued his Crania Americana, containing the results of the most diligent researches on the skulls of the Mound- builders, Mexicans, Peruvians, and many of the known tribes of the Red Indians. In the face of abundant proof among the crania of his own splendid collection, and contrary to the testi- mony of his numerous measurements, which have often since been used against his theory, this diligent investigator arrived at the conclusion that the Americans were a distinct race, origi- nated in this continent, having a uniform cranial type (excepting only the Eskimo), from the Arctic Circle to Patagonia. A division, however, of this supposed homogeneous race was made by this author into Toltecan and Barbarous nations ; the former appellative comprising all the semi-civilized peoples, while the latter embraced the wild tribes. All were believed to have had the same origin and to belong to the same cranial type. " It is curious to observe, however," remarks Dr. Morton, " that the Barbarous nations possess a larger brain by five and a half cubic inches than the Toltecans ; while, on the other hand, the Toltecans possess a greater relative capacity of the anterior chamber of the skull in the proportion of 42.3 to 41.8. Again the coronal region, though absolutely greater in the Barbarous tribes, is rather larger in proportion in the semi-civilized tribes ; and the facial-angle is much the same in both, and may be assumed for the race at 75." l In conclusion, the author is of the opinion that the facts contained in his work tend to sustain the follow- ing propositions: (1) "That the American race differs essen- tially from all others, not excepting the Mongolian ; nor do the feeble analogies of language, and the more obvious ones in civil and religious institutions and the arts, denote anything beyond 1 Crania Americana, p. 260. Philadelphia, 1839. Folio. 158 CORRESPONDENCE OF PHYSICAL LIFE TO NATURE. casual or colonial communication with the Asiatic nations ; and even these analogies may perhaps be accounted for, as Humboldt suggested, in the mere coincidence arising from similar wants and impulses in nations inhabiting similar latitudes." (2) " That the American nations, excepting the Polar tribes, are one race and one species, but of two great families which resemble each other in physical, but differ in intellectual character." (3) " That the cranial remains discovered in the mounds, from Peru to Wiscon- sin, belong to the same race and probably to the Toltecan family." 1 Among the several ethnologists and naturalists who accepted without question the conclusions reached by Morton, the chief was Agassiz, who adopted them as auxiliary to his theory of the correspondence of human life with certain associa- tions in the animal kingdom. 2 They served as a sure foundation, 1 Dr. Morton gives the following comparative table showing the internal capacity and dimensions of the crania of different races : RACES. Number of Skulls. Mean Internal Capacity in cubic in. Largest in the Series. Smallest in the Series. Caucasian 52 87 109 75 Mongolian 10 83 93 69 Malay 18 81 89 64 American 147 82 100 60 Ethiopian 29 78 94 65 2 After presenting several arguments together with accompanying proofs, Agassiz says : " This coincidence between the circumscription of the races of man and the natural limits of different zoological provinces characterized by peculiar distinct species of animals, is one of the most important and unexpected features in the Natural History of Mankind, which the study of the geographical distribution of all the organized beings now existing upon earth has disclosed to us. It is a fact which cannot fail to throw light at some future time upon the very origin of the differences existing among men, since it shows that man's physical nature is modified by the same laws as that of animals, and that any general results obtained from the animal kingdom regarding the organic dif- ferences of its various types must also apply to man. Now there are only two alternatives before us at present : 1st. Either mankind originated from a com- mon stock, and all the different races with their peculiarities, in their present distribution, are to be ascribed to subsequent changes an assumption for which there is no evidence whatever, and leads at once to the admission that the diver- THE "AMERICAN RACE" DOES NOT EXIST. 159 so far as this continent is concerned, for his opinion that the races originated in nations. " We maintain," says the eminent naturalist, "that, like all organized beings, mankind cannot have originated in single individuals, but must have been created in that numerical harmony which is characteristic of each species. Men must have originated in nations, as the bees have originated in swarms, and as the different social plants have covered the extensive tracts over which they have naturally spread." l This view has been enlarged upon by Messrs. Nott and Gliddon, who argue that, " if it be conceded that there were two primitive pairs of human beings, no reason can be assigned why there may not have been hundreds." 2 The uniqueness of the so-called Ameri- can race not only fails of proof, but is positively disproven by the measurements of crania accompanying Morton's plates, and any thoughtful person cannot avoid surprise that so distinguished a scholar as Agassiz should have committed himself to a theory without first submitting it to a crucial test. That there is a great variety of type observable among the crania figured by Morton, even a superficial examination will show, while a more careful classification presents several facts of interest. For this classification we consider the simple division of the crania into long and short skulls sufficient. The question of other divisions has been often discussed, but with Mr. Huxley we content our- selves with the simplest classification. Referring to a particular instance, he says, " taking the antero-posterior diameter as 100, sity among animals is not an original one, nor their distribution determined by a general plan established in the beginning of the creation ; or 2d, we must acknowledge that the diversity among animals is a fact determined by the will of the Creator, and their geographical distribution part of the general plan which unites all organized beings into one great organic conception ; whence it follows that what are called human races down to their specializations as nations are distinct primordial forms of the type of man." * * * He concludes in these words : " The laws which regulate the diversity of animals and their dis- tribution upon earth apply equally to man within the same limits and in the same degree ; and all our liberty and moral responsibility, however spontaneous, are yet instinctively directed by the All-wise and Omnipotent to fulfill the great harmonies established in Nature." Types of Mankind, pp. Ixxv and Ixxvi. 1 Agassiz in Nott and Gliddon's Types of Mankind, p. 78. s Ibid. 160 CEPHALIC INDEX OF CRANIA. the transverse diameter varies from 98 or 99 to 62. The number which thus expresses the proportion of the transverse to the longitudinal diameter of the brain-case is called the cephalic index. Those people who possess crania with a cephalic index of 80 and above are called brachycephali (short-skulled), those with a lower index are dolichocephali (long-skulled)." 1 Dr. Meigs, while accepting the classification into long and short skulls, admits that it is open to the objection that it forces into either and opposite classes crania closely related to each other in type and measurement. 2 Yet it must be admitted, that in propor- tion as arbitrary divisions are increased, these difficulties are multiplied, and that this simple, twofold classification presents the fewest. 3 In the following tables, which contain all the measurements accompanying the plates in the Crania Ameri- cana, the cephalic index is placed in the left-hand column. That a wide difference of type is apparent between the extremes of the dolichocephalic and brachycephalic measurements, cer- tainly cannot be denied. It will be observed that the widest range is found between the proportions of the skull of the Cayuga chief 100 years old (Plate XXXV) with a cephalic index of only 65.4, and those of some of the Peruvian crania having a cephalic index of over 98. The supposed Natchez skull (Plate LIV) is so artificially flattened as to exclude it from the calculation. The mean cephalic index of each of the tables exhibits a well-defined type 1 Manual of the Anatomy of the Verlebrated Animals, p. 420. N. Y., 1872. 5 Note to Retzius' article in Smithsonian Report, 1859, p. 264. 3 As an illustration of complex classification, we have the following : " From an old and well-filled European graveyard may be selected specimens of klimocephalic (slope or saddle skull), conocephalic (cone-skull), brachycephalic (short-skull), dolichocephalic (long-skull), platycephalic (flat-skull), Icptocephalic (slim-skull), and other forms of crania equally worthy of penta or hexa-syllabic Greek epithets." Owen (E.), Anatomy of Vertebrates, vol. ii, p. 570. London, 1866, 8vo. Foster, in Pre-Historic Races of the United States, in addition to the long and short skulls, adopts also the orthocephalic (erect-head), with the longitudinal diameter 100; he assumes the transverse diameter for dolicho- cephalfe to be less than 73 ; for orthocephalse, to range between 74 and 79, and for brachycephalae, 80 and upwards. DR. MORTON'S MEASUREMENTS. 161 wi6?x pnuuoo fo - ***? -WD1/0 MUV)SOJ fO -( UY fo ' awojl puv ^ a> IJ > S II - < S c- ^ iJjjl, UQSI 1| -g| is PllFl5|2||3||||l|p3||Ill -t-obt-xoot-f-t-t- : io> -t-f- in lOiaio 1010 5 : CO C COi-li-iO5 rHQO OOODCOO5W ainioio>aiaioiainia>a 10 d in o o '(001 m> p9 ) -lUDiff jau}pnj'i6uo r T OJ 'iDttUVJ 9TIJ JO a s>x> J 1 11 162 DR. MORTON'S MEASUREMENTS. (.B) BRACHYCEPHALIC CRANIA, SCALE OF CLASSIFICATION, 80 AND UPWARDS TO 100. 1 b 02 S - <6 S X, 0) s a 1 _g _g -2 1 o IH 3 83 9 S bD o> A J3 O O 1 2 h- 1 * | gggggl .^ 0. ^ "B OQ OQ 03 OQ 5Q | 8 s0 > 1 I aim? i's.3 1^ ! 1 fill S S 1^3 s n fHEH^fHH a s SO **S5a E * a| sssasl^lHes.. 's-^g | E -6^ ^||lp||| HtSs 1 ^oa5 C C B C P.S--!.S-rt S O&^;=i'S |y|il|.9|i||!|||^ p?|| | PH g 3 C.S g s g g E^ ~ ,oV CX)^ iO T-HOOQlOC^Ot-QOTH (N^HCNO'NIOI t*CO C0i> t- ODOOCCt~t-Q01->.t- t-QOt-t-OOt^t't-t- uo}6y JVUOJ.OQ fo -dvj t- et * t-iowco ^raioio i-ioint-oioi-i ^O r4 lOOf^T-i 't-CSi-< CO iO001OlO'7 1 *O^T)'-^ *MQ -uinyj Muwsod Jo <%? 10 lomom t-ianc*icioio SO OS O? !Ocd>Q-*CPPt-lQ t^ 1> O Q 1-" O2 O5 1O i-i ^CO -^ ^iO-^^CO^O^f^ 1 '^ UDrfOiOiOCO'^^-^ Mq -woyj jayatuy Jo -dvo io->o LO o S^ S S5ESSS??S8 ^5^^SfeS *-fypvdvQ uouatui jn m t* 17 t^ i~ 10 1- 10 m o ^t^-rHT-i COC3tDtCC)COOS^I>O COi-l'^CO-r^OOCO-^* tiocot- oc & t- L- as QO oo 5- 1- 06 05 os os So os i- oc oo t- /Uaydwj JD^UOZUOH 100 * mo mmos )svjf-M)Uf 1OS5 Iffl t- i-l ^^ .'J 1 OfCiOiOTjHom-^-^ira iO"^iOTfiocorr^^ pV9ff /O y)6u?J 9tU9U)X3 oo ;::;:: MPWIDIQ IVIUOJitf eo-^" ^< t- 10 10 -^ eo T}< 03 co 10 9J o 10 so e t- * s o ^ J9)9Wm(J JDOlfit?A rHINCOiH iOaSCO COIN O CO I- CO OS OS t- CO OS -* t- OS 1< lo'ioiriio cDcoioioio'iriidirfinio lo'inm'm'inio'ioioin j,919umiQ jvmpnnSuiyj lOlOtCX) THI>CO 1O TH 00 CO Tj< OS CO 00 CDt-lOt- COCOOiO COCOOCOCCt-:CCDCO;O t-C-t-COl>COOCOCO VOM SiU0)u,ofl[ iii nH fo -OAT MMa2MM^ BOfl t!B^g a Hfegaglgad Be? | HH RHHHRBg6B 8TO|P (001 pavings j,9))V) ??/;) wmff inuipnftfiuo'f ay} 0) tv)?uvj yi fo uoyMdojd 'X9pv2 oyvyddQ COf5WD COTfffOCOOO O QCOOCO OOCiC^^/J-^OOOCTiO OTttO CD :abcco6t-oD ^! T(i Tf' lO id T)-' 1 1OO .- ~ OdQOO) Odcic^OO^O) w eio JvetSeo * -^OOCO & *? cc -fl< id id^id i" "t '^ fl 1 ' -^ v &OM wj 9)vjj fo -O '(001 9V pwjmgm JHOJ tyf) "tumff oj ^oowtoaq .o>ao 9 _- ^ eototo 164 MORTON'S MEASUREMENTS CLASSIFIED. of the long and the short skull respectively. The former 74.7 and the latter 87 are both far enough removed from the divid- ing line (80) to leave no doubt that the types are distinct and separate. Additional data, materially strengthening the conclu- sion of the variety of types found among American crania, has been furnished by that eminent authority Dr. Daniel Wilson. 1 The following table of measurements in inches is based upon his extensive researches : No. of Grama in, each Class. Description of Crania. Mean Longitu- dinal Diameter. Mean Parietal Diameter. Cephalic Index. 8 Mound Crania (two from Morton, four un- doubtedly from the mounds) 6.54 567 867 12 Cave Crania 662 578 857 29 Peruvian Bracliv cephalic Crania 597 5.12 857 16 Peruvian Dolichocephalic Crania 6.49 4.95 76.2 8 Mexican Dolichocephalic Crania 705 541 767 7 Mexican Brachycephalic Crania 656 551 840 31 22 12 Dolichocephalic Crania of Am. Indians. . . . Brachycephalic Crania of Am. Indians, . . . Livino- Alcronquins, Brachycephalse 7.24 6.62 7.25 5.47 5.45 6.00 75.5 82.3 82.7 3& West Canadian Hurons (male) 739 550 744 It requires no careful examination of these figures to observe that the type of skull among the American aborigines, ancient or modern, was in no sense constant, since among the same tribes long and short skulls occur in almost equal numbers. This fact is especially true among the savage Indians, Among the semi- civilized nations, however, as among the Peruvians and Mexicans, the long and short skulls mark the successive existence and destruction of distinct peoples having physiological characteris- tics peculiar to themselves. The Peruvian elongated crania are always found with large-boned skeletons having strong hands, while the short or rounded crania accompany very small bones, such as were unable to endure labor like the building of pyra- mids and the erection of such edifices as are found in Peru. 2 1 Pre-Historic Man, chap. xx. 3d ed. London, 1876. 2 vols. 8vo. 2 Dr. Wilson's American Cranial Type in Smithsonian, Report, 1862, pp. 250 et seq. Dr. Wilson clearly shows that in one set there is the characteristic RELATIONSHIP OF ANCIENT AMERICAN PEOPLES. 165 It is with the utmost deference to the genius, and with full recognition of the valuable researches of Dr. Morton, that we dis- agree with his conclusions and pronounce his theory without foundation in fact. There is no evidence furnished by the measurement of crania that an American race, as unique in itself and distinct from the rest of mankind, ever existed. 1 One of the most interesting studies connected with these tables, as well as other measurements made more recently, is the question of rela- tionship between the various semi-civilized peoples of the ancient Mongol auxiliary of prominent cheek bones, while in the other the bones of the face are small and delicate. In twenty-six measurements he finds proof that the Peruvians were distinct from the Mexicans. Thirty-one dolichocephalic crania as compared with twenty- two brachycephalic crania convince him of the error of Morton and establish a diversity among'the tribes of the North-east. He thinks analogies are traceable between the Esquimaux and the type of elongated skull ; at all events he is satisfied that the form of the skull is as little constant among the tribes of the new world as among those of the old. 1 This author (Dr. Morton), who has given us such numerous and valuable facts, as well as the linguists who have studied these American languages with indefatigable zeal, have arrived at the conclusion that both race and language in the new world are unique. I am obliged to avow that the facts advanced by Morton himself, and that the study of numerous skulls with which he has enriched the museum of Stockholm, have conducted me to a wholly different result. I can only explain the fact by surmising that this remarkable man has allowed the views of the naturalist to be warped by his linguistic researches. For, if the form of the skull has anything to do with the question of races, we cannot fail to see that it is scarcely possible to find anywhere a more distinct distribution into dolichocephalae and brachycephalae than in America. It would be only necessary, in order to show this, to direct attention to certain of the delineations in his own work, where the skull of the Peruvian infant (PI. 2), the Lenni-Lenape (PI. 32), the Pawnee (PI. 38), the Blackfoot (PI. 40), etc., as clearly present the dolichocephalic form as on the other hand his Natchez (PI. 30 and 31) and the greater part of his representations of the skulls of Chili, Peru, Mexico, Oregon, etc., are distinct types of the brachycephalic. Conclusive, however, as the plates are, I should scarcely have ventured to advance these remarks, if tho rich series of our own collection, and the numerous and excellent figures of Blumenbach, Sandifort, Van der Hoeven, etc., did not declare in favor of my opinion. (Retzius in Smithsonian Report, 18/59, p. 264.) Latham, in Natural History of the Varieties of Man, p. 452, says : "As to the conformation of the skull, a point where (with great deference) I differ with the author of the excellent Crania Americana, the Americans are said to be &rA%-kephalic, the Eskimo rfo&Mo-kephalic." He quotes Morton's tables to contradict his (Morton's) conclusions. TYPICAL MOUND SKULL. period. First and most naturally the type of the mound crania attracts attention, arid calls for comparisons with the Indian type and with that of the remarkable people of the more southern civilization. The " Scioto Mound " skull figured by Dr. Davis in Plates xlvii and xlviii of The Ancient Monuments of the Mississippi Valley, was pronounced by Dr. Morton in Dr. Meigs' catalogue of the human crania in the collection of the Academy of Natural Sciences of Philadelphia, as " perhaps the most admirably formed head of the American race hitherto discovered." The most important measurements are as follows : Longitudinal diameter ......................... 6.5 inches. Parietal " ......................... 6.0 " Vertical " ......................... 6.2 " Inter-mastoid arch ............................ 16.0 " Horizontal circumference ....................... 19.8 " Cephalic index ............................... 92.3 " The chief features as pointed out by the above-named author, are : the elevated vertex, flattened occiput, great inter-parietal diameter, ponderous bony structure, salient nose, large jaws and broad face. These he pronounces to be characteristics of the American cranium. Dr. Wilson has shown that Dr. Morton has contradicted his own previous definition of what that type is as well as the description given by Humboldt. 1 The propriety of selecting any single cranium as typical of the Mound-builders would be as questionable in this connection as it was for Dr. Morton and the authors of the Types of Mankind to designate the Scioto Mound skull as a type of the American cranium. Until within a few years but few genuine mound skulls were 1 " Tried by Dr. Morton's own definitions and illustrations, the Scioto Mound skull differs from the typical cranium in some of its most characteristic features. Instead of the low, receding, unarched forehead, it has a finely-arched frontal bone with corresponding breadth of forehead. The wedge-shaped vertex is replaced by a well-rounded arch curving equally throughout ; and with the exception of the flattened occiput, due to artificial though probably undesigned compression in infancy, the cranium is a uniformly proportioned example of an extreme brachycephalic skull." Pre-Historic Man, vol. ii, p. 127. CRANIA FROM THE RIVER ROUGE. accessible, and considerable suspicion was reasonably attached to the genuineness of several, including three or four of the so- called mound skulls in the Crania Americana. Recent explora- tions have brought to light a large number, of unquestioned genuineness. The Peabody Museum alone possesses 300, and of these 200 were exhumed by Prof. F. W. Putnam. From a number of measurements only is it possible for us to approximate the type of the mound skull. We have already referred to the low type skulls secured by Gen. H. W. Thomas from a mound in Dakota Territory. 1 Unfortunately we are without measurements, but from the description we observe that the forehead is decidedly receding, and the orbital ridges are excessively developed. The inferior maxillary is of unusual prominence and much more massive, as is the entire bony struc- ture, than in the common Indian cranium. Another cranium of similar characteristic was exhumed from the great mound on the River Rouge near its junction with the Detroit River, Michi- gan, by Mr. Henry Gillman. From this mound several crania were taken, of which one (though evidently adult) presented the hitherto, I think I may say, unprecedented feature of its capacity being only fifty-six cubic inches. The mean given by Morton and Meigs of the Indian cranium is eighty-four cubic inches, the minimum being sixty-nine cubic inches. This cranium, for- warded with other relics to the Peabody Museum, presents (though in no wise deformed) the further peculiarity of having the ridges for the attachment of the temporal muscle only .75 of an inch apart, in this respect resembling the cranium of the chimpanzee. It is rarely that in human crania those ridges approach each other within a distance of two inches, while they vary from that to four inches apart. 2 Eight crania were ex- humed by Mr. Gillman from the great mound on Rouge River, which furnished him the following measurements : 1 Chapter II, p. 127. 8 Henry Gillman, The Ancient Men of the Great Lake*, in Proceedings of the American Association for the Advancement of Science, 24th meeting, at Detroit, 1875, p. 317 ; also American Journal of Arts and Science, 1874, vol. cvii, p. 1 et seq., and Sixth Annual Report of Peabody Museum, pp. 12-20. 168 CRANIA FROM THE RIVER ROUGE. pypuvj yojy 8 8 8 8 in * m 8 in o co 35 ^ in -^ Jo xpiq fySwff fo xapuj fo O Q O IH as 35 o m O O5 o? S 3 in *n in m m in So o et TJ; s id in Q o o 8 g ci 05 o> 3 S 8 CO CO 00 00 CO CO CO o , M 2< 1 S ^? 1 11 1 5^^ >, 2 1 s t, " S =2 o o 5 o o 5 S S S IS *" W y H* 9 ". s -g .S ^ ^ ^" 3 fl EJ O i2 O 2^o ^ a 9 S 2 p s> -g IE! H .2 5-, o -a O i RESEARCHES OF DR. FARQUHARSON. 169 We observe that only three of these crania are brachycephalic, while the remaining five, and the mean of all, fall under the class of dolichocephalic crania, according to our classification. Mr. Gillman would call some of them Orthocephalic, and the mean of the eight crania giving a cephalic index of .786 and .802 as an index of height might properly be so classified. The same gentleman exhumed from an ancient mound on Chambers Island, Green Bay, Wisconsin, six crania, which as to type were equally divided into long and short skulls, while the mean cephalic index, .817, assigned them to the brachycephalic class. The long skulls were not far removed, however, from the dividing line between the classes (.80). The energetic and intelligent labors of Dr. R. J. Farquharson of the Davenport, Iowa, Academy of Sciences, has placed within our reach measurements upon twenty-five mound crania. 1 The following are the most impor- tant measurements in inches : $ 3 1 C *> 5* V *N^1 CRANIA. i^ 1 "I Us "S-^" 3J i e'S ^^^ ^i 1^ |.2 if " 0> s 2 " so 55 Mean of Nine Crania from Albany, 111. . . 19.8 6.8 5.1 68. .768 Mean of Eleven from Rock River, 111. ... 20.15 7.0 5.4 74.48 .771 Mean of Four from Henry County, 111 ... 19.5 7.0 5.2 74.47 .743 One from Davenport 19 5 7.0 5 25 76.20 .752 This table introduces a new feature into the investigation in hand ; the brachycephalic or the near approximation to the short skull is displaced by a mean cephalic index of .758, indi- cating the well-marked dolichocephalic type. The mean internal capacity 73.3 inches falls considerably below the mean of mound crania as measured by Squier and Davis, Wilson and others, from localities farther south. 1 Recent Exploration* of Mounds near Davenport, Iowa, in Proceedings of American Association for the Advancement of Science, 24th meeting, 1875, pp. 297 et seq. 170 RESEARCHES BY DR. FARQUH ARSON. The mean results of Dr. Farquharson's measurements 1 show a greater vertical than transverse diameter, a peculiarity of most Mississippi mound skulls, distinguishing them from Peruvian crania. In the Ohio Valley the brachycephalic type is quite decided, though the general features of high receding forehead, flattened occiput, and great transverse diameter, establish their relationship to all other North American mound crania yet dis- covered. Three Ohio Valley mound skulls, as to the genuine- ness of which no suspicion can be entertained, namely the Scioto Mound cranium and two crania from the Grave Creek Mound, give the following measurements in the mean : Longitudinal 1 Dr. Farquharson considers that some of his measurements in inches are scarcely accurate enough, and gives the following table in the decimals of a metre : MEASUREMENTS OP MOUND SKULLS; ALSO OP SIOUX SKULLS IN DECIMALS OP A METRE. FORAMINA! DISTANCE TAKEN WITH "WTTMAN'S INSTRUMENT. 3l 1 ^ X No. !> J l| "83? 2>! SS o e =?Ji Mounds. s P 71 g 1 ' 1 ". 1-2 Is .$ g b3- g. t^-S i 1 if oS e s ^ ^ K c> c> fe,^ fc, ^^ 1 .546 .200 .120 .140 1190 .600 Albany, 111. 2 .483 .162 .128 .140 1190 .062 .382 .790 Albany, III. 3 .495 .174 .130 .135 1020 .077 .442 .752 Albany, 111. 7 .503 .170 .140 .125 .823 Albany, 111. 8 .495 .175 .135 .140 1249 .065 .370 .771 Davenport, Mound No. 9. 9 .503 .171 .140 .140 1334 .062 .362 .818 Rock River, 111. 10 .503 .167 .148 .140 1135 .070 .419 .886 Rock River, HI. 11 .533 .180 .150 .145 1362 833 Rock River, HI. 12 .457 .167 .123 .140 1021 .766 Rock River, HI. 13 .522 .185 .130 .150 1362 .089 .427 .702 Rock Riv, 111. 14 15 16 17 18 433 .508 .457 .533 .508 .171 .185 .170 .185 .180 .138 .138 .130 .135 .140 .145 .140 .146 .140 1192 1306 1135 1249 .079 .081 .OT8 .072 .460 .443 .448 .389 .807 .745 .764 .703 Henry County, 111. Henry County, 111, Henry County, 111. Henry County, 111. Rock River, 111. 19 .533 .196 .140 .140 704 Rock River 111. 20 .200 .128 .640 Rock River, 111. 21 23 .180 .178 .137 .140 '.140 073 410 .761 .730 Henry County, HI. Albany, 111. 24 .184 .139 .150 088 478 .755 Rock River. HI. 26 .200 Shell Bed Rock Island 27 .482 .170 .125 .140 936 076 388 .735 Albany, 111. 28 29 .507 .177 .177 .135 .130 .140 .145 il37 088 440 .762 .734 Albany, 111. Albany, 111. .603 .179 .134 .140 1188 .075 .432 .755 Mean. 18 24 22 21 15 14 14 22 No. of skulls measured. RESEARCHES OF PROF. JONES IN TENNESSEE. 171 diameter, 6.5 inches ; parietal diameter, 6 inches ; vertical diameter, 5.5 inches, and 90.7 as their cephalic index. The mean internal capacity, though not obtainable with any degree of accuracy, in this instance is no doubt from eight to ten cubic inches greater than in the Davenport crania. With the general characteristics alike, minor differences may in most instances be attributed to artificial pressure. A valuable collec- tion of mound crania was made in Kentucky for the Smithsonian Institution and the Peabody Museum, by Mr. S. S. Lyon, and is thoroughly reliable as a basis for measurements. Professor Wyman, in the Fourth Annual Report of the Peabody Museum, describes them as follows : " The twenty-four crania measured (Table VIII) show a mean capacity of 1313 cubic centimetres, which is greater than that of the Peruvians, but less than that of the North American Indians generally (viz., 1376 cubic centi- metres, or 84 cubic inches). They differ also from those of the ordinary Indians in being lighter, less massive, in having the rough surface for muscular attachments less strongly marked. * * In proportions they present a very considerable varia- tion among themselves. Assuming the length of the skull to be 1.000, the breadth ranges from 0.712 to 0.950 of the length. The average proportion is 0.857, which places them in the short-headed group." We have already called attention to the extensive and thor- ough work performed by Professor Joseph Jones in Tennessee, the report of which was published in 1876 by the Smithsonian Institution in a "contribution" entitled Explorations of the Aboriginal Remains of Tennessee. Professor Jones secured above a hundred mound and stone grave crania, mostly in the valley of the Cumberland and on the banks of the Big Harpeth Kiver. Some of the skeletons accompanying these crania were of gigantic stature, a fact which is at variance with the opinion that they were related to the diminutive race of Inca Peruvians. 1 On the contrary, however, a strong argument for the relationship 1 Dr. Jones found skeletons six feet, and in one instance seven feet in length. (Antiquities of Tennessee, pp. 44 and 53.) 172 PROFESSOR JONES' MEASUREMENTS. between the Mound-builders and the Peruvians is found in the frequent occurrence of the Inca-bone (os inca) so-called, on the mound crania. 1 Mr. Henry Grillman found this same bone in one of the crania exhumed by him from the great mound of Rouge River, Michigan, with a disposition to its formation in several others. 2 Professor Jones is convinced of the unity of the mound race throughout the entire Mississippi Basin. The following table of measurements, published in the Antiquities of Tennessee, is one of the most valuable which has yet been prepared : bg I Ol ^ 51 !'|| "S !j IfeS . 8^ ~* * -1 .< "^ ^ 1- SJ g d .^l >A g ll 8 "' i|l ]l js a fc/~ J| 11^ |3 11 sal 11 fc<3 ^1 (I i^ 1 M 3 1 S-2 9, vol. ii, p. 246 et seq. ; see Darwin's Descent, vol. i, p. 232. 3 Koit&ndQri&don's Indigenous Races; Dukeof Argyll's Primeval Man, p. 99. 4 Primeval Man, p. 100. 198 SURVIVAL OF THE FITTEST. the Nubians, who are known not to have flat noses or projecting lips. It is supposed also that the unskillfulness of the artists may account for the absence of the typal lines. 1 Hieroglyphic writings have been found dating about 2000 years B. c., in which mention is made of the employment of Negro or black troops by an Egyptian king in the prosecution of a great war. 3 At that remote period, when Abraham was almost the sole representative of the Jewish race, the negro type had multiplied and developed into strong tribes, which were important factors in the military contests of the oldest of powers the Egyptian. Notwithstanding this seeming permanence of type, it is well known that of all physical conditions, color is the most liable to change in every organism. Many animals under domestication change their color entirely. 3 In our Southern States it was observed that house-slaves of the third generation presented quite a markedly different appearance from field slaves. 1 This was owing as much, no doubt, to different food and different habits of life as to protection from the sun, though many dif- ferent races have quite the same color while their habits of life are as different as well could be imagined. Of this class, the Eskimo, Chinese, and Fuegeans are examples. However, the fact that color is variable even in a slight degree, indicates that considerable if not radical changes might be brought about during a great length of time. Mr. Darwin has furnished the most rational solution of the question, which he describes briefly " We ourselves, when visiting the famous cavern of Abou Simbel, were far from finding all that the writings of certain anthropologists and partisans of Egyptian art, such as Gliddon, Nott, etc., had promised us. Doubtless one can perfectly distinguish certain types, that is indisputable ; but to desire to fm;l a people in each portrait Scythians, Arabs, Philistines, Lydians, Kurds, Hindoos, Jews, Chinese, Tyrians, Pelasgians, lonians, etc. is it not to give too great an influence to the Egyptian artists, who were copyists without skill, and but clumsy inventors?" Pouchet's Plurality of the Human Race, Eng. trans., p. 50. London, 1864. 2 Duke of Argyll's Primeval Man, p. 101. 3 Darwin's Variation of Animals undtr Domestication, vol. ii, pp. 227-335, and many places. 4 Harlan's Medical Researches, p. 532, and Quatrefanges ( Unite de VEspece Humaine, 1861, p. 128), cited by Darwin, Descent, vol. i, p. 237. ACCEPTED CHRONOLOGY FAULTY. 199 as follows : " Various facts which I have elsewhere given, prove that the color of the skin and hair is sometimes correlated in a surprising manner with a complete immunity from the action of certain vegetable poisons and from the attack of parasites. Hence it occurred to me that negroes and other dark races might have acquired their dark tints by the darker individuals escaping during a long series of generations from the deadly influence of the miasmas of their native countries." 1 This doctrine of the survival of only the fittest, while all the weaker and perhaps lighter complexioned individuals of a race gradually succumbed to the deadly influence of climate, no doubt will explain the origin of the dark races, known to enjoy a special immunity against yellow and other fevers. 2 At all events, the formation of the distinctive features of races requires a great lapse of time. The geologist asks for time in which to account for the formation of strata, and the intelligent world now grants it to him without limit, and just as reasonably may the ethnologist ask for time in which to account for the formation of racial types. 3 Nor need the most literal interpreter of Genesis object to this demand on the ground of any conflict with the letter even of the historic narrative of the Pentateuch. The accepted chronology, based on Archbishop Usher's interpretation, is no part of the text of Genesis. It is purely the product of his inadvertence and the blindness of many others of his school of Biblical chronologists. It is evident that the rules of interpretation applied to the tenth 1 Descent, vol. i, p. 233, Bradford (A. W. ) discusses the origin of color and other racial peculiarities, and attributes to the tendency of a species to vary, and cites the production of Albinoes, Xanthous, and Sedigidi or six-fingered indi- viduals. " It must be admitted," he says, " that this theory is sufficiently sup- ported by an irrefragable mass of testimony to establish the original unity of the human race, and to indicate that varieties of mankind are descended from the same primitive stock." American Antiquities, pp. 238-9. 2 See instances in Darwin's Descent, vol. i, p. 234 ; Nott and Gliddon's Types of Mankind, p. 68, and especially Pouchet's Plurality of the Human Race (trans.), p. 60. 3 " I doubt not that there will be found continuous and uninterrupted causes which shall explain all the diversities of the different branches of the human family without the necessity of resorting to independent creations." Foster's Pre-Hintoric Races, p. 353. 200 ACCEPTED CHRONOLOGY FAULTY. chapter of Genesis, according to which the names of the descend- ants of Noah's sons are taken to represent individuals only, can- not hold. The probabilities are that they represent considerable tribes or nations. This probability is an established fact in the sixteenth and subsequent verses. In the fifteenth verse we learn that Canaan, the grandson of Noah, " begat Sidon, his first-born, and Heth." Here the writer seems to refer to indi- viduals, but it is probable that he alludes even to the origin of tribes. In the sixteenth verse we are not left in doubt on the subject, for there he no longer speaks of individuals or genera- tions but of the growth of nations. He immediately adds after the above quotation, " and [begat] the Jebusite, and the Amor- ite, and the Girgasite, and the Hivite, and the Arkite, and the Sinite," etc., etc. 1 The account makes no pretensions at chro- nology or at furnishing data for any system, and the constructions put upon its condensed account of the origin and growth of nations during an indefinite lapse of time by short-sighted inter- preters, are unwarranted and certainly do injustice to the oldest of our histories. When we go back of the birth of Christ two thousand years to the time of Abraham this is as far as we can tread with certainty in the light of History. This period has been aptly designated by the Duke of Argyll as a Time absolute." But when we go back of 2000 B. c., we are compelled to walk in a twilight glimmer, with only the dim rays from occa- sional cuneiform inscriptions, and the condensed accounts con- tained in Genesis, falling across our uncertain pathway. This period the above able writer has chosen to call " Time relative," and the probabilities are that its measure is double if not treble that of the portion of "Time absolute" which precedes the Christian Era. An additional fact in this connection which strengthens the preceding is, that the three most ancient versions of the Pentateuch the Hebrew, the Samaritan and the Septua- gint vary considerably in their statements as to the ages of many of the patriarchs at the birth of their sons'. So wide is the differ- 1 See an excellent treatment of this subject by the Duke of Argyll, Primeval Man, pp. 94 et seq. CONSIDERATIONS ON THE PRECEDING. 201 ence in this respect between the Hebrew and Septuagint versions that their chronologies cannot be reconciled at all, the latter allowing a period of eight hundred years more than the former from Adam to Abraham ; such being the case, it is impossible to arrive at the time of the flood or the origin of the race. These contradictions in versions, however, do not in any way impeach the historic authority of the Pentateuch, since it is in no sense a chronology any more than it is a work on geographic or astronomic science. The known antiquity of Egypt and China, to say nothing of the facts revealed by geology concerning man's an- tiquity, can never be reconciled with Usher's system, which is in no sense the true chronology of any known version of the Pentateuch. 1 In this chapter we have seen that there is nothing to indicate that the Americans owe their origin to a special act of creation, and further, if they originated by the process of development (for which there is no sufficient evidence), that it was not upon the American continent. We are supported in these conclusions by the most respectable writers on American Ethnology 2 and 1 " When speaking in a former work of the distinct races of mankind, I remarked that if all the leading varieties of the human family sprang originally from a single pair (a doctrine to which then, as now, I could see no valid objec- tion), a much greater lapse of time was required for the slow and gradual formation of such races as the Caucasian, Mongolian, and Negro, than was embraced in any of the popular systems of chronology." Sir Charles Lyett's Antiquity of Man, p. 385. Dr. J. P. Thompson says : " For such works [alluding to Babel] and especially for founding such an empire as was ancient Egypt, there was need of centuries for the growth of a population in numbers and resources, equal to the gigantic structures that crown the banks of the Nile. The less than two centuries between Archbishop Usher's date of the cessation of the flood, and Piazzi Smith's calculation of the date of the great pyramid, was far too short an interval for results upon a scale so magnificent. * * * Either then we must place the flood much farther back upon the chronological scale, or must admit not only that it was not universal in territorial extent, which is alto- gether probable, but that it was not universal in the destruction of mankind, which would seem to contradict both the letter and the spirit of the sacred record." Man in Genevis and Geology, p. 100. New York, 1870. 12mo. * See Humboldt's Essai Polit., vol. i, p. 79, Paris, 1811. He considers not only the Red Indians, but the Toltecs and Aztecs, to be of Asiatic Origin. See Brasseur de Bourbourg*8 Nat. Civil. Ant., torn, i, p. 27. McCullough's Researches, 202 CONCLUSIONS. Antiquities. That the American population is of old world origin there can be little doubt ; but from whence it came, and to what particular people or peoples it owes its birth, is quite another question. 1 That view seems open to least objections which maintains that the Western Continent received its popu- lation at a comparatively early period in the history of the race, before the peoples of Western Europe and Eastern Asia had assumed their present national characteristics or fully developed their religious and social customs. 2 Phil, and Ant., pp. 175 et seq. Crowe, The Gospel in Central America, p. 61. Bradford, American Antiquities, in chapter xii, gives his reasons for declaring the Americans to have heen a " primitive and cultivated branch of the human family." Mayer (Brantz) in Mexico as it Was, p. 260, expresses his agreement with the opinion entertained by Bradford. Carver, in Travels through the Inte- rior Parts of North America, repeats the opinion of Charlevoix, that the Amer- icans are of old world origin. Tylor, Analmac, London, 1861, p. 104, says: " On the whole, the most probable view of the origin of the Mexican tribes seems to be the one ordinarily held, that they really came from the old world, bringing with them several legends, evidently the same as the histories recorded in the book of Genesis." 1 La teoria de la diversidad especifica de razas es tan intenible, que sin mas decir podemos, dejar esta cuestion, la cual ultimamente, en especial en Norte- America, ha escitado alguna controversia. Qutidanos, pues, un origen primor- dial para toda la raza humana y entonces la cuestion es, saber de que tronco 6 familia del antiguo continente se poblo el nuevo, 6 bien vice- versa, que tam- bien es possible, aunque improbable, que del que llamamos nuevo se haya poblado el viego continente." Ezequiel Uricoec7tea in Soc. Mex. Bol. 2d. ep. iv, 1854, p. 128. " For my own part I have long been convinced of the consan- guinity between the brachycephalae of America and those of Asia and the Pacific islands, and that this characteristic type may be traced uninterruptedly through the long chain of tribes inhabiting the west coast of the American Continent from Behring Straits to Cape Horn." Eetzius, Smithsonian Report, 1859, p. 267. "The era of their existence as a distinct and isolated race must probably be dated as far back as that time which separated into nations the inhabitants of the old world, and gave to each branch of the human family its primitive language and individuality." J. C. Prichard's Natural History of Man, p. 356. London, 1845. CHAPTER Y. TRADITIONAL HISTORY OF THE ORIGIN OF THE MAYA NATIONS. Ancient Civilization of Tabasco and Chiapas The Tradition of Votan The First Emigrants to America City of Nachan The Votanic Document Ordonez Brasseur and Cabrera on the Tzendal Document The Empire of the Chanes The Oldest Civilization The Earliest Home of the Mayas The Quiches Their Origin Tradition The Quiche Cosmogony The Crea- tion of Man The Quiche Migration Tulan Mt. Hacavitz Human Sacri- fices instituted Four Tulans Association of the Mayas and Nahuas Heroic PerioJ of the Quiches Xibalba and its Downfall Exploits of the Quiche Chieftains War of the Sects Xibalba and Palenque the same Mayas of Yucatan and their Traditions Culture Heroes Zamna and Cukulcan Christ Myth. HE most ancient civilization on this continent, judging -L from the combined testimony of tradition, records, and architectural remains, was that which grew up under the favor- able climate and geographical surroundings which the Central American Kegion southward of the Isthmus of Tehuantepec afforded. The great Maya family with its numerous branches, each in time developing its own dialect if not its own peculiar language, at an early date fixed itself in the fertile valley of the River Usumasinta, and produced a civilization which was old and ripe when the Toltecs came in contact with it. Here in this picturesque valley region in Tabasco and Chiapas we may look for the cradle of American civilization. Under the shadow of the magnificent and mysterious ruins of Palenque a people grew to power who spread into Guatemala and Honduras, northward toward Anahuac and southward into Yucatan, and for a period of probably twenty-five centuries exercised a sway which, at one time, excited the envy and fear of its neighbors. We are fully 204 THE TRADITION OF VOTAN. aware of the uncertainty which attaches itself to tradition in general, and of the caution with which it should be accepted in treating of the foundations of history ; but still, with reference to the origin and growth of old world nations, nothing better offers itself in many instances than suspicious legends. The histories of the Egyptians, the Trojans, the Greeks, and of even ancient Home rests on no surer footing. It is certain that while the legendary history of any nation may be confused, exaggerated, and besides full of breaks, still there are some main and funda- mental facts out of which it has grown, and this we think is especially true of the new world traditions. Clavigero says : " The Chiapanese have been the first peoplers of the new world, if we give credit to their traditions. 'Sfeey say that Votan, the grandson of that respectable old man who built the great ark to save himself and family from the deluge, and one of those who undertook the building of that lofty edifice which was to reach up to heaven, went by express command of the Lord to people that land. They say also that the first people came from the quarter of the north, and that when they arrived at Soco- nusco, they separated, some going to inhabit the country of Nicaragua and others remaining in Chiapas." * The tradition of Votan, the founder of the Maya culture, though somewhat warped, probably by having passed through priestly hands, is nevertheless one of the most valuable pieces of information which we have concerning the ancient Americans. Without it our knowledge of the origin of the Mayas would be a hopeless blank, and the ruins of Palenque would be more a mystery than ever. According to this tradition, Votan came from the East, from Valum Chivim, by the way of Valum Votan, from across the sea, by divine command, to apportion the land of the new conti- nent to seven families which he brought with him. It appears that he had been preceded in America by two others named Igh and Imox, if the researches of the Abbe Brasseur de Bour- bourg can be relied upon. In the Tzendal calendar, Votan's name appears as that of the third day, while Igh and Imox are 1 Hist. Ant. del Messico (Eng. trans., 1807), vol. i. THE CITY OF NACHAN. 205 the first and second respectively. If, as is supposed, the names represent the true succession of the Maya chiefs, there is some ground for 'the Abbe's view. 1 The doubtful portions of the tradition which may be interpolations are the ambiguous asser- tions that he saw the Tower of Babel, and was present at the building of Solomon's temple. Probably the remains only of the former structure may be referred to. With these contradictions we have nothing to do, as they do not in any way affect the subsequent history of the Votanites, or interfere with the probability of their old world origin. To at- tempt to designate the point from which Votan started or the means by which he reached the new world, would be the height of folly. Votan is said to have made four journeys to the land of his nativity. His achievements in the new world were, how- ever, as great as those of any of the heroes of antiquity. His great city was named " Nachan," (city of the serpents), from his own race, which was named Chan, a serpent. This Nachan is unquestionably identified with Palenque. The date of his jour- ney is placed at 1000 years B. c. 2 The kingdom of the serpents 1 " Quoique Votan soit le veritable fondateur de la civilisation et de 1'empire des Quiches, le Codex Chimalpopoca, attribue neanmoins la fondation de 1'em- pire a son Igh ou Ik, appele par les Mexicains Ehecatl ou Cipactonac, parceque ce prince vint le premir amener une colonie sur le continent americain. Cipatonac est compose de Cipactli, et de Tonacayo. Le premier vieut de ce un, Ipnn, sur ou au-dessus, et tlactli, qui est le corps humain, c'est-a-dire, Un homme tuperieur aux autres homines, ou encore de noire race, toutes choses qui conviennent par- faitement au pere de la race des chanes. Tonacayo, veut dire notre chair ou le corps humain, le mot tout entier Cipactonac ayant la signiflcacion suivante : 'Cclui qui est sorti du premier de notre race.' Ehecatl est en mexicain 1'air, ou le souffle, Igh ou Ik, en langua maya et tzendale. Dans les calendriere d'Oxaca, Soconusco, Chiappas et d'Yucatan, il suit immediatemet le nom de Nin, Imos ou Imox, corame celui d'Ehecatl suit dans le mexicain celui de Cipactli." Brasseur de Bourbourg, Cartas, note, p. 71. He then proceeds to sustain his conclusions by citing analogies between the name and its signifi- cance among the Egyptians. 2 Chimalpopoca, MS., Brasseur de Bourbourg, Popol Vuh., p. Ixxxviii ; see also Memorias para la Historia del Antigno, Reyno de Guatemala, por Franc, de Paula Garcia Pelaez (Guatemala, 1851). Pelaez states that Votan founded the ancient Culhuacan, now known as Palenque, in the year 8000 of the world and iu the tenth century B. c. 206 THE VOTANIC DOCUMENT ORDONEZ. flourished so rapidly that Votan founded three tributary mon- archies whose capitals were Tulan, Mayapan, and Chiquimula. 1 The former is supposed to have been situated about two leagues east of the town of Ococingo ; Mayapan is well-known to have been the capital of Yucatan, and Chiqimula is thought to have been Copan in Honduras. 2 One of the great works of this hero was the excavation of a tunnel or ' snake hole ' from Zuqui to Tzequil. He also deposited a great treasure at Huehuetan, in Soconusco, which he left under the vigilant care of a guard, directed by one of the most honorable women of the land. Finally, he wrote a book in which he recorded his deeds and offered proof of his being a Chane (or serpent). This ancient document, which is claimed to have been written by one of Votan's descendants, of the eighth or ninth generation and not by himself, 3 was in the Tzendal language, a dialect or branch of the Maya, spoken in Chiapas and around Palenque. Its history is, however, quite checkered, and the information which it contained comes very indirectly. For generations the Votanic document was scrupulously guarded by the people of Ta- coaloya, in Soconusco, but was finally discovered by Francisco Nunez de la Vega, Bishop of Chiapas. In the preamble of his Constituciones, xxx, 4 he claims to have read this document, but it is probable that only a copy, still in the Tzendal language but written in Latin characters, had come into his possession. 5 He fails to give any definite information from the document except the most general statements with reference to Votan's place in the calendar, and his having seen the Tower of Babel, at which each people was given a new language. He states that he could have made more revelations of the history of Votan from this 1 Brasseur de Bourbourg, Popol Vuh., p. Ixxxx, on the authority of Ordonez. 2 Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, p. 159. 8 Ordonez, Brasseur de Bourbourg, Popol Vuh, p. Ixxxvii. 4 Constituciones Diocesanes del Obispado de CMappas. Rome, 1702. 6 Bancroft's Natice Races, vol. v, p. 160: "It is not altogether improbable that a genuine Maya document similar to the Manuscript Troano or Dresden Codex, preserved from early times, may have found a native interpreter at the time of the Conquest, and have escaped in its disguise of Spanish letters the destruction which overtook its companions." NUNEZ DE LA VEGA. 207 document but for bringing up the old idolatry of the people and perpetuating it. With the zeal of a true Vandal, the bishop committed the dangerous documents, together with the treasure which he claims Votan to have buried in the dark-house, to the flames in 1691. There seems to have been other copies, however, of this remarkable manuscript, for about the close of the eighteenth century, Dr. Paul Felix Cabrera was shown a document in the possession of Don Ramon de Ordonez y Aguiar, a resident of Ciudad Real in Chiapas, which purported to be the Votanic memoir. 1 Ordonez, at the time, was engaged upon the compo- sition of his work on the " History of the Heaven and Earth." 2 It appears that Cabrera was admitted to the confidence of Ordo- nez, and availed himself of a few facts communicated to him by the latter, which he supplemented by drawing from his imagi- nation for the rest of his account. 3 Brasseur de Bourbourg accuses Cabrera of seriously misrepresenting Ordonez and of warping his account. 4 The following, which is Cabrera's ac- 1 " The memoir in his possession consists of five or six folios of common quarto paper, written in ordinary characters in the Tzendal language, an evident proof of its having been copied from the original in hieroglyphics, shortly after the Conquest. At the top of the first leaf, the two continents are painted in different colors, in two small squares, placed parallel to each other in the angles ; the one representing Europe, Asia and Africa is marked with two large S'S upon the upper arms of two bars drawn from the opposite angles of each square, forming the point of union in the centre ; that which indicates America has two S'S placed horizontally on the bars, but I am not certain whether upon the upper or lower bars, but I believe upon the latter. When speaking of the places he had visited on the old continent, he marks them on the margin of each chapter with an upright S and those of America with a horizontal S. Between these squares stands the title of his history : ' Proof that I am Culebra fa Snake),' which title he proves in the body of the work by saying that he is Culebra because he is Chivim." Cabrera, Teatro Critico Amer., pp. 33-4 2 Title of Ordonez in brief : Historia de la Creadon del Cielo y de la Tierra> Conforme nl Sistema de la Gentilidad Americana. 8 See his Teatro Critico Americano, p. 32 et seq., in Rio's Description of the Ruins of an American City. London, 1822, quarto. 4 " Mais il y dt'figura compl^tement 1'ouvrage d'Ordonez qu'il ne connaissait pas assez et auquel il ajouta des opinions cxtrCmement hasardi'es. D. Ramon se plaignit amerement de ce plagiat et des faussos idoes que Cabrera donnait do son travail, obtint contre lui un jugement, ou le f.lagiaire fut condamne par le tribunal de 1'audience royale de Guatemala, le 30 Juin, 1794. Mais Cabrera, 208 BRASSEUR AND CABRERA ON TZENDAL DOCUMENT. count maybe of interest to the reader: " He (Yotan) states that he conducted seven families from Valum Votan to this continent and assigned lands to them; that he is the third of the Votans; that having determined to travel until he arrived at the root of Heaven, in order to discover his relations, the Culebras, and make himself known to them, he made four voyages to Chivim (which he expressed by repeating four times from Valum Votan to Valum Chivim, from Valum Chivim to Valum Votan) ; that he arrived in Spain, and that he went to Borne ; that he saw the great house of God building ; that he went by the road which his brethren, the Culebras, had bored ; that he marked it, and that he passed by the houses of the thirteen Culebras. He relates that in returning from one of his voyages he found seven other families of the Tzequil nation who had joined the first in- habitants, and recognized in them the same origin as his own, that is, of the Culebras. He speaks of the place where they built the first town, which, from its founders, received the name of Tzequil ; he affirms the having taught them refinement of manners in the use of the table, table-cloth, dishes, basins, cups, and napkins; they taught him the knowledge of G-od and of his worship ; his first ideas of a king and of obedience to Him ; that he was chosen captain of all those united families." It is not necessary for us to point out the hand of the interpolator in this account ; it is sufficiently apparent. However, its obnoxious prominence need not destroy our faith in the general facts of the account. The interpretation of the document we submit to the reader with the simple reminder that the symbol of life and power among the Central Americans and Mexicans has ever been a serpent, a fact which may have derived its significance from the meaning of the name of the Votanites together with the power attained by Palenque. 1 Votan's followers were called tout en pillant les idees du savant antiquaire, n'en rendait pas moms justice a son talent et a son merite." Brasseur de Bourbourg on Ordonez MS. Carta*, p. 8. 1 The explanation given by Cabrera is as follows : " Let us suppose then, with Calmet and other authors whom he quotes, that some of the Hivites who were descendants from Heth, son of Canaan, were settled on the shores of the Mediterranean Sea and known from the most remote parts under the name of 209 Tzequites by their predecessors, probably by the descendants of Igh and Imox, the signification of which term is ' men with petticoats.' The Tzendal traditions refer always to the city of Nachan as the capital of the kingdom of the Chanes or Serpents, and the most significant feature of the traditional names of this people is the fact that the name Culhua, applied by the Nahua nations and especially by the Toltecs to a powerful people who had preceeded them at the south, is the exact equivalent of Chanes ; the same is true of Culhuacan. 1 The Abbe Brasseur de Bourbourg obtained a copy of the fragmentary MS. of Ordo- nez, which he informs us was written in two separate parts in 'quarto, at different times. The first or mythological part exists in a copy owned by the Abbe. 2 The second or historical part, if ever written, has never reached the light, and from the description Hivim or Givim, from wtiich region they were expelled, some years before the departure of the Hebrews from Egypt, by the Caphtorims or Philistines, who, according to some writers, were colonists from Cappadocia, others considering them to be from Cyprus, and more probably, according to a third opinion, from Crete, now Candid ; that to strengthen their native country Egypt, and to pro- tect themselves from all assault, they built five large cities, viz.: Accaron, Azotus, Ascalon, and Gaza [fifth wanting in account], from whence they made frequent sallies upon the Canaanite towns and all their surrounding neighbors (except the Egyptians, whom they always respected), and carried on many wars in the posterior ages against the Hebrews. The Scriptures (Deuteronomy chap, ii, verse 23, and Joshua, chap, xiii, verse 4) inform us of the expulsion of the Hivites (Givim) by the Caphtorims, from which it appears that the latter drove out the former, who inhabited the countries from Azzah to Gaza. Many others were settled in the vicinity of the mountains of Eval and Azzah, among whom were reckoned the Sichemites and the Gabaonites ; the latter by stratagem made alliance with Joshua, or submitted to him. Lastly, others had their dwellings about the skirts of Mount Hermon, beyond Jordan to the eastward of Canaan (Joshua, chap, ii, verse 3). Of these last were Cadmus and his wite Hermione or Hermonia, both memorable in sacred as well as profane history, as their exploits occasioned their being exalted to the rank of deities, while in regard to their metamorphosis into snakes (Culebras) mentioned by Ovid, Metam., lib. 3, their being Hivites may have given rise to this fabulous trans- mutation, the name in the Phoenician language implying a snake, which the ancient Hebrew writers suppose to have been given from this people being ac- customed to live in caves under ground like snakes." Cabrera, Teatro Criti, pp. 47-8. On p. 95 he reaches the conclusion that the Votanites were Cartha- ginians. 1 Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, p. 163. 9 Cartas, p. 12. 14 210 KEY TO THE ORIGIN OF THE OLDEST CIVILIZATION. of its contents found in the first part, we should think that the author might have made a rather imaginative historian. 1 While some of the details of the Votanic tradition are not worthy of a moment's consideration, it is quite certain that in the general facts we have a key to the origin of what all American- ists agree in pronouncing the oldest civilization on this continent, one which was gray and already declining when the Toltecs entered Mexico. There is not the slightest evidence that it originated in any other place than in Chiapas, where it is found, and extended itself into Guatemala, Yucatan, and possibly branched northward in a colony as remote as Culhuacan. Sr. Orozco y Berra has found fifteen languages or dialects to be re- lated to the Maya language, a fact which indicates the age and extent of that remarkable civilization. 2 Sr. Orozco is convinced from linguistic and other researches, that the inhabitants of Cuba and others of the West India Islands were Mayas, and points out the intermediate location of Cuba between Florida and Yucatan. He thinks the earliest home of the Mayas on this 1 The description of its contents drawn by Braeseur de Bourbourg from the part in his possession is briefly as follows : The second volume of Ordonez com- prised the history of the ancestors of Votan, a descendant of Shem by the Hivo-Phoenician line; of their emigration from the Eastern Continent to the Occident ; of their voyage with their first legislator by the Usumasinta River and its affluents to the Plain Palenque ; the foundation of the great monarchy of the Quiches as well as that of Nachan, which was the capital ; of the found- ing of the three royal cities of Mayapan, Tulha, and Chiquirnula. The Abbe finds allusion to this work in Torquemada, Juarros, Cogolludo, Lizana, and par- ticularly in Sahugun, book iii of his Hist. Gen., where it is claimed to treat of the original inhabitants of Palenque. He then states that the work was written in Guatemala at the close of the eighteenth century, and was sent to Spain or taken thither by its author for publication. In 1803 it was found in the hands of Sr. Gil Lemos of Madrid, where it had been left for publication. Its con- tents becoming known to the Council of the Indias, it was suppressed like many others on the early history of America. Ordonez, who for ten years afterwards was canon of the Cathedral at Ciudad Real, died without seeing his work pub- lished. See Brasseur de Bourbourg, Cartas, p. 12 et scq. 2 These are as follows : Chontal, Quiche, Zutugil, Kachiquel, Mam, Pokoman, Pokonchi, Caichi Coxoh, Ixil, Tzendal, Tozotzil, Choi, Huaxteco, and Totonaco ; besides those of the islands of Cuba and Hayti, Borquia and Jamaica. . Geografla de los Lingua*, p. 98. Mexico, 1864, 4to. FORMER HOME OF THE MAYAS. 211 continent was on the Atlantic coast of the United States, from whence they emigrated to Cuba and thence to Yucatan. 1 Though we are not fully satisfied that the Mayas ever occupied Florida, it is quite likely that the islands of the Gulf were in- habited by them at an early day. The culture hero Votan is a mystery, and to arrive at his true character or office is simply an impossibility. For those disposed to speculate, there is abun- dant opportunity.- The most interesting traditionary history which has been discovered is that of the Quiches of Guatemala. By the name Quiche, in this immediate connection, we do not mean to speak of that people after they became amalgamated with the Nahua nations from Central Mexico, but as a branch of the great Maya monarchy, in all probability located at first at Tulha or Tula, which, it is believed, was situated near Ococingo. At first, wa think, the Quiches developed their own institutions, dialects, etc., as one of the allied powers asso- ciated with the capital city Nachan, but gradually assumed an individuality which became distinctive, until a rivalry between the capital and its allied neighbor sprang up, which ultimately ended in the overthrow of the former. Sr. Pimentel, on the authority of an ancient author, states that the name Quiche was applied to the first empire of Palenque and signified many trees. It was employed by the "innumerable families of different nations which composed it, to symbolize its various branches." 3 The tradition of their origin states that they came from the far East, across immense tracts of land and water ; that in their former home they had multiplied considerably and lived without civilization, and with but few wants ; they paid no tribute, spoke a common language, did not bow down to wood and stone, but lifting their eyes toward heaven, observed the will of their 1 Ibid, p. 128. 2 " II y a plus d'un trait de ressemblance entre le personnage mysterious qui parut a Carthage et le Votan des Tzendales. Les chemina soutorraines cm celui- ci fut admis, lesquels traversent le terre pour arriver a la racine du ciel, indiquent une suite d'epreuves qui rappellent les initiations Egyptiennes et dont on trouve des traces jusqu'a 1't'poque meme de la conquete dans les epreuves de la chevalerie Mexicaine." Braaseur de Bourbourg, Popol Vuh, p. cviii. 3 Lenguas Indigenas de Mexico, torn, ii, p. 124. Mexico, 1865, 8vo. 212 QUICHE ORIGIN TRADITION. Creator, they attended with respect to the rising of the sun, and saluted with their invocations the Morning Star; with loving and obedient hearts they addressed their prayers to Heaven for the gift of offspring. " Hail, Creator and Maker ! regard us, at- tend us. Heart of Heaven, Heart of the Earth, do not forsake us, do not leave us. God of Heaven and Earth, Heart of Heaven, Heart of Earth, consider our posterity always. Accord us re- pose, a glorious repose, peace and prosperity, justice, life and our being. Grant to us, Hurakan, enlightened and fruitful, Thou who comprehendest all things great and small." 1 In the Popol VuJi, the sacred book of the Quiches, we are enabled to arrive more closely at the cosmogony and worship of that remarkable people. 3 The reader may not be prepared for the irreconcilable contradictions and for the obscure and figurative language in which 1 MS. Quiche de Chichicastenango in Brasseur de Bourbourg's Hist. Nat. Civ., vol. i, pp. 105-6. See also Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, p. 21. 2 The Popol Vuh was first published by Dr. Scherzer in Vienna, in 1857, under the title of Las Historias del Origen de los Indios de esta Provincia de Guatemala, traduddas de la Lengua Quiche al Castellano para mas Comodidad de los Ministros del 8. Evangel, por el R. P. F. Francisco Ximenez, cura doctrinero por el real patronato del Pueblo de S. Thomas, Chuila, Exacta- mente segun el texto espanol del manuscrito original que se halla en la biblio- teca de la Universidad de Guatemala, publicado por la primera vez, y aumentado con una introduccion y anotaciones por el Dr. C. Scherzer. Father Ximinez, a Dominican and curate of Chichicastenango of Guatemala, wrote about 1720, and subsequently. His work, because of its condemnation of the oppression of the Indians, was suppressed, but was finally discovered in June, 1854, in the library of the University of San Carlos, in Guatemala, by Dr. Scherzer. Father Ximinez describes the work as a literal copy of an original Quiche book, made in Roman letters by Quiche copyists, after the introduction of Christianity into Guatemala. The copy is stated ambiguously to have been made to replace the original Popol VuTi national book which was lost. How a book which had been lost could be copied literally, the Father fails to tell us. Internal evidence, however, sustains the claim that it was written by native Quiches. In 1860, Brasseur de Bourbourg undertook a new translation of the Popol Vuh, from the Ximinez document (containing the Quiche and Spanish). This he did among the Quiches and with the aid of the natives, and as a result it is believed that a much more literal translation than that made by Ximinez was obtained. In our examination of Quiche history we have compared both translations and shall draw from them directly, but shall also take advantage of the excellent condensations and renderings which Mr. Hubert H. Bancroft has made. See Native Races, vol. iii, p. 42, note, for the leading facts as we have stated them. THE QUICHE COSMOGONY. 213 this work abounds ; but with the remembrance that all nations of antiquity delighted in the use of figures, parabolic disguises and personifications under which the truth was couched, we may be able to profit by even the seeming foolishness and confusion of the Quiche record. The strange, wild poetry of the Quiches, can only be fully enjoyed by pursuing the unabridged accounts for which we regret we have not space. 1 In the order of the Quiche creation, the heavens were first formed and their boundaries fixed by the Creator and Former, by whom all move and breathe, by whom all nations enjoy their wisdom and civilization. At first there was no man or animal or bird or fish or green herb nothing but the firmament existed, the face of the earth was not yet to be seen, only the peaceful sea and the whole expanse of heaven. Silence pervaded all ; not even the sea murmured ; there was nothing but immobility and silence in the darkness in the night. 2 The Creator, the Former, the Dominator the feath- ered serpent those that engender, those that give being, moved upon the water as a glowing light. Their name is Gucumatz,, heart of heaven God. " Earth," they said, and in an instant it was formed and rose like a vapor cloud ; immediately the plains and mountains arose and the cypress and pine appeared. Then Gucumatz was filled with joy, and cried out, " Blessed be thy coming, Heart of Heaven, Hurakan, thunderbolt !" 3 Animals were next formed, but because they could not praise their Maker they were doomed to become objects of prey. Four crea- tions of men then followed. The first man was made of clay, but he had no intelligence and he was consumed in the water. Upon a second trial a man and a woman were made of a sort of pith, but they too were unsatisfactory experiments ; though they had life and peopled the earth, they were very inferior, 1 We must refer the reader either to the originals or to that treasure-house of American traditional lore, Mr. Bancroft's third volume, which is a repository of poetic renderings as well. Nor have we endeavored in every instance to avoid the use of that author's incomparable terminology, so expressive of the spirit of the original. 2 Brasseur de Bourbourg, Popd Vuh, p. 7 ; Ximinez, Hist. Ind. Gnat., pp. 5-6 ; Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iii, p. 44. 8 Mr. Bancroft's rendering, Native Races, vol. iii, p. 45. FOUR CREATIONS OF MAN. living like beasts and forgetting the Heart of Heaven. The Creator then destroyed them with a flood of resin, allowing only a few to escape, that now exist as little apes in the woods. The persons of the Godhead, enveloped in the darkness which en- shrouded a desolated world, counseled concerning the creation of a more perfect order, and as a result they formed four perfect men named : Balam-Quitze, Balam-Agab, Mahucutah, and Iqi- Balam. These men were miraculously formed of white and yel- low maize, and the Creator was content with his labors. " Verily, at last, were there found men worthy of their origin and their destiny; verily, at last, did the gods look upon beings who could see with their eyes and handle with their hands and understand with their hearts, grand of countenance and broad of limb, the four sires of our race stood up under the white rays of the morning star sole light as yet of the primeval world stood up and looked. Their great clear eyes swept rapidly over all; they saw the woods and rocks, the lakes and the sea, the mountains and the valleys, and the heavens that were above all ; and they comprehended all and admired exceedingly. Then they returned thanks to those who had made the world and all therein was : we offer up our thanks, twice yea, verily, thrice ; we have re- ceived life, we speak, we walk, we taste, we hear and understand, we know both that which is near and that which is far off, we see all things, great and small, in all the heaven and earth. Thanks, then, Maker and Former, Father and Mother of our life, we have been created we are." 1 These four creatures were considered too perfect by the gods, and in order that their omni- science might be destroyed, they breathed a cloud of mist over their vision. To each of these men wives were made while they slept. A fourth creation seems to have taken place by which the ancestors of other races were formed. Th3 account which the Popol Vuh furnishes of the migra- tions of the ancient Quiches is somewhat confused, and it is scarcely possible to hope that the locations named should ever be fully identified. Their worship was at first purely spiritual. 1 Mr. Bancroft's graceful and truly poetic rendering, Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 47, 48. MT. HACAVITZ. 215 " On]y they gazed up into heaven, not knowing what they had come so iar to do." In their original home, wherever that might have been, they grew weary of this kind of service of watching for " the rising of the sun " by which it seems they meant the coming of temporal power. The four men then forsook their abode and journeyed to Tulan-Zuivu, the seven caves or seven ravines. Here they found gods ; to each of the four men a different deity was assigned. To Balam-Quitze the god Tohil was given ; to Balam-Agab the god Avilix ; and to Mahucutah, the god Hacavitz ; and though the fourth man Iqi-Balam also received a god, no special account is taken of him, since the latter of the four men left no progeny. The journey to Tulan is said to have been a very long one. Doubtless in this account we have an allusion to one of those modifications in religious notions which seems to have often attended a change of residence in early times. The abstract worship of the Creator is supplanted by the more material and ceremonial worship of intermediate deities (demi-gods). Tulan is described as a much colder climate than the eastern and tropical land which they had forsaken, and the god Tohil came to their relief by the creation of fire. But incessant rains, accompanied with hail, extinguished all their fires, which were again kindled repeatedly by the fire- god. Tulan was an unfavorable locality for permanent abode rains, extreme cold, dampness, famine prevailed, and the peculiar misfortune of the confusion of tongues there befell them. No longer were the brother propagators of the race able to communi- cate with each other. " At Tulan there was as yet no sun," is the significant but perplexing language of the narrative. At last Tulan, the mysterious land of the " seven-caves," was for- saken, and under the leadership of Tohil the people began a migration which was attended with indescribable hardships and famine itself. Their way led through dense forests, over high mountains, a long sea passage, and by a rough and pebbly shore. We are, however, told that the sea was parted for their passage. Their tribulations were at an end when at last they arrived at a beautiful mountain, which they named after their god Haravitz. Here they were informed that the sun would appear, and, as a 216 HUMAN SACRIFICES INSTITUTED. consequence, the four progenitors of the race and all the people rejoiced. Here was everything beauteous and gladdening. The morning star shed forth a resplendent brightness, and the sun itself at last appeared, though then it had not the warmth which it possessed at a later day. Before the light of the sun, how- ever, the gods Tohil, Avilix and Hacavitz, together with the tiger and lion arid reptiles, were changed into stone. To interpret this paragraph, which is greatly condensed, is a difficult under- taking, still there are certain facts which seem to serve as the basis of intelligent speculation. The language is extremely figurative throughout the entire narrative, and especially so here. Their worship of the morning star at an early period seems to connect them with the Mediterranean peoples of the old world. The allusions to the sun not yet having come may be retro- spective, indicating that the worship of the sun had not been adopted at that early day, or it may indicate that the period of national strength had not dawned. The fact that the morning star shone more brilliantly on Mt. Hacavitz than at Tulan (the seven caves), may mean either that the worship of the star was more splendidly celebrated, or it may have reference to an astro- nomical fact, that the star itself was more luminous, and furnish evidence in harmony with the statements of the narrative that Mt. Hacavitz was a more southern location than the tempestuous Tulan. The petrifaction of the three tribal gods may have been the result of an age of peace and prosperity which offered an opportunity for developing their cultus ; or, upon the other hand, if the coming of the sun refers to the advent of a new religion, that which is known to have prevailed among the Nahuas, the old gods may have been sculptured in stone, that their national character and deeds might not be forgotten before the increasing importance of the new faith. There they insti- tuted sacrifices of beasts to the three stone gods Tohil, Avilix and Hacavitz ; they even drew blood from their own bodies and offered it to them. Finally, not content with these, the first four men, led by Balam-Quitze, instituted human sacri- fices. Captives were taken from neighboring tribes, kidnapping was practised extensively, until the hostility of their neighbors THE FOUR TULANS. 217 broke forth into open war. The contest, however, resulted favor- ably to the Quiches, and the surrounding tribes became subject to the victorious power. In Hacavitz they composed a national song called the Kamucu (" we see ") a memorial of their mis- fortunes in Tulan a lament for the loss of so many of their people in that unfortunate locality. This loss is described as .occasioned by a. portion of their race being left behind, rather than as the result of the misfortunes which attended them there. At last, at the noon-day of their national glory, it came to pass that the ancestors of their race, Balam-Quitze, Balam-Agab, Mahucutah and Iqi-Balam, died the men who came from the east, from across the sea, died and their remains were enveloped in a great bundle and preserved as memorials of the ancestors of the race. 1 Then the Quiches sang the sad Kamucu, and mourned the loss of their leaders and that portion of their race which they left behind them in Tulan. The definite location of Tulan is almost out of the question ; it may only be conjectured. We have already stated, on the authority of Ordiftez, that there was a Tulan near Ococingo. 2 The Cakchiquel MS., known only through the writings of Bras- seur de Bourbourg, but evidently a document containing the same facts as those stated in the Popol Vuh, gives the following information concerning Tulan: "Four persons came from Tulan, from the direction of the rising sun that is one Tulan. There is another Tulan in Xibalbay, and another where the sun sets, and it is there that we came ; and in the direction of the setting sun there is another, where is the god ; so that there are four Tulans ; and it is where the sun sets that we came to Tulan, 1 See Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iii, p. 54. Brasseur de Bourbourg, Nouvelles Annales des Voyages 1858, tome iv, p. 268, and Hist, de Tlaxcallan in the same, tome xcix, 1843, p. 179, where reference is made to these bundles. 2 Popol Vuh, p. Ixxxv, note, et IUd, p. ccliv. The Abbe places that Tulan among the ruins of the valley of Palenque near the modern town of Comitan in the state of Chiapas. He adds : " Siege principal des princes de la race Nahuatl, cette ville aurait ete fondee a, une epoque contemporaine de la capitale des Xibalbides, plusieurs siScles avant l're chretienne, et au rapport de toutes les traditions, elle aurait rivalise constamment avec sa metropole dont elle chcrchuit a se rcndre independante." 218 THE FOUR TULANS. from the other side of the sea where this Tulan is ; and it is there that we were conceived and begotten by our mothers and our fathers." 1 From this it appears that two of these Tulans were not upon the continent at all ; one in the east across the sea, the birthplace of the race ; another an imaginary locality somewhere toward the region of the setting sun, where the deity dwells ; another Tulan is pretty certainly located in Chiapas near the capital of Xibalba ; with this place, however, they do not state that they had any relationship, but another Tulan where the sun sets is designated as the locality to which they came from across the sea. Mr. Bancroft confounds the Tulan of their misfortunes with that which was located near Xibalba ; but this view is plainly wrong, since the climatic surroundings of the Chiapan Tulan are quite the opposite of those described as prevailing at that Tulan where fire was so necessary. In the Tulan to which they journeyed they suffered from cold, and their god Tohil, whom they received there, gave them fire. Senor Orozco y Berra quite positively identifies this Tulan with the Toltec capital Tollan, north of Anahuac, and certainly with reason. 2 There their tongues were changed, there the Nahua language was encountered. No doubt that in the first period of the Toltec power in Tollan, the Maya-Quiche's who had migrated northward from some locality in the Usumacinta region and intermingled with the Nahuas, sharing in their worship and appropriating certain elements of language, migrated south- ward to the elevated regions of Vera-Paz and founded a Quiche power in Guatemala. Upon the downfall of the Toltec monarchy in the eleventh century, no doubt many noble Toltec families forsook the unfor- tunate and fallen capital and founded in Guatemala the Quiche- Cakchiquel monarchy, composed of Maya and Toltec elements, which spread itself southward in colonies and branches into various parts of Central America, and flourished with such 1 Popol Vuh, notes, pp. xci-ii. We have used Mr. Bancroft's rendering of the passage. 5 Oeografia de las Linguas Mexicanas, pp. 96-8 and pp. 127-29. A linguistic argument. 219 power and fame at the time of the Conquest. It is not the province of this work to take up the annals of this or any other people, but only to treat of their most primitive period. The gap in Quiche history between that which we have been treating and the period of the Annals is considerable, and no document has yet been discovered which will fill it with the wanting record. Mr. Bancroft has placed the annals within the reach of the English reader in his fifth volume. Mt. Hacavitz was the point at which the scattered tribes collected and formed the nucleus of the subsequently powerful monarchy in Guatemala of which Utatlan was the capital. The two places may have been iden- tical. Several facts point to the early association of the ances- tors of the Quiches with the Nahuas who subsequently figure so conspicuously as Toltecs and Aztecs. The tribes which migrated northward were called Yaqui (according to the Popol VuTi), and the name ethnographically has the same meaning as Nahuatl. 1 The Quiches applied the name to the inhabitants of Mexico. The god Tohil was called by the Yaqui tribes Yolcuat Quitzal- cuat while the Quiches were in Tulan. Quetzalcoatl, of whom we shall speak more fully hereafter, was the greatest of the Nahua divinities. 2 The Aztecs and Toltecs as well as the Quiches came from the " Seven Caves," that Tulan which seems to have been the early home of the two great families speaking radically different languages the Maya and the Nahua. The statement so often met with that Tulan was across the sea is perplexing. Can we look for it upon some of the islands of the Gulf or Caribbean Sea ? or are we to look upon the reference to the sea passage as an earlier event in the history of both peoples, which because of the lack of records has been confounded with some of the adventures of the march toward the northern Tulan, which was undertaken at least by the Mayas and possibly by the Nahuas from their common home in the Usumacinta valley ? We are inclined, in the light of a large margin of testimony, to accept the latter view, and consider the Tulan of the Chiapan region to have been the early home of both peoples the primi- 1 Brasseur de Bourbourg is the authority cited by Mr. Bancroft, vol. v, p. 188. 2 Bancroft, Native Races, vol. v, p. 188. 220 XIBALBA AND ITS POWER. tive one of the Mayas and the adopted one of the Nahuas after leaving Hue Hue Tlappalan, the accidental centre to which in their wanderings they converged, and in which they met ; here in an a-e of simpler manners they lived in the enjoyment of peace, preserving each their own institutions and language, though considerably influencing each other's customs. The Tulan of this Central American region may have been con- founded in name and characteristics with the original home of each race " across the sea." The Quiche record furnishes us with the" account of an epoch in the early Quiche history which we are justified in character- izing as their heroic period. It occupies the same place in their history as the Trojan war in the history of Greece. The tradition of the fall of Xibalba, the terror of its neighbors, the power which by its enemies was called infernal, is a heroic composition founded on a combination of events as mysterious and wonderful as those contained in the Iliad itself. To locate the events in their proper place, to assign them their true period, is attended with as many difficulties as attend the Homeric history. The author- ities differ as to the proper chronologic order of the record. The Popol Vuh, both in the Ximinez and Brasseur editions, give the narrative to which we have reference immediately after the destruction of the men made of pith or wood the result of the first creation. Mr. Bancroft is somewhat indifferent about the order and follows the narrative. Brasseur de Bourbourg, how- ever, considers that chronologically the narrative follows the third creation, that of the four founders of the Quiche race. 1 If we look upon the so-called creations as simply tribal origins and not as mythical accounts of the origin of man, there is room for the heroic period before the days of the four ancestors of the Quiches ; but if, on the contrary, the two creations preceding that of Balam-Quitze and his associates are mythical, are the legendary accounts of a fancied order in creation and not the origin of tribes, the view taken by the Abbe is the only one which can be accepted. The question cannot at present be definitely settled. If we resort to the latter view, that of the 1 Popol Vuh, p. 195. Bancroft, vol. v, 172-80. EXPLOITS OF THE QUICHE CHIEFTAINS. 221 Abbe, it is necessary for us to suppose that the long reign of Balam-Quitze, Balam-Agab, Mahucutah and Iqi-Balam is that of a line, a dynasty, and not of individuals which is altogether probable. Brasseur supposes the time of which the tradition speaks to have been about fifteen centuries before the Spanish conquest, and think^. Copan was the capital of a province called .Payaqui ("in the Yaqui," which we have seen was the name of the Nahuas), and that this capital, otherwise known as Chiqui- mula, owed its origin to a warrior known as Balam, who intro- duced human sacrifices. His authority is the Isagoge Historico MS. cited by Pelaez, to whose work we have already referred. 1 To attempt to determine upon the time definitely would be a hope- less undertaking. The mysterious tradition with its confused statements and allegorical allusions we will attempt to condense into intelligible shape. This has already been accomplished by Mr. Bancroft, and his version greatly facilitates our efforts in the same direction. The second division of the Popol Vuh contains the account of two attempts at the overthrow of the great Xibalban mon- archy, founded by Votan. The first of these proved unsuccess- ful and fatal to the enemies of the great power ; the second, undertaken by the descendants of the defeated chieftains, resulted in the downfall of the empire of the Serpents or Votanites, and in the revenge of the death of the unsuccessful warriors. The account is provokingly figurative ; different allies of each of the powers being spoken of as owls, wild beasts, rabbits, deer, rats, lice, ants, etc., a custom which has always prevailed among savage and semi-civilized nations. Savages of the forests are usually referred to as wild beasts in early tradition. Xibalba is so hated by its enemies that its usual title is the "infernal regions." ~ Torquemada refers to it as hell, and its king as the king of the " shades." 3 The hatred was intense, and the worst 1 Popol Vuh, p. cclvi. Bancroft, vol. v, p. 545. The Abbe has largely drawn upon his imagination in this instance as in some others, and the opinion is only interesting because of its authorship. 2 Las Casas, Hist. Apologetica, MS., torn, iii, cap. cxxiv et cxxv. 3 Torquemada, torn, ii, pp. 53-4. Xmiinez renders the word Xibalby " Inferno." 222 HUNAHPU AND XBALANQUE. invectives were mild in the estimation of the enemies of the no doubt oppressive power. We have already given the account of creation in which Gucumatz (the Plumed Serpent) figured conspicuously. He, however, is seen to have acted at the word of Hurakan ("Heart of Heaven"). The closing paragraphs of the first division of the Popol Vuh give some of the exploits of the young heroes Hunahpu and Xbalanque, who figure as the defendants of the worship of the Heart of Heaven. A certain Vucub-Cakix, who assumed to be the sun and god of the people, and who in his pride offended the Heart of Heaven, fell at their avenging hands. His sons Zipacna and Cabrakan, whose pride was as offensive to Hurakan as had been their father's, shared the same fate ; though the brothers lost four hundred of their allies in the undertaking, by Zipanca toppling over a house upon them while they were rejoicing at his supposed death in a pit in which they had buried him. The second division of the account reverts to events which preceded those in the closing paragraphs of the first division by one or more generations. The exploits of the ancestors of the brothers are narrated. Xpiyacoc and Xmu'cane, grandparents of the sun and moon, had two sons, Hunhunahpu and Vukub Hunahpu. The former of these sons married, and to him were born also two sons, Hunbatz and Hunchouen, who grew up to be wise and skillful and great artists. With all these persons Hurakan, the Heart of Heaven, communicated through his messenger Yoc. At last Hunhuuahpu and Vukub Hunahpu undertook a journey toward Xibalba, playing ball as they went, by which we understand that they set out upon a march of con- quest. Upon hearing of their approach, Hun Camo and Vukub Came, kings of Xibalba, sent them a challenge to a game of ball by four messengers who were called owls. From the ball-ground of Nimxab Carchah (now the name of an Indian town in Vera Paz), they followed the messengers down the steep road to Xibalba, crossing rivers and ravines and a bloody stream. After arriving at the royal palace, and during the process of arranging for the contest in which their strength should be tried, they were so unfortunate as first to be made the subjects of ridicule for the THE CONQUERORS OF XI B ALBA. 223 whole court, then put to torture, and afterwards were cruelly and it seems treacherously murdered. The head of Hunhunahpu was hung upon a tree, which at once became overgrown with gourds so as to hide the head of the unfortunate chief. Not- withstanding the royal decree that no one should approach the tree, Xquiq, a virgin princess, a Xibalban, determined to taste its forbidden fruit, and in an hour of solitude was in the act of reaching forth to pluck it, when Hunhunahpu spat into her hand and she immaculately conceived. Her condition was dis- covered by her father, who delivered her to the owls, the royal messengers, to be put to death. By bribing her executioners she escaped and went to the dwelling of the old grandmother Xmucane, who upon the death of Hunhunahpu's wife had taken charge of his sons, the youthful Hunbatz and Hunchoucn. Xquiq, by miraculous performances, satisfied Xmucane that Hunhunahpu was the father of her unborn children, and was received into her home. The Xibalban virgin brought forth twin sons in the house of the enemies of her country. These she named Hunahpu and Xbalanque. From the very first their lot with their great- grandmother was a hard one. Their half-brothers Hunbatz and Hunchouen treated them harshly, but in time the twins revenged themselves by changing the former into monkeys, and succeeding to their artistic skill and musical fame. Various exploits of the twin brothers are narrated, chiefly as we would interpret the figurative language with the more savage tribes of the forests and mountains. From one of tl^ir captives whom they call a rat, they learned of the expedition of their father and uncle, and were brought into possession of their ball implements. The old ball-ground (probably battle-ground) of their fathers was resorted to by Hunahpu and Xbalanque, and when the Xibalban monarchs, Hun Came and Vukub Came, heard of their purposes, they were angered and sent a challenge to them as they had done to their ancestors. The message was delivered at the great-grandmother's home, and the two chief- tains, upon being acquainted with the news, returned to bid both mother and grandmother farewell. Before taking final leave, they planted in the centre of the house (probably the court) each 224 THE CONQUERORS OF XIBALBA. a cane, which was endowed with the singular attribute of reveal- ing to the family the fortunes of each of the brothers. The life and fate of each cane was inseparably connected with that of Hunahpu and Xbalanque. On their route to Xibalba the bloody river was passed and a stream called Papuhya ; but, more wise than their predecessors, they took cunning precautions not to be deceived and sacrificed by the Xibalban monarchs. For this purpose, it is said, they sent an animal called Xan before them, equipped with a hair from Hunahpu's leg, with which he pricked the princes and by their exclamations learned their names. Thus they detected the artificial wooden men whom we are told deceived their ancestors and made them the objects of ridicule. By this strange personification we think we may understand that the father and the uncle of the two young heroes had treated with a couple of irresponsible Xibalbans who had been sent out to meet them, with the pretence that they were the kings, and when they had induced their enemies to enter the city, the true monarchs seized them and repudiated the action of the so- called wooden men, avowing no responsibility for their pledges. Hunahpu and Xbalanque avoided two other artifices of which their ancestors were the victims ; one of these was a seat on a red-hot stone under the pretence that it was the seat of honor ; the other was an ordeal in the "House of Gloom." 1 The angry Xibalban kings then met them in a game of ball, but suffered a defeat. Hun Came and Vukub Came then requested the victors to^ive them four bouquets of flowers, which request was granted, the fortunate brothers themselves bearing them to the defeated kings. At their instance, however, the guards of the royal gar- dens committed Hunahpu and Xbalanque to the house of lances the second of five ordeals common at Xibalba. Scarcely had this been done before a swarm of ants allies of the brothers came to their rescue, entered the royal gardens, bribed the lancers, released their leaders and punished the owls guards of the Xibalban kings by splitting their lips. The defeated 1 It will be remembered that Votan deposited his treasure in the " house of gloom " or " darkness." THE FALL OF XIBALBA. 225 monarchs began to realize the seriousness of the contest which was being waged against them. Hunahpu and Xbalanque were then subjected to ordeals in the houses of cold, of tigers, and of fire respectively, but without suffering harm. As we proceed, the account becomes more figurative than ever. In the next ordeal in the house of bats, we are told that Hunahpu's head was cut off by the ruler of the bats, who, it seems, was recog- nized as of super-terrestrial origin. Strange to say, this violent proceeding did not prove fatal to Hunahpu ; the animals assem- bled, came to the heroes' relief, and by the strategic skill of the turtle and rabbit, at a great game of ball, the brothers came out of all the Xibalban ordeals unharmed. The next act was designed as the beginning of the end of the great struggle. Xibalba had failed because the brutes were not its allies. The brothers were determined to show the haughty rival their personal greatness, and resorted to the use of their magical arts. After proper instructions to their sorcerers, Xulu and Pacam, Hunahpu and Xbalanque mounted a funeral pyre and endured a voluntary death. But their ashes and bones which were thrown into a river, rose instantly into life, assuming the shape of young men. Five days subsequent to this wonderful event they appeared in the form of man-fishes ; and on the day following, the sorcery was complete, for the brothers now pre- sented themselves in the form of "ragged old men, dancing, burning and restoring houses, killing and restoring each other to life, and performing other wonderful things. They were induced to exhibit their skill before the princes of Xibalba, killing and resuscitating the king's dog, burning and restoring the royal palace. Then a man was made the subject of their art. Hu- nahpu was cut in pieces and brought to life by Xbalanque. Finally the monarchs of Xibalba wanted to experience perso- nally the temporary death ; Hun Came the highest was first killed, then Vukub Came, but life was not restored to them." l The twin sons of the unfortunate Xibalban virgin, an outcast from her home, triumphed, their father and uncle were avenged, the warlike Xibalbans the fierce, frightful-looking, owl-like, 1 Mr. Bancroft's rendering of the paragraph. Vol. v, p. 179. 15 226 A WAR OF RELIGION. faithless, hypocritical tyrants, black and white, and with painted faces, as they are described were overthrown forever. The ancestors of the victorious chieftains were then deified and given places in the sun and moon ; while their allies, the enemies of Xibalba, were made stars in the firmament. To interpret fully this figurative account requires further knowledge, which it is hoped ultimately may come to light. The beheading of Hunahpu in the house of bats may signify the loss of the most important division of his army ; for when the " animals " came to his relief by which we understand the less civilized tribes of the country he obtained a victory. The closing paragraphs of the account indicate that a long and tire- some warfare brought the brothers repeated victories, but not the entire overthrow of Xibalba ; and that stratagem was resorted to a stratagem no more improbable or difficult to understand than that of the wooden horse said to have been used by the Greeks at Troy. The stratagem was at last successful, and Xibalba, of the Votanites we suppose the empire of the Chanes fell. The war seems to have been one of religion in part, for Hurakan, " Heart of Heaven," inspired the contest, and Gucu- matz, " the Plumed Serpent," one of his associate though minor deities, was the god of Hunahpu and Xbalanque. The wicked Xibalbans were puffed up against the Heart of Heaven, would not accept the true faith, and hence their overthrow before the advancing power of a new religion. 1 It is certain that the con- querors of Xibalba (which was no doubt Palenque) were near neighbors, who had been closely allied to the great power. Ban- croft is of the opinion that they were the Tzequiles, who arrived during Votan's absence and introduced new ideas of government and religion among his people. 2 Garcia Pelaez, in his Memorias, agrees with Juarros in calling them Carthaginians, and states that they arrived in that region about four hundred years before Christ, founded Tulan, the present Ococingo, and overthrew ancient Culhuacan or Palenque. 3 Brasseur de Bourbourg says 1 See Bancroft, vol. v, p. 184. 2 Ibid, vol. v, p. 187. 3 Memorias para la Historia dd Antiguo Eeyno de Guatemala. Guatemala, 1857. THE ENEMIES OF XIBALBA. 227 that the Nahuas, coming into Mexico by sea at the south [i. 6., in the south central region] slowly moved toward the north, to the regions bordering on California, and also spreading their civilization across the Usumacinta River, went into Yucatan and even Guatemala. This he thinks occurred in the year 174 of our era ; Xibalba was at the height of her power, but was overthrown in the revolution and conquest. 1 While we do not attach much certainty to the Abbe's date, still we think that the fall of Xibalba was due to Nahua influences brought to bear upon the ancestors of the Quiches. The old religion and civil- ization of the Votanites were compelled to yield to the vigorous and warlike power which brought with it a religion which has ever commended itself to the senses and impulses of semi- civilized peoples. The worship of the sun-symbol of the Heart of Heaven was destined to supplant all other faiths. It will be remembered that Quetzalcoatl was the leader and deity of the Nahuas, and that in their language his name signi- fied " plumed serpent," while Gucumatz, leader and patron deity of the Xibalban conquerors has precisely the same significance in the Quiche language. Utatlan upon the Guatemalian high- lands was doubtless the point from which the allied forces under the brothers descended the precipitous road to the Usumacinta region below. It is probable that the Nahuas had lived for some time in the country, had reached it in their migrations by water along the Gulf coast, and spread their population to quarters 1 Nations Oiv&isees, torn, i, p. 126. Also see the following from the Popol Vuh, p. clx : "Quant aux evenements dont Tulan ffit le theatre a cette epoque, on ne saurait se dissimulcT, en comparant 1'ensemble des details qu'on trouvc dans ce chaos, qu'il ne se f ut opere alors un vaste mouvement panni les popu- lations de 1'empire de Xibalba, mouvement cause sans doute par les efforts d'une caste sonveraine pour garder le pouvoir et par 1'invasion de races nouvelles, sorties des memes contrees, septentrionales, d'ou etaient venus les Nahuas, on des regions plus sauvages du nord-ouest ; barbares ou civilisees, il y cut naturellement de leurs essaims qui s'amalgamerent aux nations souraises 1'empire, tandis que d'autres, continuant leur route vere 1'Aim'riquemeridionale, y porterent, sinon les institutions entieres des Quinames et des Nahuas, au moins les symboles qui les avaient le plus frappes au passage ou qui convenaient davantage a leur genie." 228 XIBALBA AND PALENQUE THE SAME. both north and south of the point at which they entered. They may have been permitted to settle in the country without moles- tation, and in time to have united their forces with the rivals of Xibalba for the overthrow of a power which was the dread of the entire Central American region. The crumbling though wonder- ful ruins of Palenque are the sole vestiges which are left to us of a grand capital and noble empire, and these offer us nothing but the sealed histories which are graven in hieroglyphics upon its walls. Subsequently the Maya-Quiche nations divided and extended their language in three directions ; one division journeyed toward Guatemala, another toward Mexico, and another into Yucatan ; the latter region has ever remained a peculiarly Maya country. Las Casas states that some of the Guatemalans had a legend of their origin, to the effect that a divine pair of beings had thirteen sons (but by comparison with other authors, namely, Roman in Garcia, and Bancroft, vol. iii, pp. 74-5, it is clear that the writer designed to write three tres instead of thirteen trece), or rather three sons. The eldest was puffed up in his own conceit, and attempted to create man against the will of his parents, but failed, except that he was able to produce vessels of the meaner sort. The younger sons, who exhibited quite a different spirit, were granted the privilege, and after creating the sun and moon and stars, created the first man and woman, the progenitors of the human race. 1 Las Casas adds, " They 1 " De la creacion, pues, tenien esta opinion. Decian que antes de ella ni habia cielo ni tierra ni sol, ni luna ni estrellas. Ponian que hubo un marido y una muger divinos que lamaron Aehel Atcamma. Estos liabian tenido padre y madre los cuales engendaron trece hijos, y que el mayor con algunos con el se ensoberbecieron y guiso hacer criaturas contra la voluntad del padre y madre ; pero no pudieron porque loque hicieron fueron unos vasos viles de servicio como jarros y ollas y semejantes Los hijos menores que se llamaban Huncheven hunahan, pidieron licencia a su padre y madre para hacer creaturas, y con- cedieransela, diciendoles que saldrian con ellos por que se habian humillado. Y asi lo primero hicieron los Cielos y Planetas, luego Ayre, Agua y Tierra. Despues dicen que de la tierra formaron al hombre y a" la ninger. Los otros que fiieron soberbios presumieudo hacer criaturas coutra la voluntad de los padres faeron en el innerno lanzados." Las Casas, Historia Apologetica, MS., cap. 235, p. 324 ; see also Torquemada, Monarq. Ind., torn, ii, p. 53-4 ; Help's Spanish MAYAS OF YUCATAN. 229 have among them knowledge of the flood and of the end of the world. They call it ' butic/ a name which signifies a flood of many waters. They also believe that another 'butic' and judg- ment will come, not of water but of fire. They hold that certain persons who escaped from the flood populated their land ; these were called the Great Father and Great Mother." l In Yucatan the origin traditions point directly to an eastern and foreign source for the population. The early writers report that the natives believed their ancestors to have crossed the sea by a passage which was opened for them. 2 It was also believed that part of the population came into the country from the West. Lizana says that the smaller portion of the population, the " little descent," came from the East, while the greater portion, " the great descent," came from the West. 3 Cogolludo disagrees with this view, and considers the eastern colony as the larger; a view which is not likely to be true. The author himself is not quite certain as to what he thinks upon the subject, and con- tradicts himself squarely on the same page, as to the direction from which Zamna, the Yucatanic culture-hero, is said to have come. 4 Senor Orozco y Berra, thinks that the Yucatanic popu- lation came from the northeast (from Florida), by way of Cuba and the islands adjacent. 5 The culture-hero, Zamna, the author of all civilization in Yucatan, is described as the teacher of letters and the leader of the people from their ancient home, His Delation to the people and his office of priest and deity com- bined the fact that he was the leader of a colony from the East, that he named all the divisions of the land, all the towns, coasts, bays and rivers identifies him with Votan or rather with one of his disciples or associates. Cogolludo's statement, first that Conquest, vol. ii, p. 140 ; Garcia, Origen de los Indies, p. 519, Valencia ed., 1607, and Brasseur de Bourbourg, Hist. Nat. Civil., torn, ii, pp. 74-5. 1 Historia Apologetica, MS., cap. 235, p. 327. 8 Landa's Relacion, p. 28, and Hen-era, Dec. iv, lib. x, cap. ii. 3 " Y antiguamente dezian al oriente cen-ial, pequena-baxada, y al puniente nohen-ial, la grande-baxada." Lizana's Devocionario, p. 354. in Landa's Relacion. , 4 Cogolludo's Historia de Yucatan, lib. iv. cap. iii, p. 178. 5 Geografia de las Linguas, p. 128. 230 CULTURE-HEROES ZAMNA AND CUKULCAN. he came from the West, may be true of the direction from which he came into Yucatan ; and the statement that he came from the East, may refer to the original migration by which he in company with Votan reached Chiapas and from thence entered the peninsula on the north-east. He was the founder of the capital city of Mayapan, and after a long life died and was buried at Izamal. 1 This became a shrine for pilgrims and was visited for centuries afterwards by religious devotees in large numbers. Zamna is supposed to have founded the oldest royal house in Yucatan that of the Cocomes. 2 The second culture-hero, of whom mention is made by all the early writers, was Cukulcan (meaning plumed serpent, precisely the same as Quetzalcoatl), who entered the country from the West and settled at Chichen- Itza. 3 Landa is not certain whether he preceded or followed the Itzas. His celibacy, general purity of morals, and the ad- vanced character of his teachings, seem to identify him with the Nahua culture-hero, Quetzalcoatl, and it is believed, with reason, that he appeared in Yucatan after his mysterious disappearance in the province of Goazacoalco. For some unknown reason, Cukulcan left Chichen-Itza after a residence there of ten years. Herrera states that he had two brothers who remained in Chichen-Itza, while Cukulcan went to Mayapan. He describes all as practising the purest asceticism. After the disappearance of Cukulcan, temples were erected to his memory and he was worshiped as a god. 4 The date of his residence in Yucatan is a matter of considerable dispute, Cogolludo placing it in the twelfth century, Herrera in the ninth, Brasseur de Bourbourg in the eleventh, and Bancroft in the second. To fix dates on no 1 Bancroft's Native Races, vol.v, p. 618. 2 Bancroft, vol. iii, p. 463 ; Lizana in Landa's Relation, p. 356 ; Cogolludo's Hist, de Tuc., p. 197; Brasseur de Bourbourg's Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, i, p. 76, torn, ii, pp. 10-13. 8 Landa, pp. 35-9, and 300-1. 4 See Brasseur de Bourbourg's Hut. Nat. Civ., torn, ii, p. 18 ; Torquemada's Monarq. Ind., torn, ii, p. 52 ; Herrera's Hist. Gen. Dec., iv, lib. x, cap. ii ; Landa'a RelaeAon, pp. 35-9, 300 et xeq.\ Echevarria y Veitia, MS., cap. 19, p. 116 et seq., and Las Casas' Hist. Apologetica, MS., cap. cxsiii. CHRIST MYTH FROM LAS CASAS. 231 better data than such legends is folly. It is probable, however, that Cukulcan was the culture-hero Quetzalcoatl, who was the teacher of the Nahua nations and figured as the introducer of the fine arts, of purity of morals, of confessional ceremonies and a humane and enlightened system of religion at Cholula, and afterwards disappeared toward the East upon the waters of the Gulf. With the rule of the Cocomes and the annals of that remarkable branch of the Chiapan family, composed of Maya and Nahua elements known as the Tutul Xius, we have nothing to do in this work. 1 Las Casas, in examining the doc- trine of Hunab Ku, " the only God " among the Yucatecoes, who is described as the father of Zamna, discovered a most striking Christ myth ; one which conforms so closely to the gospel account of Christ's birth and ministry that we must con- clude that either some foreigner must have been cast upon the coast after the Christian era began, bringing the gospel with him, or that one of two views is true, namely, that the Fathers fabri- cated the story, or that the natives, expecting favor of their conquerors, endeavored to harmonize their belief with that which was being taught them. Las Casas tells us of their belief in a Trinity consisting of Izona, the Father ; Bacab, the Son, and Echuah, the Holy Ghost. 2 The Son was born of the Vir- gin Chibirias, and was rejected of men, was scourged and cruci- fied on a tree with cross-arms ; he descended into the regions of the dead, but rose again on the third day, and finally ascended to heaven. In fact the story is the Apostles' Creed without the " Credo," and is probably as much the work of the credulous and imaginative Spanish Fathers as of the designing natives. The story ought to be repudiated without question. It only remains for us to submit the question to the reader, whether the Maya peoples are not of transatlantic origin, as we believe the facts in this chapter indicate. 1 See for those annals the Perez document in Stephen's Yucatan, vol. ii, pp. 465-9 ; Brasseur de Bourbourg in Landa, pp. 120-9, and Bancroft, vol. ii, pp. 762-5, and vol. v, p. 624 et seq. 2 Las Casas, Hist. Apoloffetiea, MS., cap. cxxiii, p. 10, Cogolludo's Hist. Tue., p. 190 ; Torquemada's Monarq. Ind., torn, iii, p. 133. CHAPTER VI. TRADITIONAL HISTORY OF THE ORIGIN OF THE NAHUA NATIONS. The Early Inhabitants of Mexico Quinames Miztecs and Zapotecs Totonacs and Huastecs Olmecs and Xicalancas The Nahuas The Cholula Pyra- midIts Origin Explained in the Duran MS. No Relation to a Flood Ixtlilxochitl's Deluge Tradition The first Toltecs The Codex Chimal- popoca Account The Discovery of Maize Sahagun's Origin of the Nahuas They came from Florida Their Settlement in Tamoanchan Their Migrations Hue Hue Tlapalan Its Location, according to the Sources Not Identical with Tlapallan de Cortes Not in Central America Probably in the Mississippi Valley Beginning of the Toltec Annals The Chichimecs not Nahuas The Nahuatlacas The Aztecs Aztlan As Described by Early Writers Aztec Migration Aztec Maps Senor Ramirez on Migra- tion Maps The Seven Caves Three Claims for the Location of Aztlan The Culture Hero Quetzalcoatl. IN considering the origin of the Nahua nations, especially of the Toltecs and Aztecs, it is common to look upon the former as the first inhabitants of Mexico. Such a conclusion is, how- ever, erroneous, since the Toltecs were preceded in Central- Southern Mexico, and even in Anahuac, both by people of dif- ferent extraction from themselves and by scattering tribes of their own linguistic family, the Nahua. Of the former class, the most conspicuous are the so-called Quinametin (or Quinames), otherwise known as giants. These fierce and powerful people were encountered by the Olmecs, the first Nahuas to colonize the region north of the Isthmus of Tehuantepec. All the early writers refer to them in terms which indicate that they were disposed to accept the existence of a race of giants as a fact. Veytia and Clavigero, however, are convinced that the report is not to be accepted literally. The widest possible difference of opinion as to their origin and relationship to existing tribes pre- MIZTECS AND ZAPOTECS. 233 vails with different authors. All agree, however, that they were the first inhabitants of the country. These cruel monsters, addicted to the most disgusting vices, the terror of the immi- grating peoples, at last met their fate, according to Ixtlilxochitl, in a great convulsion of nature which shook the earth and caused the mountains and volcanoes to swallow up and kill them. 1 It is probable that this account was figurative. Duran says they were destroyed by the Tlascaltecs while eating. 2 Vey tia attrib- utes the destruction to the Olmec chiefs, who made a feast for their enemies and when they were stupid and drunken fell upon them and slew them. We think that in this allusion to the giants, " the first inhabitants of the land," we see the Votanic colonists from Xibalba that are supposed to have penetrated Anahuac at an early day. They may not have carried any special degree of refinement with them from their old home, and if they did, they probably lapsed into a state of semi-barbarism. Their power as a people, their enmity to the immigrants, and their traditional connection with the hated and all-powerful Xibalba, may have won for them the name of giants because of the fear that was entertained of them ; or, as Mr. Bancroft thinks, they may not have been savages at all, but a civilized branch of the Xibalbans, carrying on the warfare in the North which had been waged farther South. 3 It is quite probable that we have here a figurative allusion, from a Nahua standpoint, to the fall of the Xibalban power itself the new-world Babylon, which, like the old, may have met its fate during a drunken revel. 4 1 Ixtlilxochitl, Reladmes, in Kingsborough's Mexican Antiquities, vol. ix, p. 322. 8 Historia Antigua, MS., torn, i, cap. ii. 3 Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, p. 199. 4 Ixtlilxochitl fixes the date of the destruction in the year 229 A.D., Veytia in 107. See further on the Quinames, Echevarria y Veitia, Historia del Origen de Oentes, MS., torn, i, p. 33, and Kingsborough's Hex. Ant., vol. viii, cap. iii, p. 179. Mendieta's Hist. Eccl., p. 96, Mexico, 1870. Pineda in Soc. Mex. Geog. Bdetin, torn, iii, p. 346. Brasseur de Bourbourg, Popol. Vuh, pp. Ixviii, ana Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, i, p. 66. Oviedo's Hit. Gen., torn. iii. p. 539. Clavigero, Storia Ant. del Messico, torn, i, p. 125. Boturini, Idea de Una Nueva Historia, 234 OLMECS AND XICALANCAS. To the tribes which figured conspicuously in Mexico prior to the Toltecs and not related to the Nahuas, we may add the Miztecs and Zapotecs, whose language, though not Maya, is in some respects similar to it, while the architectural remains and traditional origin of this people associates them with the Nahuas. Their civilization in Oajaca rivalled that of the Aztecs in its degree of advancement. 1 The Totonacs were formerly, according to Torquemada, of Nahua extraction ; but the authority in the face of linguistic difficulties is doubtful. 2 According to Torque- mada's claim, they were the builders of the temple of the sun and moon at Teotihuacan near Lake Tezcuco. 3 The Huastecs of northern Vera Cruz were a Maya branch of the power at the south ; they mark the most northern point reached by the Maya tongue. Of the Nahua predecessors of the Toltecs in Mexico the Olmecs and Xicalancas were the most important. They were the forerunners of the great nations which followed. According to Ixtlilxochitl, these people which are conceded to be one occupied the new world in the third age ; they came from the East in ships or barks to the land of Potonchan, which they com- menced to populate, and on the shores of the River Atoyac, between the Ciudad de los Angeles and Cholula, they found some giants who had escaped the calamity which overtook that race in the second age of the world. 4 Here then comes the destruction of the giants referred to above. The first settlement of the Olmecs and Xicalancas in Mexico is supposed to have been on the site of the ancient city of Xicalanco at the point which still bears the name, at the entrance of the Laguna de Terminos, while a second city, built probably a little later, was pp. 130-5. Humboldt, Vues des CordiUeres, p. 205, and Orozco y Berra, Oeografia de las Lenguas, pp. 119-34. 1 Torquemada, Monarq. Ind., lib. iii. cap. vii. Bancroft, vol. v., p. 206. Orozco y Berra, Geografia, pp. 120, 125, 133. Brasseur de Bourbourg's Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, i, p. 154. 8 Orozco y Berra, Oeografia, p. 127. Pimentel, Lenguas Indigenas de Mexico, torn, i, p. 223. Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, p. 204. 3 Torquemada, Monarq. Ind., torn, i, p. 278. Brasseur de Bourbourg's Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, i, pp. 151-61. 4 Historia Chichimeca, cap. i, in Kingsborough's Hex. Ant., vol. ix, p. 205. CHOLULA THE MEXICAN BABEL. 235 situated on the coast a short distance below Vera Cruz ; the entire region bore the name of Anahuac Xicalanco. 1 The first great exploit of the Olinec chiefs, the destruction of the giants, we observe was performed at some distance from their earliest settlement. The state of Puebla became their chosen ground, and quite soon after the above achievement they undertook the building of the famous tower of Cholula, which is so closely allied in its traditional history with the Tower of Babel. Several authors state that the erection of the pyramid of Cholula was done in memory of the erection of the tower of Babel, at which it is claimed the ancestors of the Olmec chiefs were present. Boturini is probably one of the most sanguine advocates of this view. 2 Others consider that the knowledge which the ancestors of this people transmitted to them with reference to Babel, in time became associated with the Cholula edifice and confounded with its history. The Toltecs possessed a deluge tradition, which we will notice hereafter, which unquestionably had reference to a very general and devastating flood ; perhaps the scriptural one, but it is clear, as we think we have the authority to show, that the Cholula pyramid and its origin had no relation to that tradi- tion, though so often confounded with it and the tower referred to by the Nahua chroniclers. The generally accepted origin of the pyramid is as follows : from the great cataclysm which destroyed the giants, seven of that race of monsters escaped by shutting themselves up in a mountain cavern. After the waters subsided, Xelhua, one of their number, went to Cholula and began the construction of this pyramid " to escape a second flood, should another occur," according to Kingsborough, or as a " memorial of the mountain called Tlaloc which had sheltered 1 Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, p. 196, and vol. li, p. 112. Torquemada, Monarq. Ind.< torn, i, p. 32. Mendieta's Hist. Eccl., p. 146. 8 " Celebraron assimismo los Indies su dicho origen en antiguos cantares, y tuvieron tan viva la memoria de la torre de Babel, que la quisieron imitar en America con varies monstruosos edificias." He then cites the Pyramid of Cholula as having been built in commemoration of the Tower of Babel. See Boturini, Idea de Una Nueva Historia, p. 113. 236 CHOLULA LEGEND FROM DURAN'S MS. him," according to Pedro de los Kios. The bricks which were munufactured at the foot of the Sierra de Cocotl were transported to Cholula by being passed through the hands of a file of men extending between the two localities. But the angered gods seeing the presumption of mortals, smote both the tower and its architects with thunderbolts and stopped their work. 1 Lord Kingsborough so intimately connects the erection of the tower with the Toltec deluge legend as to derive Xelhua, the builder of the tower, from the Toltecs rather than from the race of giants, by claiming that he escaped from the deluge with Paticatle the Mexican Noah in an ark, and adds that when the tower was destroyed and the tongues of the builders confounded, Xelhua led a colony to the new world. This last will serve as a speci- men of how the Cholula legend has been misunderstood and confounded with the tower of Babel. Father Duran in his MS., 2 Historia Antigua de la Nueva Espana, 1585 A. D., quotes from the lips of a native of Cholula, over an hundred years old, a version of the legend which assigns quite a different object for building the Pyramid, one which shows that it never was erected as a memorial of Babel nor ever had any reference to an escape from any flood either past or in anticipation. It is as follows : "In the beginning before the light of the sun had been created, this land was in obscurity and darkness and void of any created thing ; all was a plain without hill or elevation, encircled in every part by water without tree or created thing ; and imme- diately after the light and the sun arose in the east, there appeared gigantic men of deformed stature, and possessed the land, who desiring to see the nativity of the sun as well as his Occident, proposed to go and seek them. Dividing themselves into two parties, some journeyed toward the West and others toward the East ; these travelled until the sea cut off their road, whereupon they determined to return to the place from which 1 Boturini's Idea, p. Ill et seq. Cla^igero, Storia Ant. del Messico, torn, i, pp. 129-31, et torn, ii, p. 6. Kingsborough's Mex. Ant.,espec\&[\y vol. vi. p. 401, and Spiegazione delle Tavole del Codice Mexicano, tav. vii, in Mex. Ant., vol. v, pp. 164-5, and Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iii, p. 67 ; vol. v, p. 200 et seq. 4 A portion of the work has been printed at Mexico. CHOLULA NOT CONNECTED WITH A FLOOD. 237 they started, and arriving at this place (Cholula), not finding the means of reaching the sun, enamored of his light and beauty, they determined to build a tower so high that its summit should reach the sky. Having collected material for the purpose, they found a very adhesive clay and bitumen, with which they speedily commenced to build the tower, and having reared it to the greatest possible altitude, so that they say it reached to the sky, the Lord of the Heavens, enraged, said to the inhabitants of the sky, ' Have you observed how they of the earth have built a high and haughty tower to mount hither, being enamored of the light of the sun and his beauty ? Come ! and confound them ; because it is not right that they of the earth, living in the flesh, should mingle with us.' Immediately at that very instant the inhabitants of the sky sallied forth like flashes of lightning ; they destroyed the edifice and divided and scattered its builders to all parts of the earth." l This account, the most ancient on record, makes no reference to a flood, and is quite distinct from the Mexican deluge tradition. Its value as an interpreter of the tendency of the American tribes not only of the United States and Mexico, but of both Americas, to erect mounds and truncated pyramids is not inconsiderable, since it confirms the opinion long entertained that they were connected with sun- worship. The great culture-hero, Quetzalcoatl, the white saintly personage from the East, said to have been the leader of the Nahuas, appeared during the Olmec rule, and to his honor the Cholulans erected a temple upon the pyramid which their coun- trymen or predecessors had failed to complete. 2 Quetzalcoatl was, however, no tribal hero, but was so intimately identified with the institutions and civilization of the entire Nahua race that we purposely defer a consideration of his character at present in order that we may hasten to the traditional origin of the Toltecs. 1 Historia Antigua de la Nueva Espafla, MS., torn, i, cap. i, pp. 6-7. 2 Alcedo (Diccionario Oeografico Historico, torn, iii, p. 374) says that the Olmecs subsequently migrated southward and settled Guatemala. While this statement may be true in part, still it is not probable that any general migration took place, and Guatemala was certainly populated long before the Olmec power existed. 238 THE SEVEN ORIGINAL TOLTEC CHIEFS. It is not our purpose to go back to the several traditions of the creation of man, preserved in as many localities in Mexico, each with its own variations, but simply to take up tradition where it first relates to the Toltec families. We are fully aware of the wide range of opinion with reference to what properly constitutes this tradition, and of the irreconcilable variations in dates and numeric details among the several Spanish writers. Probably all will agree that the native writer Ixtlilxochitl, who inherited the rich collection of royal archives and hieroglyphic paintings belonging to his ancestors (and which fortunately escaped the wholesale vandalism of the conquerors), though both contradictory and negligent, has furnished us the most reliable narrative which has yet been brought to light. Without at- tempting to correct or unravel his chronology, we simply trans- late his account of the origin of the Toltecs. Speaking of the first age of the world, the pre-diluvial period, he says : " It is found iu the histories of the Toltecs that this age and first world as they call it, lasted 1716 years ; that men were destroyed by tremendous rains and lightning from the sky, and even all the land without the exception of anything, and the highest moun- tains, were covered up and submerged in water l caxtolmoletlti/ we fifteen cubits, and here they add other fables of how men came to multiply from the few who escaped from this destruction in a ' toptlipetlacali,' that this word nearly signifies a close chest ; and how after men had multiplied they erected a very high 'zacuali/ which is to say a tower of great height, in order to take refuge in it, should the second world (age) be destroyed. Presently their languages were confused ; and not able to understand each other, they went to different parts of the earth. The Toltecs, consisting of seven friends with their wives, who understood the same language, came to these parts, having first passed great land and seas, having lived in caves, and having endured great hardships in order to reach this land, which they found good and fertile for their habitation ; and relate that they wandered one hundred and four years through different parts of the world before they reached Hue hue Tlapalan, which was in Ce Tecpatl, five hundred and twenty years after the flood. Seventeen hun- SCRIPTURAL ANALOGIES. 239 dred and fifteen years after the flood, there was a terrible hurri- cane that carried away trees, mounds, houses and the largest edifices, notwithstanding which many men and women escaped principally in caves and places where the great hurricane could not reach them. A few days having passed, they set out to see what had become of the earth, when they found it all covered and populated with monkeys. All this time they were in dark- ness without seeing the light of the sun nor the moon that the wind had brought them. The Indians invented a fable which says that men were changed into monkeys. -* * * One hun- dred and fifty-eight years after the great hurricane and 4994 from the creation of the world, there was another destruction of this land, which was of the Quinametin, giants who lived in New Spain, which destruction was a great trembling of the earth, which swallowed up and killed them, the mountains and vol- canoes burst upon them, that for a certainty none should escape. At the same time many of the Toltecs perished and the Chichi- mecs their neighbors. That was in the year Co Tecpatl ; and this age they call Tlachilonatnip, that is to say, sun [or age] of earth." l Here follows an account of the construction of the calendar by the assembly of Lords in Hue hue Tlapalan in the year 5097 of the creation of the world and 104 after the destruc- tion of the giants. The singular agreement of this account with the Mosaic description, in some of its details, such as the height attained by the waters above the mountains, the escape of certain per- sons in an ark, and the erection of a high tower, together with the subsequent confusion of tongues, Lord Kingsborough is con- vinced furnishes proof that the Toltecs were of Jewish descent.- While we are not prepared to believe the sanguine speculations of that eminent author in this case, still one of two views must be true : either the Toltecs were of old world origin, and at a remote period treasured up among their traditional histories notices of the Mosaic deluge, traditions of which are so generally 1 Ixtlilxochitl, Relaciones, in Kingsborough's Mex. Ant., vol. ir, pp. 821-2. 8 Kingsborough's Mex. Ant., vol. viii, p. 26. 240 IXTLILXOCHITL'S CHRONOLOGY. current among the Asiatic nations, or the Mexican traditions of local inundation were warped by the teachings of the Spanish priests in a degree beyond any precedent in history or reasonable expectation, and that within a comparatively few years after the conquest. Our authority in this case is a native of Tezcuco, a son of the queen ; and because of his acquaintance with both the hieroglyphic writings and the Castilian, served as interpreter to the viceroy. His Relations were composed from the archives of his family and compared with the testimony of the oldest and best informed natives. It does not seem to us that the sense of historic integrity cultivated to so nice a point at Tezcuco, where the censorial council, just prior to the advent of the conquerors, punished with death any who should willfully pervert the truth, could have so sadly degenerated that Ixtlilxochitl and the venerable natives who were conscious of the representations con- tained in his work, should proclaim a falsehood which would not meet with contradiction. 1 We are aware that this author's chronology is an inextricable maze of contradictions which can- not be unravelled or reconstructed. The Toltec families, seven in number, are, however, said to have reached Hue hue Tlapalan five hundred and twenty years after the flood. The journey, however, occupied only one hundred and four years of that time. Their wanderings, attended with severe experiences, nakedness, and hunger and cold, were over many lands, across expanses of sea and through untold hardships. 2 The date of the migration to Hue hue Tlapalan cannot be approximated from available data, but it is evident that Ixtlil- xochitl fixes it at 520 years after the flood, or 2236 years after the creation a period which must have antedated the Christian era by a score of centuries or more, even if we accept his chro- nology, which (on p. 322 of his Relations), implies that more than five thousand years elapsed between the creation and the birth 1 See Prescott's Conq. Mexico, vol. i, p. 171, on the Censorial Council; also Ixtlilxochitl, Clavigero and Veytia as cited by him. 2 Echevarria y Veitia, Hist. Gentes, MS., torn, i, p. 29, and Kingsborough, vol. viii, p. 176. Panes, Fragmentos de Historia, MS., p. 3 (copy in Congres- sional Library, Washington), as well as several other authorities. CODEX CHIMALPOPOCA ACCOUNT. 241 of Christ. The Codex Chimalpopoca, a Nahua record written in Spanish letters, which occupies probably the same relation to early Mexican history that the Popol Vuh does to the Maya history, has been made known to us through the writings of Brasseur de Bourbqurg, but as yet it has not been published. Ixtlilxochitl was the copyist of this document, and of course used it in composing his Relations. Mr. Bancroft has attempted to collect from scattered passages, taken from the Codex Chimal- popoca and found in Brasseur's writings, a continuous narrative, but with little success. " The division of the earth," by the sun, " six times four hundred, plus one hundred, plus thirteen years ago to-day, the twenty-second of May, 1558;" in other words, in the year 955 B. c., is a date obtained which seems to refer to the division of the land among the followers of Votan. 1 In the Popol Vuh, Gucumatz (whose name signifies plumed serpent) is described as going in search of maize, while the Codex Cliimalpopoca describes Quetzalcoatl, whose name is identical in meaning with that of Gucumatz, as entering upon the same undertaking, though under somewhat different circumstances, and states that when he had found it, he brought it to Tamoan- chan. 2 We shall see hereafter that Sahagun locates Tamoanchan in Tabasco, a fact of considerable value in studying the Toltec migration. The reader will not, however, associate Quetzalcoatl with the above date, since such is not the purport of the record. The Chimalpopoca implies that Quetzalcoatl afterwards becom- ing obnoxious to his companions forsook them, a statement noted by Mr. Bancroft, though its full value does not seem to have been observed by that author. 3 The account clearly refers to the role of Quetzalcoatl among the Quiches, when he was known as Gucumatz, and prior to his appearance among the Olmec (Nahua) tribes. It indicates that the Codex Chimalpopoca account of the discovery of maize is purely Quiche, and has no reference to the Nahuas whatever. The search for maize by the 1 Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, pp. 193-5. 2 Codex Chinudpopoca in Brasseur's Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, i, pp. 53, 71. 8 Codex Chimal. in Brasseur's Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, i, p. 117, and Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, p. 194. 16 242 QUETZALCOATL'S DISCOVERY OF MAIZE. plumed serpent, call him by either his Quiche or Nahua name if you wish, was prior to the advent of that remarkable person- ao-e among the Nahuas. The reputed discovery we consider nothino- more than a figurative allusion to the introduction of agriculture by this culture-hero, the knowledge of which he afterwards communicated to the Nahuas at Tamoanchan. If these inferences are true, the Codex Chimalpopoca, so far as we are acquainted with its contents, can render us no assistance with reference to the question in hand. We will now return to the beginning of the subject and cite additional authorities, chief among them Sahagun. In the introduction to his His- toria General, in speaking of the origin of this people, he expresses the opinion that it is impossible to definitely deter- mine more than that they report "that all the natives came from seven caves, and that these seven caves are the seven ships or galleys in which the first populators of the land came." He adds, " The first people came to populate this land from towards Florida, and came coasting and disembarked at the port of Panuco, which they called Panco, which signifies a place to which they come who pass the water. This people came in quest of the terrestrial paradise, and were known by the name Tamoanchan, by which they mean, ' we seek our home/ They settled around the highest mountains that they found. In com- ing toward the midday to find the terrestrial paradise, they did not err, because it is the opinion of the knowing that it is under the equinoctial line." 1 The above account is rendered more definite in the following passage from his third volume: 2 "Countless years ago the first settlers arrived in these parts of New Spain which is nearly another world coming with ships by sea, approached a port at the North, and because they disembarked there, it is called Panutla or Panaoia, place where they arrive who come by the sea ; at present it is corruptly called Pantlan. From that port they commenced to journey by 1 Sahapun, Historia General de las Cosas de Nueva Esparto, p. xviii, torn, i, Mexico, 1829. - Hist. Gen., torn, iii, lib. x, p. 139 et seq. A translation and summary of facts is also given by Bancroft, Native Races, vol. v, p. 189 et seq. THE TOLTECS IN TAMOANCHAN. 243 the shores of the sea, ever beholding the snow-capped Sierras and the volcanoes, until they came to the province of Guatemala, being guided by their priest who carried with him their god, with whom he always counseled concerning what he should do. They settled down in Tamoanchan, where they were a long time, and never ceased to have . their wise men or prophets, called Amoxoaqui, which signifies ' men learned in the ancient paintings/ who, although they came at the same time, did not remain with the rest in Tamoanchan, for leaving them there, they re-embarked and took with them all the paintings of the rites and mechanic arts which they had brought." The account continues by stating that the priests informed their companions before leaving them, that their God had made them masters of the land, and that they should inhabit it and await his return. The priests then departed towards the East with their idol wrapped in blankets. Whereupon the people invented judicial astrology and the art of interpreting dreams. They there also constructed the calendar which was followed during the time of the Toltecs, Mexicans, Tepanecs and Chichimecs. The first migratory movement was to Teotihuacan, where they erected two mountains in honor of the sun and moon. Here they elected their rulers and buried their princes, erecting mounds over their graves. This seems to have become their holy city. The main power which had remained for a long time in Tamoanchan was changed to Xumiltepec. From this latter place they, however, at the instance of their priests, started again on their migrations. First going to Teotihuacan in order to choose their wise men. Notwithstanding the remarks of Sahagun that the seven caves were the seven ships in which the first settlers came to New Spain, he here affirms that in the course of their migration they came to the valley of the seven caves. How long they remained in this national centre we have no means of knowing, but eventually their god told them to retrace their steps, which they did, going to Tollancingo (Tulancingo) and finally to Tulan (Tollan). Ixtlilxochitl, if he can be relied upon (and if 'he is unreliable we might as well give up the task of tracing the early history of this or any other 244 THEIR MIGRATIONS HUE HUE TLAPALAN. Mexican people) shows clearly that the ancestors of the Toltecs were possessed of certain traditions which point to an Asiatic origin ; that at a remote period they set out from that common home of so many peoples, possessing the same traditions, in search of a suitable country in which to live ; that after one hundred and four years occupied in traversing broad lands and seas, they arrived in a country called Hue hue Tlapalan. This event, according to his chronology, must have occurred upwards of twenty centuries before Christ. He tells us also that in Hue hue Tlapalan, the Toltecs regulated their calendar. Sahagun says that countless years ago the first inhabitants of the country (Mexico) came by sea from the direction of Florida on the North, and landing at Panuco, journeyed down the coast to Guatemala (which is supposed to have embraced Chiapas and perhaps Tabasco, though such is only the conjecture of an ear- nest advocate of the Southern location of Hue hue Tlapalan, /. e., Mr. Bancroft) where they established a city called Tamoanchan there the calendar was regulated or corrected. Whether this was the same construction of the calendar referred to by Ixtlil- xochitl as having taken place in Hue hue Tlapalan is ques- tionable. If positive proof of the identity of these occurrences could be produced, the identity of Tamoanchan and Hue hue Tlapalan would be complete, and the disputed location of the latter would be fixed in the Chiapan region or the country of the Xibalbans. The fact that Quetzalcoatl brought maize to Ta- moanchan seems to indicate a comparative proximity of that country to the Southern region where that culture-hero figured so conspicuously under the Quiche name of G-ucumatz. If no other testimony need be introduced the disputed locality might be fixed as above indicated. However, the contradictory records of Ixtlilxochitl, which we are now about to cite, unsettle this conclusion. The Toltec migration from Hue hue Tlapalan is briefly as follows : Three hundred and thirty-eight years after Christ a revolt occurred among the Toltecs in Hue hue Tlapa- lan, in which two rebel princes attempted to depose the legiti- mate successor to the throne. These rebel chiefs, named Chalcatzin and Tlacamihtzin respectively, were unsuccessful, and THE TOLTEC MIGRATION. 245 together with five other chiefs and their numerous allies and people, were driven out of their city Tlachicatzin in Hue hue Tlapalan. After a journey of sixty leagues, they arrived at a place which they called Tlapallanconco, or Little Tlapalan. Their departure from their old home did not occur till they had withstood a contest of eight years or, according to Veytia, thirteen years duration. 1 At Tlapallanconco they lived three years, at the end of which time there arose among them a great astrologer, named Hueman or Huematzin, who counseled them to forsake the land of their misfortunes and journey toward the rising sun, where there was a happy land formerly occupied by Quinames, but now depopulated. This advice seeming good they set out on their journey at the end of the three years, or eleven years after leaving Hue hue Tlapalan. After traveling twelve days and accomplishing seventy leagues they arrived at Hueyxalan, and remained there four years. From thence a twenty days journey toward the East, or according to Veytia, toward the West, and of one hundred leagues in length, brought them to Xalisco, near the sea-shore. Here they remained eight years. Twenty days journey and 100 leagues more brought them to Chimalhuacan on the coast opposite certain islands, where they resided five years. Eighteen days or 80 leagues traversed toward the East, and they arrived at Toxpan, where they dwelt five years more. Proceeding eastward twenty days' journey or 100 leagues, they came to Quiyahuitztlan Auahuac, 1 Bancroft, Native Maces, vol. v, p. 211, in a note has summarized the dates of departure from Hue hue Tlapalan, as given by different authors, with the following result : Date of departure according to Veytia (torn, i, p. 208), 596 A.D. ; Qavigero (torn, iv, p. 46), 544 A. D.; but in the 1st torn., p. 126, he gives 596, agreeing with Veytia ; Mliller (Reisen, torn, iii, p. 94 et 8fq., 439 A. D.; Brasseur de Bourbourg (Popol Vuh, p. civ), last of the fourth century ; Cabrera (Teatro, pp. 90-1), 181 B. c. The commonly accepted date is that of Clavigero 544 A. D. But after comparing these authors and considering the grounds upon which they base their calculations, we are convinced that it is useless to attempt to arrive at the true date, just as it is impossible to determine any date with certainty in all the ancient American chronology. We will not go so far as Mr. Bancroft, who says that "the departure from Hue hue Tlapalan seems to have taki-n place in the fifth or sixth century." The claims for the fourth century, wo think, are just as good as for the others, if not better. 946 THE TOLTEC MIGRATION. situated on the coast. Here they were obliged to pass inlets of the sea in boats. During a six years' sojourn at this point, they suffered many hardships. An eighteen days' journey or 80 leagues brought them to Zacatlan where they dwelt seven years. From thence they journeyed eighty leagues to Totzapan and dwelt there six years. They next journeyed to Tepetla, distant twenty-eight days, or 140 leagues, where they dwelt seven years. Eighteen days' journey or 80 leagues brought them to Mazatepec, where they remained eight years, and a similar journey brought them to Ziuhcohuatl where they tarried also eight years. Turn- ing northward from this unknown point, they journeyed twenty days or 100 leagues and halted at Yztachuexucha, where they dwelt twenty-six years. At last, after a journey of eighteen days or eighty leagues, they arrived at Tulancingo (Tulantzinco, or Tollantzinco) a name already familiar to us. Here the Toltecs emerge from what has been to us an unknown wilder- ness without geographic guide-post or even a polar star by which to reckon. Their itinerary, full of so many gaps and in- consistencies, its frequent omission of the directions traversed, with its starting-point so indefinitely located, is meaningless and confusing, and so far as the reader is concerned, practically begins nowhere and ends in nothing. At Tulancingo they remained eighteen years, living in a house sufficiently large to accommo- date them all. Their knowledge of architecture must have been quite advanced to have enabled them to construct such an edifice. The third year after their arrival at Tulancingo, marked a Toltec age of 104 years from the time they left their home in Hue hue Tlapalan. Finally, eighteen years having elapsed, they transferred the capital to Tollan, afterwards the centre of the Toltec empire. Tollan is stated to have been eastward of Tulancingo (in all probability a mistake). 1 In this migration 1 On the migration see Ixtlilxochitl's Relations, in Kingsborough's Hex. Ant., vol. ix, pp. 321-4 ; Brasseur de Bourbourg's Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, i, p. 100, 136, and Popol Vuh, p. civ, clix-xi : Veytia's Hist. Ant. Mej. Tom. 1st passim ; Clavigero's Storia Ant. del Messico, torn, i, p. 426 ; torn, iv, pp. 46, 51 ; Muller's Reixen in den Vereinigten-Staaten, Canada und Mexico, Bd. iii, ss. 91- 1, Leipzig, 1864 ; Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, pp. 192-223. CONFUSION OF THE DISCUSSION. 247 we have a distance of 1150 leagues traversed ; the first two moves, aggregating 130 leagues, is in an unknown direction ; the next advance is 100 leagues in an easterly direction, according to one author, and westerly according to another ; however, it is agreed that the point was on the sea-shore. The next move of 100 leagues is still along the sea-shore, but the direction is not stated. We then have two advances amounting to ]80 leagues, in an easterly direction. The confusion is completed in the following advances, aggregating 460 leagues in unknown directions. Of the remaining 180 leagues, 100 were traveled in a northern direction, while the remaining 80 leagues were taken toward an unknown quarter. It is quite plain to any one, that the distances traversed in the directions stated could not be traced consistently with the geography of Mexico and Central America, upon the assumption that Tamoanchan and Hue hue Tlapalan are identical and situated in the Kio Usumacinta region. The itinerary would carry the emigrants far out upon the Gulf of Mexico. It is evident that a broader territory than that of Southern Mexico and Central America is required for the realization of such distances. The account of the migration is no doubt faulty ; but even if we disregard the gaps, it pre- sents insuperable difficulties when applied to the South-Mexican region. It is manifest that Sahagun and Ixtlilxochitl refer to different migrations. The former to the Olmecs, who came by sea to Panuco and thence to Tabasco, from which they migrated north to Teotihuacan. The latter narrates the wanderings of the Toltecs who subsequently came into Mexico by land. If this dis- tinction is borne in mind, much of the obscurity attending the subject is cleared away. We are inclined to think that the ac- counts of the two distinct migrations have become confused, and the details of one substituted for the details of the other. Every one familiar with the study of traditional histories is aware of this danger, or even more, this tendency among semi-civilized peoples. No better illustration of this fact can be presented than the sad confusion which has been wrought by nearly every writer who has attempted to describe the two distinct personages in Mexican history, known by the name of Quetzalcoatl. Only 248 INDEFINITENESS OF THE ACCOUNTS. Sahagun of all the early writers has seemed to have any clear conception of their individual and independent attributes. The demi-god, and the Toltec king, and the achievements of each, have been made to change places so often by Spanish writers, that the result has, with each new treatment of the subject, been confusion worse confounded. Sahagun's account of the arrival of the Nahuas in ships, from the direction of Florida, their landing in Panuco, their journey toward Guatemala, their residence in Tamoanchan (probably somewhere in the Chiapan region) arid their subsequent migration northward to Teotihua- can with its well-known pyramids, and finally their removal to Tollan, north of the City of Mexico, by the way of Tolancingo, is a straightforward account which finds support in the best of evidence, both of a material and linguistic character. Sr. Orozco y Berra has clearly shown by linguistic testimony that the Nahua nations entered the country somewhere between the nineteenth and twenty-first degrees of north latitude, on the Gulf coast, migrated southward to a point seventeen and one- half degrees north latitude, almost to the Chiapan region, and then retracing their steps northward, almost to a point opposite Vera Cruz, they crossed Mexico to the Pacific coast, along which they extended their language northward nearly to the twenty- seventh degree north latitude. 1 Sahagun says nothing of Hue hue Tlapalan in his account of the migration from Tamoanchan to Tollan or from Chiapas to Anahuac, for his account refers to the Olmecs, the first Nahuas to reach Mexico. Mr. John H. Becker, of Berlin, in an able paper addressed to the Congres des Americainistes at Luxembourg (Compte Eendu de la Seconde Session, torn, i, pp. 325-50), after offering plau- sible arguments for the identification of Tulan Zuiva of the Quiches, Hue hue Tlapalan of the Toltecs, Amaquemecan of the Chichimecs, and Oztotlan of the Aztecs, with the region of the upper Kio Grande del Norte and Bio Colorado the land of the ravines, of grottoes, and of canons attempts to ! See Geogmfia de las Lenguas de Mexico, the Carta ethnografica affixed, and the text, pp. 1-76. Mil. BECKER ON THE MIGRATION. 249 trace the Toltec migration as given by Ixtlilxochitl. His in- teresting solution of the difficult problem is as follows : " The Toltecs driven out of Hue hue Tlapalan by civil wars (towards the end of the fourth century of our era ?) move in a westerly direction sixty leagues to Tlapalanconco (northern Sinaloa and Sonora on the Rio Yaqui, where distinct traces of the Nahua language exist ?) ; thence, after eleven years, they go to Huey- xalan, seventy leagues distant (perhaps the northern part of Durango, where the Tepehuana language shows strong Nahua affinities) ; thence to Xalisco on the coast, one hundred leagues distant ; thence to Chimalhuacan Atenco on the coast opposite some islands, one hundred leagues (opposite the islands in the southern end of the Gulf of California) ? In that case they did undoubtedly suffer a reverse in Xalisco (where they touched upon the more thickly populated and civilized country, and by which they were forced to retire) ; thence eastward eighty leagues to Toxpan (in the neighborhood of the Laguna de Tlahuila and on the upper Sabina River). In that country there is even now a tribe of Tochos, and the Tarahumara lan- guage there spoken, shows distinct affinities to the Nahua tongue ; thence eastward one hundred leagues to Quahuitzlan Anahuac, on the coast with inlets the coast-land of the state of Tamaulipas, on the Gulf of Mexico ? About this locality there can scarcely be a doubt, since this eastern coast country and the eastern plateau bore the general name Quetzalapan or Huitzilapan, until the Nahuas took possession of them, when the plateau was designated as Huitznahuac, and the name above given would be the natural one to apply to the coast, since while naliuac (an) means simply the Nahualand, Anahuac (an) means the f Nahua land on the water/ while Quahuitzlan is the old name retained in order to distinguish this Anahuac on the Gulf coast from the Anahuac around the Mexican lakes. Here they 'suffered great hardships/ and finally went westward eighty leagues to Zacatlan (the northern part of the State of Zacatecas?); from there eighty leagues to Totzapan, probably again in the neighborhood of Toxpan before mentioned (where the Tusanes are located even to-day) ; thence one hundred and forty leagues to 250 MR - BECKER ON THE MIGRATION. Tepetla (the extraordinary distance shows that at last they gained a decisive victory, and broke through the frontier of the more civilized country which they had hitherto felt). Tepetla, moun- tainland, must consequently be sought in the neighborhood of the high mountains of Anahuac ; thence eighty leagues to Mazatepec (the mountain of the Mazahuas, skirting the valley of Mexico towards north and west) ; thence eighty leagues to Ziuhcohuatl, where they probably suffered another defeat, for they move full one hundred leagues northward to Yztachuechucha, and stop there twenty-three years, a sufficient time to raise another gen- eration of warriors ; thence eighty leagues to Tollantzingo, and then finally to ' Tollan/ the capital of their future empire, which if Ixtlilxochitl's dates can be trusted, they built about 500 p. c., on the site of a former city of the Otomis." This ingenious and thoughtful review of the route commends itself to all who are interested in this subject. Mr. Becker considers that one great argument for the correctness of the starting-point which he has chosen is "the fact that even the distances as given by Ixtlilxo- chitl agree with the actual situation of the various localities here indicated." Ixtlilxochitl, obscure as he is, gives in another part of his work an additional account, besides the one we have already quoted, which greatly strengthens our conviction that the Toltecs came into Mexico from the north, and confirms the investigations of both Mr. Becker and of Sr. Orozco. The account is as follows : " In this fourth age there came to this land of Anahuac, which is at present called New Spain, those of the Toltec nations who, according to the accounts of their histories, were expelled from their land, and after having navigated and coasted on the South Sea along various lands as far as the present California, they came to what is called Huitlapalan, that which at present they call after Cortes. This locality they passed in the year called Ce Tecpatl, which was in the year 387 of the incarnation of our Lord. Having coasted the land of Xalisco, and all the coast of the south, they set out from the port of Huatulco, and went through various lands as far as the province of Tochtepec, situated on the coast of the North Sea, and having traversed and viewed it they came to stop in the province of Tulantzinco, HUE HUE TLAPALAN AND TLAPALLAN DE CORTES. 251 having left some people in most of their stopping-places in order to populate them." 1 It will be observed that in this migration part of the same general route above referred to, along the Pacific coast nearly opposite the extremity of the California peninsula, and then returning southward and inland, is clearly marked out. The Pacific ocean, called the South Sea, seems to have facilitated their movements northward. Xalisco was coasted, and the entire width of Mexico traversed, the Gulf of Mexico reached (Sea of the North), and finally Tolancingo chosen as a suitable home. It will be observed that the Huitlapalan named above is not identical with Hue hue Tlapalan, the earliest home of the nations. Mr. Bancroft has apparently confounded the two names, and endeavors to find in the Tlapallan de Cortes (so named because of Cortes' expedition to a Tlapallan) the ancient Hue hue Tlapalan. 2 The Abbe Brasseur de Bourbourg attempts precisely the same thing. The investigations of both these writers on this point are interesting, though without any result, unless unintentionally to strengthen the above distinction be- tween Huitlapalan and Hue hue Tlapalan. Substantially the facts are as follows : Pedro de Alvarado, writing from Santiago or old Guatemala to Cortes in 1524, refers to Tlapallan as fifteen days march inland, and Mr. Bancroft thinks that the name must have been applied to a region corresponding to either Honduras, Peten or Tabasco. Cortes' name was affixed to a Tlapallan said to lie towards Ihueras or Ibueras, the former name of Honduras, because of his expedition to that country. The Abbe says the name was applied to a region between the tributaries of the Rio Usumacinta and Honduras. Finally, the fact that the second Quetzalcoatl, when he embarked on the Gulf coast near the Goazacoalco River, announced his intention of going to Tlapallan, is cited as proof that the name was applied to a southern locality. 3 1 Ixtlilxochitl, Hist. Chichimeca, cap. ii. Kingsborough, Mex. Ant,, vol. ix, p. 206. On page 450 see also another and different account. * Native Races, vol. v, p. 214. 8 See Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, pp. 214-15 ; Brasscur de Bourbourg, Popol Vuh, pp. Ixiv, cxii, cxxvi-viii, clix ; Ixtlilxochitl in Kingsborough's 252 FOUR TLAPALANS. The entire argument is perfectly satisfactory in locating a Tla- pallan in the Usumaeinta region, but it does not have the slightest value in proving that Hue hue Tlapalan was identical with that locality. On the other hand, Cabrera, in referring to the ancient country of the Toltecs, calls it Hue Hue Tlapalan, and states that the simple name was Tlapallan, but that it was called Hue h ue O ld to distinguish it from three other Tlapalans which they founded in the new districts which they came to inhabit. This statement is confirmed by Torquemada. 1 It is therefore probable that Bancroft's and Brasseur's investigations were all expended on one or more of these three Tlapalans. The un- doubted residence of a tribe of the Nahuas (Olmecs) in the Tabasco region for a considerable period one which is measured relatively in the language of Sahugun between the " countless years ago when they arrived from towards Florida" and their departure towards Anahuac in the fourth or fifth century has led many writers to suppose that they were of southern origin, notwithstanding the statement of Sahagun, Ixtlilxochitl and all the early writers to the contrary. Supposing that the sweeping assumption of the northern origin so persistently adhered to by native and Spanish writers is nothing but a priestly fabrication, be admitted, simply that our attention may be turned to other testimony, still the evidence is against the southern origin theory. The material relics of Honduras and Nicaragua absolutely dis- prove the positive supposition that they were ever the work of the people who figured in Anahuac, and no transition from one style of sculpture to the other has ever been discovered, nor could be imagined. An examination of the first few chapters of Mr. Bancroft's fourth volume and the works from which it has been drawn will fully satisfy the reader of this fact. The evi- dence from the linguistic standpoint is even more satisfactory, since the Nahua language as spoken in Central America, in the states of San Salvador and Nicaragua, is dialectic, indicating a fragmentary migration southward. 2 Mex. Ant., vol. ix, p 446; Alvarado in Ternaux-Compans Voy., serie i, torn, x, P- I*". ' Baldwin's Ancient Am., p. 202. 2 See E. Q. Squier, Nicaragua, its People, Scenery, etc. Archaeology and HUE HUE TLAPALAN PROBABLY THE MISSISSIPPI VALLEY. 253 It has been the common custom of Spanish writers and those who followed them down to the middle of this century, to locate Hue. hue Tlapalan on the Californian coast. Vater and Hum- boldt from their standpoints of investigation fell in with this view. The former, basing his convictions on seeming linguistic affinities in the north-west, which, while they are quite signifi- cant, indicative of Nahua influences if not of Nahua residence, are too few to prove any lengthy sojourn. Humboldt based his opinion chiefly on the traditions and certain ethnological and geographical facts. Busclnnann 1 has completely overthrown the arguments of Vater in his series of works on American languages, while Mr. Bancroft has shown conclusively that there are no material remains assignable to the Toltecs to be found on the Californian coast or the adjoining region. 2 When he asserts, however, that there are no remains farther north than California, he overlooks a well-known fact. We refer to the mounds of Oregon and their extension eastward into the Yellowstone and North Missouri River region. The most reasonable conjecture as to the locality of Hue hue Tlapalan is that which places it in the Mississippi Valley, and assigns the works of our Mound- builders to the Nahua nations. In previous chapters we have shown the close resemblance of the mound crania to the ancient Mexican, and have pointed out the gradual transition from the rude and simple mounds of the north to the truncated pyramid of the south, constructed on strict geometrical principles, having one or more graded ways, and so closely resembling the Mexican teocallis. Besides the testimony of Sahagun that the first settlers of Mexico came from towards Florida, and the universal report of a northern origin prevalent among the Aztecs at the time of the conquest, there are other evidences of a racial identity common to Mound-builders and Mexicans, such as pottery, sculp- Ethnology of Nicaragua, part i, vol. iii, Trans, of Am. Ethnol. Soc., and Notes on Cent. Am., chap. xvi. 1 Buschmann (Johann Carl Ed.), especially his Die Spuren der Aztekischen Sprachen im Nordlichen Mexico und Hohern Amerikanischen Norden. Berlin, 1859. Quarto. 9 Native Race*, vol. iv, pp. 688 et seq. ; vol. v, p. 215, and numerous places. 254 BEGINNING OF TOLTEC HISTORY. tured portraitures of the facial type, indications of commercial intercourse between the two countries, such as the discovery of Mexican obsidian in the mounds of the Ohio Valley, and the probability that both worshipped the sun and offered human sacrifices. 1 With the Toltec annals proper we have nothing to do ; only the most primitive period of the growth of this people concerns us here, and that period is conceded to have closed with the establishment of the great capital at Tollan, on the site of the present village of Tula, thirty miles northwest of the city of Mexico. Seven years after the arrival of the Toltecs in Tollan, the government was a theocratic republic, with the seven chiefs who had conducted them thither acting as their rulers, under the advice of the venerable Huemen. Finally, in the beginning of the eighth century, somewhere between 710 and 720 A. D., the republic was changed into a monarchy and the throne given to the son of their dreaded enemies and former neighbors, the war- like Chichimecs, as a peace-offering, on condition that the Toltecs should always' be a free people and in no way tributary to the Chichimecs. The history of the Toltec monarchy during the three and a half centuries of its duration to the final over- throw of Tollan (10G2 A. D.) as well as the power of the remark- able people who built the ancient capital, has often been sketched, and for us to repeat what has been recorded in almost every language of modern Europe, would add nothing to the cause of science. This part of ancient American history, so replete with the romantic and marvellous, so confusing at times, because of our ignorance of many geographic and archseologic features entering into it (which, in time, will probably bo brought to light), so saddening because of its stories of wholesale mis- fortunes to a people whose civilization rivalled that of Europe in the middle ages ; and yet, after all, so fresh and novel, must 1 " All around the lakes of Mexico there are traces of ancient potteries, and I noticed that the bits of broken red earthenware scattered about them are identical in composition and color with those I have picked up in the valley of the Mississippi, and supposed to be relics of the ancient Mound builders." Evens (A. 8.), Our Sister Republic, p. 330. Hartford, 1870. Octavo. INCURSIONS OF THE CHICHIMECS. 255 continue to receive increased attention, if only as a means of recreation to the student of history, wearied with the beaten paths from Rome to Greece, and from Greece to Rome. Mr. Bancroft has given an excellent resume of the annals of the Toltec period, accompanying it with an ample literary apparatus in the notes. During the last century of the Toltec power, Anahuac was overrun by the incursions of a fierce and dreaded people the Chichimecs. These semi-barbarians, taking advan- tage of the internal dissensions in the Toltec monarchy, became a powerful factor, either on their own part or in the hands of the enemies of Tollan, in the overthrow of the empire. In the Toltec traditions we read of the Chichimecs being their neigh- bors in Hue hue Tlapalan. 1 In the annals as given in Ixtlil- xochitl, Torquemada and many writers, the Chichimecs are represented as having pursued and annoyed the Toltecs, to have followed them up in their wanderings. This probably is not literally true, but their arrival upon the borders of Anahuac, soon after its occupation by the Toltecs, is quite certain. It has been common to consider the Chichimecs as a Nahua people, and even so critical a writer as Mr. Bancroft adopts this popu- lar error. As long ago as 1855, Sr. Francisco Pimentel under- took to show the mistake into which many had fallen, and in his Lenguas Indigenas de Mexico (published in 1862), has furnished conclusive proof that the Chichimecs originally spoke a different language from the Nahua nations, but subsequently adopted the Nahua tongue, on the principle set forth by Balbi : " It is not the language of the conquering people that invariably dominates, but that which is most regular and cultured." On the testimony of Torquemada, 2 Ixtlilxochitl 3 and Juan Bautista Pomar, 4 Sr. Pimentel shows that the Chichimec language was once distinct and different from the Nahua, and that these people came under the civilizing influences of the Toltecs during their golden age, but in their declining period availed themselves 1 Ixtlilxochitl's Relaciones, Kingaborough's Mexican Antiquities, vol. ix, p. 322. 2 Monarq. Ind., lib. i, cap. 19. 8 Relaciones, in many places, and in Hist. Chichimec*, rap. 13. 4 Relation, MS. written 1582 in Sr. Icazbalceta's collection. 256 THE CHICHIMECS. of the opportunity of possessing their country and advanced civilization. 1 If the Chichimecs were the neighbors of the Toltecs in Hue hue Tlapalan, it is reasonable to expect some light on the situation of that disputed locality in the Chichimec traditions ; but in this expectation we are disappointed. There is no mention of that ancient home of the Nahuas, nor of any route pursued in their migrations. Amaquemecan is the only name which is applied to their most primitive land or history ; one of the cities which they occupied at some remote period seems to have borne the name. When the Toltecs sent to the Chichimecs for their first king, they were, according to Ixtlil- xochitl, in the neighborhood of Panuco. Panes describes them as having passed the sea, and, according to their reckoning, in the year Five Tolti to have arrived at the seven caves. Thence they journeyed to Amacatepeque, and certain persons left that province to go to Tepcnec, which is to say " the Mountain of Echo." 2 Ixtlilxochitl and some other authors derive them from Chicomoztoc, a rendezvous of the nations, which has been located by Clavigero at about twenty miles south of Zacatecas but is considered by Duran and Acosta as identical with Aztlan in the region of Florida. 3 It is impossible to determine either the starting-point or route of this people, who subsequently became amalgamated with the scattered Toltecs after the fall of Tollan, and whose rule in Anahuac may properly be dated from the (1062) middle of the eleventh until nearly the middle of the fifteenth (1431) century. A few years after the Chichimec power was established there came from the North (at least their last move is admitted to have been from that quarter) six tribes of Nahuatlacas, who arrived in the country adjoining Tollan. There were altogether seven tribes, namely, the Xochimilcos, Chalcas, Tepanecs, Tlahui- cas, Acolhuas, Tlascatecs and Aztecs or Mexicans. The latter people, however, had separated themselves from the remaining 1 Lenguas Indigenas de Mexico, torn, i, p. 154. ' Fragmentos de Historia de Nwba Espana, MS., p. 45, Library at Wash- ington. 8 Duran's Historia Antigua, torn, i, cap. i, p. 9, MS. THE NAHUATLACAS. 257 six tribes at Chicomoztoc and did not reach Anahuac until about 1196 A. D. These people all acted as tributary to the Chichimecs at first ; and of the seven tribes, two eventually arose to great political importance, the Tlascatecs who founded an independent republic, and the Aztecs whose empire has been the wonder of students of antiquity and the subject of histories as romantic as the purest fiction. Some authors add a number of tribal names to those already given as belonging to fragments of the Nahuatlaca family, but the probability is that these minor and unimportant tribes were offshoots from the others, after their arrival on the central plateau. The representative branch of all the Nahuatlacas was the Aztec nation, who separated from their brethren in Chicomoztoc, and whose arrival at the Lake region of Mexico, is dated subsequent to that of the other tribes. All of these tribes are said to have come from the unknown Aztlan, their early home. The question of its locality has been as much a subject of controversy as the location of Hue hue Tlapalan, since, in fact, the question is possibly one and the same, for the Nahua speaking people who migrated into Mexico at intervals, extending over a period of a thousand years, must have had a common origin. Aztlan is described by Duran as a most attract- ive land and the presumption is that the Nahuas were forcibly driven from their fair heritage by the gradual encroachments of their enemies. The account of this delightful country given by Cueuhcoatl to the elder Montezuma, is as follows : " Our fathers dwelt in that happy and prosperous place which they called Aztlan, which means " whiteness." In this place there is a great mountain in the middle of the water, which is called Culhuacan, because it has the point somewhat turned over to- ward the bottom, and for this cause it is called Culhuacan, which means " crooked mountain." In this mountain were some openings, or caves or hollows, where our fathers and ancestors dwelt for many years ; there, under this name Mexitin and Aztec, they had much repose ; there they enjoyed a great plenty of geese ; of all species of marine birds and water fowls ; en- joyed the song and melody of birds with yellow crests ; enjoyed many kinds of large and beautiful fish ; enjoyed the freshness 17 258 A DESCRIPTION OF AZTLAN. of trees that were upon those shores, and fountains enclosed with elders, and savins (junipers) and aldertrees, both large and beautiful. They went about in canoes, and made furrows in which they planted maize, red-peppers, tomatoes, beans and all kinds of seed that we eat." 1 The location of Aztlan is not a philosophical question for our consideration, since scarcely sufficient data of a definite character are available on which to base a process of reasoning. The report common among the Aztecs was that they had come from the North, and this was no doubt true of the final move prior to their settlement in Ana- huac, but whether it was true of their starting-point and the general course of the Aztec migration, is a question which can- not be satisfactorily answered. Most Spanish writers and others of the earlier school, locate Aztlan directly north of the present boundary line of Mexico, 2 others again California, 3 while some favor the Northwestern Mexican States. 1 A recent school of Americanists assign Aztlan a southern location, placing it in the Central American region. 3 Duran and Brasseur de Bour- 1 Duran's Historia Antigua, MS., torn, i, cap. 27 ; also cited in the Spanish by Bancroft, vol. v, p. 306. Aztlan, translated " whiteness " above, may be rendered " colorless " with equal propriety. Hue hue Tlapalan, on the contrary, is trans- lated ancient red-land, or land of color, just the opposite of Aztlan, a fact which may serve to prove that they were two quite different localities. 2 Clavigero, Storia Ant. del Messico, torn, i, pp. 156-9 (north of Colorado River) ; Humboldt, Vues, ii, p. 179, and Essai Pol., torn, i, p. 53 (north of 42 north latitude) ; Orozco y Berra, Geografia, pp. 81-2, and 136-7 ; Prichard's Nat. Hist of Man, vol. ii.pp. 514-16 (Arazonia) ; Pimentel, Lenguas Indig. Mex., torn, i, p. 158. Most writers indefinitely assign the name to a region in the North, without attempting to designate the locaity. 3 Acosta, Hist, de las Lid., p. 454; Schoolcraft's ArcJiives of Ab. Knowledge, vol. i, p. 68 ; M. Aubin places it in Lower California ; Brasseur de Bourbourg's Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, ii, p. 292 ; Pickering's Races in U. 8. Ex. Ex., vol. ix, p. 41. 4 Mendieta, Hist. Ecles., p. 144 (Xalisco); Veytia, Hist. Ant. Mej. (Sonora); Mollhausen, Reisen in d. Felsengebirge N. Am., torn, ii, p. 143 et seq. 5 Chief among these we may cite ; Squier's Notes on Central Amer., p. 349 ; Waldeck's Voy. Pitt., p. 45, and Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, pp. 221, 305-6, 322-5 ; Milller, Geschichte der Amerikanischen Urreligionen, pp. 530-4, the latter, though inclined to assign Aztlan to a southern locality, still recognizes the fact that the Nahua family was originally a northern people. THE AZTEC MIGRATION. 259 bourg, both celebrated authorities, on the other hand locate Aztlan in the United States ; the former in Florida, by which we are to understand the region of the Gulf States, 1 while the latter simply expresses the conviction that Aztlan was situated to the north-east of California. 2 The Aztec migration and the itinerary as generally accepted demands consideration before forming any judgment on the loca- tion of Aztlan. In this primitive abode we are told that each year the Aztecs crossed a great river or channel to Teo-Culhuacan for the purpose of offering sacrifices in honor of their god Tetzauch. But it happened that a bird appeared to Huitziton, one of the greatest of their chiefs (whom Bancroft thinks was identical with Mecitl or Mexi hence the name Mexicans), and constantly reiterated the word tihui, tihui, meaning 'Met us go, let us go." This singular occurrence was interpreted by Huitziton as a command from the gods for them to seek a new country, and after persuading the chief Tecpatzin to his view, the divine oracle was announced to the people. Accordingly, in the year 1064, according to some authors, 3 or in 1090 according to others, 4 or a century later than the first-named date accord- ing to some of the interpreters of the Aztec migration maps, the Nahuatlaca tribes left their ancient home and entered upon one of those strange and aimless journeys so characteristic of semi- civilized and superstitious peoples. The Aztec migration as given by several authorities is scarcely more satisfactory than that of the Toltecs, nor can any additional light be thrown on the route pursued until Sr. Orozco y Berra publishes the results of his critical examination of the subject 5 The unimportance of the itinerary in the solution of any question is apparent, since it contributes but little to our knowledge of the location of Aztlan. 1 Historic/, Antigua, MS., torn, i, cap. i, p. 9. 2 Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, ii, p. 292. 3 Chief among whom are Gallatin, Gama and Veytia, who suppose that the adjustment of the calendar took place in 1090 A.D., and that the year Ce Tochtli corresponds with that date. 4 Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, p. 324, and seems to be the opinion of Brasseur, Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, ii, pp. 292-5. 8 Garcia Cubas' Republic of Mexico in 1S7G (Eng. trans.), p. 58. 260 AZTEC STATIONS. Mr. Bancroft has greatly facilitated the comparison of the lists of stations as given by different authors, in a note of great length on pp. 322-4, thus presenting to the eye at a glance the diversity of opinion which meets the reader of this subject. As an example, we select two or three of the itineraries, simply to show the wide range that opinion has taken on the subject. Accord- ing to Veytia, the tribes left Aztlan in I Tecpatl, 1064 A. D., and one hundred and four years afterwards reached Chicomoztoc, where they dwelt nine years ; the subsequent stations and the duration of their sojourn in each as follows : Cohuatlicamac three years, Matlahuacallan six, Apanco five, Chimalco six, Pipiol- comic three, Tollan six, Cohuactepec (Coatepec) three, Atlitlala- cayan two, Atotonilco one, Tepexic five, Apasco three, Tozonpanco seven, Tizayocan one, Ecatepec one, Tolpetlac three, Chimal- pan four, Cohuatitlan two, Huexachtitlan three, Tecpayocan three, Tepeyacac (Guadalupe) three, Pantitlan two, and thence to Chapultepec, arriving in 1298, after a journey of one hundred and eighty-five years, reckoning an additional forty-nine years for their stay at Michoachan. 1 According to Tezozomoc, the stations are as follows : Aztlan, Culhuacan, Jalisco, Mechoacan, Malinalco (Lake Patzcuaro), Ocopipilla, Acahualcingo, Coatepec (in Tonalan), Atlitlanquin, or Atitalaquia, Tequisquiac, Atengo, Tzompan, Cuachilgo, Xaltocan, and Lake Chnamitl, Eycoac, Ecatepc, Aculhuacan, Tultepetlac, Huixachtitlan, Tecpayuca (in two Calli), Atepetlac, Coatlayauhcan, Tetepanco, Acolnahuac, Popotla (Tacuba), Chapultepec in two Tochtli. 2 Clavigero states that they left Aztlan in 1160, crossed the Colorado River, stayed three years in Hueicolhuacan, went east to Chicomoztoc, reached Tula in 1196, and finally Chapultepec in 1245. 3 Acosta, Herrera and Duran state that Nahuatlaca tribes left Aztlan in 820 A. D., and eighty years later reached Mexico ; that the Aztecs, how- ever, did not start until 1122 A. D. 4 Duran identifies Aztlan 1 Veytia, torn, ii, pp. 91-8, and as summarized by Bancroft, vol. v, p. 323. 2 Kingsborough's Mex, Ant., vol. ix, pp. 5-8, and Bancroft, vol. v, p. 323. 3 Storia Ant. del Messico, torn, i, pp. 156-63. 4 See Acosta, Hist. Nat. Ind., pp. 454-62. Herrera, Histor. Gen., dec. iii, lib. ii, cap. x-xi. Duran, MS., Hist. Antig., cap. i, ii, iii of torn. i. THE TABASCOS. 261 with Teo-Culhuacan, and locates it towards our Mississippi Valley. He in common with other writers identifies Chicomostoc with the seven caves. 1 The Tarascos, though speaking a different language, are said to have separated from the Nahuatlacas at Michoacan. They describe the route to the seven caves as across a sea, which they passed in balsas and the trunks of trees. 2 This statement may be of some value in locating that disputed rendezvous of so many tribes ; and certainly is more important than a mass of ground- less speculation. The next source of interest in this connection is the much perverted and sadly misunderstood migration map first published by Gemelli Carreri, in Churchill's collection of voyages (vol. iv). Humboldt has given an interpretation which, with the exception of that part which connects it with a deluge and Colhuacan, " the Ararat of the Mexicans," is generally received. 3 1 " Pero porque la noticia que tengo de su origen y principio no es mas, ni ellos saben dar mas relation sino desde aqullas siete cuebas donde habitaron tan largo tiempo, las cuales desampararon para venir a vuscar esta Tierra nnos prhnero que otros, otros despues, otros muy despues hasta dejarlas desierfas. Estas cuebas son en Teo-culhuican, que por otro nombre le Human Aztlan, tierra de que todos tenemos noticia caer hacia la parte del Norte y Tierra-firma con la Florida ; por tanto desde este lugar de estas cuebas dare verdadera relation de estas Naciones y de sus sucessos. * * * Salieron pues siete Tribus de Qentes de aquellas cuebas donde habitaban para venir a vuscar esta Tierra, a las cuales llamaban Chicomostoc, de donde vienen a fingir que sus Padres nacieron de unas cuebas, no teniendo noticia de lo de atras de la salida." Duran, Hist. Antig , MS., torn, i, cap. i, p. 9. 2 The Fragmentos de Historia de Nueba Espafio, MS. (Congressional Library) of Diego Panes alludes to this event. "Como los Tarascos se adelantaron luego que pasaron el estrecho de mar, en los troncos de Arboles, y balsas, y otros instrumentos del pasaje y se metieron & vida y avitar en las siete cndias espelnncas, y Tabernas de la Tierra, hasta que hicieron abitaciones, y moradus y como desde alii fuerou cresciejudo, y toinnado, el tiento de la Tierra y lis- posiciones de ella para, poblarla." 3 We quote Bancroft's rendering from the Vues, torn, ii, p. 176 et seq.: "From Colhuacan, the Mexican Arurat, fifteen chiefs or tribes reach Aztlan. 'land of flamingoes,' north of 42, which they leave in 1038, passing through Tocolco, ' humiliation,' Oztotlan, ' place of grottoes,' Mizquiahuala, Teotzapotlan, ' place of divine fruit,' Iluicatepec, Papantla, ' large-leaved gras,' T/ompanco, 'place of human bones,' Apazco, 'clay ve?sel,' Atlicalaguian, 'crevice in which rivulet escapes/ Quauhtitlan, 'eagle grove,' Atzcapotzalco, 'ant hill,' Chalco, 262 RAMIREZ ON THE MIGRATION MAPS. Gemelli Carreri, Humboldt and many others were quite cer- tain that they could read in this map the account of the Mosaic deluge. 1 Don Jose Fernando Bamirez, of the Mexican Museum, however, pointed out the fact that the Geinelli Carreri map, copied from one owned by Sigiienza, and published by Hum- boldt, Clavigero and Kingsborough, was in each case incorrectly represented, and states that the copy contained in the Atlas of Garcia y Cubas is the first correct reproduction of the original presented to the public. 2 Sr. Ramirez explains away the illu- sion of the Mexican Ararat and deluge in a manner both simple and conclusive. 3 The dove with commas proceeding from its ' place of precious stones,' Pantitlan, ' spinning-place,' Tolpetlac, ' rush mat/ Quauli tepee, ' eagle mountain,' Tetepanco, ' wall of many small stories,' Chico- moztoc, ' seven caves,' Huitzquilocan, ' place of thistles,' Xaltepozaukcan, ' place where the sand issues,' Cozcaquauhco, ' a vulture,' Techcatitlan, ' place of obsidian mirrors,' Azcaxochitl, 'ant flower,' Tepetlapan, 'place of tepetate,' Apan, ' place of water,' Teozomaco, ' place of divine apes,' Chapoltepec, ' grass- hopper hill.' " Native Races, vol. v, p. 324, note. 1 The following account is from Franc. Gemelli Carreri's Voyage Round the World, Churchill's Voyages, London, 1732, 6 vol. fol. (book iv, cap. iii), p. 485 : " The ancient histories of Mexico make mention of a flood, in which all men and beasts perished, and only one man and woman were saved in a boat, which in their language they call Acalle. The man, according to the character by which his name is expressed, was called Cox-cox, and the woman Chichequetzal. This couple coming to the foot of the mountain, which, according to the picture, was named Culhuacan, went ashore, and there they had many children, all born dumb. When they multiplied to a great number, one day a pigeon came, and from the top of a tree gave them their speech, but not one of them under- stood the others' language, and therefore they divided and dispersed, every one going to take possession of some country. Among these they reckoned fifteen heads of families who happened to speak the same language, joined together and went about to find some land to inhabit. When they had wandered one hundred and four years they came to the place they call Antlan, and continuing their journey thence, came first to the place called Capultepec, then to Culhuacan, and lastly to the place where Mexico now stands." 2 See communication in Garcia y Cubas' Atlas Gcografico, Estadistico e His- torico de la RepuUica Mejicana, April 1858, entrega 29, and Bancroft, iii, p. 68, note. 3 We should be guilty of a fault if we were to convey the idea that no deluge legend other than this was current among the Aztecs. The Codex Chimal- popoca records a flood in which mankind were drowned and turned into fishes. In Mr. Bancroft's graceful rendering we learn that " the waters and sky drew BANCROFT ON THE STORY OP COX-COX. 263 beak, is not talking, nor giving tongues, but is repeating the word tihui, "let us go/' referring to the legend already cited, of the bird in Aztlan incessantly uttering this word in the hear- ing of Huitziton the chief. A little bird called tihuitochan is still heard in Mexico, having a note which is interpreted by the common people to mean the same as their ancestors interpreted it in Aztlan. Sr. Ramirez is convinced that the map referred to is only a record of the wanderings of the Aztecs among the lakes of the Mexican Valley, and that it has no reference whatever to any deluge, not even to one of the former traditional destructions of the world found in the Nahua cosmogony. Mr. Bancroft has added the valuable argument that the story of Cox-cox and the deluge is only the product of false interpretation, or else some of tha earlier writers would have been acquainted with the legend. On the contrary, Olmos, Sahagun, Motolinia, Mendieta, Ixtlilxochitl, and Camergo are all silent with regard to it. The mountain and boat and their several adjuncts are found to be nothing but hieroglyphics for proper names. near each other ; in a single day all was tost, the day Four Flower consumed all that there was of our flesh. And this was the year Ce-Calli ; on the first day, Nahui-Atl, all was lost. The very mountains were swallowed up in the flood, and the waters remained, lying tranquil during fifty and two spring- times. But before the flood began, Titlacahuan had warned the man Nata and his wife Nena, saying : Make now no more pulque, but hollow out to yourselves a great cypress, into which you shall enter when, in the month Tozoztli, the waters shall near the sky. Then they entered into it, and when Titlacahuan had shut them in, he said to the man : Thou shalt eat but a single ear of maize, and thy wife but one also. And when they had finished eating, each an ear of maize, they prepared to set forth, for the waters remained tranquil and their log moved no longer ; and opening it they began to see the fishes. Then they lit a fire by rubbing pieces of wood together and they roasted fish." The account states that the deities then descended and transformed the fishes into dogs. (Brasseur de Bourbourg, Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, i, pp. 425-7. Bancroft, vol. iii, pp. 69, 70.) We cannot with gravity give the Tezpi legend preserved in Michoa- can. If the reader will refer to the Mosaic account of the flood, he will only need to substitute the name of Tezpi for Noah, a vulture for the raven, and a humming-bird for the dove, and the Tezpi legend substantially will be before him. Of course the detail of the Mosaic account is wanting; nevertheless it is certain that the Tezpi legend is the product of the fancy of some over-zealous priest, who thought he could see a stricter analogy between the Nahua deluge tradition and the Scriptural account than really exists. 264 IS AZTLAN IN THE NORTH? Chalco Lake is, in the opinion of Senor Kamirez, the point of departure for the fifteen chiefs at the end of their first cycle. His interpretation of the Boturini map of the migration results in the same conclusion. The fifteen chiefs left their island home, passing through Coloacan (Colhuacan, according to Gondra's interpretation) as their second station. It appears that the first move and point of departure are both unknown, and no satis- factory solution of the question has yet been offered. The pre- vailing tradition that it is in the north has been perplexing, since no material remains undoubtedly attributable to the Aztecs are found north of the central plateau of Mexico, nor indeed in the territories of the United States. If we adopt the general theory that the Aztecs came from the Mississippi Valley, possibly the original home of the Nahuas, occupied by the Olmecs prior to their arrival at Panuco and their descent into the Chiapan region, and by the Toltecs before their migration to Anahuac, we have a theory which agrees with the testimony of Duran and Sahagun, and seems to find support in the pyramidal mounds of the Lower Mississippi, which we have already seen are almost as perfect in their plan and construction as those found in Mexico, which do not furnish evidence of as great antiquity as those of the Ohio and Missouri Valleys. According to most accounts, a considerable period elapses between their departure and their arrival at Chicomoztoc the seven caves. According to Veytia it was 104 years, but Brasseur adopts twenty-six years, which is also the opinion of the majority of writers. Chicomoztoc has some features which remind us of the Tulan Zuiva of the Quiches their seven caves, from which so many tribes derived their origin. Chicomoztoc is the point at which the six Nahu- atlaca tribes separated from the Aztecs, and thence proceeded to the Mexican lake region. It is quite probable that a consider- able distance may have been traversed in this interval of twenty- six years, a distance which could have brought the Aztecs from a comparatively northern latitude to the Chiapan region. Op- posed to this, however, is the fact that the Tulan Zuiva of the Quiches was in a cold, inhospitable region, no doubt at the North. Mr. Bancroft suggests that the first part of the migra- SUMMARY OF VIEWS AS TO LOCATION OF AZTLAN. 265 tion tradition may refer vaguely back to the events which followed the Toltecs' destruction. 1 We have already referred to the tendency to confusion in histories that are chiefly tra- ditional. In opposition to the view that Aztlan and Chico- moztoc were remote from each of these, we have the statement of Duran 2 that these caves are in Teo-Culhuacan, otherwise called Aztlan, which implies that both Teo-Culhuacan and Chicomoztoc were points in the region of Aztlan. Every year it was the custom of the Aztecs, while in Aztlan, to cross a river or channel to Teo-Culhuacan in order to sacrifice to their god Tetzauh, and after their arrival at Chicomoztoc they con- tinued the occupation of boatmen, which they had followed while in Aztlan. 3 By way of summary, then, we may venture the following : 1. Viewed from the standpoint of Sr. Ramirez, Aztlan may be located somewhere not far distant from Chalco Lake. The islands which it encircles may correspond to the description of the ancient home of the Aztecs, given by Duran as quoted on page 257 and described as Culhuacan. Teo-Cul- huacan, where the Aztecs sacrificed yearly, may be the city of Culhuacan situated in that neighborhood. As additional testi- mony we have the fact that most of the stations named in the migrations can be located in the Central Mexican region. The report that they came from the north may refer only to the scattering of the Nahua or Toltec people from Tollan, just north of the valley. 2. The statements of all the writers that the Aztecs came from the north, the fact that Duran and Sahagun assign the primitive Nahua home to the region of Florida, and the prevalence of mounds and shell-heaps in great numbers in the Gulf States, together with the extension of those mounds through Texas into Mexico, may warrant the opinion that Aztlan was in the Mississippi Valley, or, looking in another direction, the rock or cave dwellings recently discovered in Southern Utah and the Rocky Mountain region (of which we shall give a description in the next chapter) may indicate the locality of the 1 Native Races, vol. v, p. 325. * See note 1, page 261, this chapter. 3 Bancroft, vol. v, p. 325. 266 SUMMAEY OF VIEWS. ancient and much-sought-for land. The identity in meaning of Chicomoztoc (seven caves) and Tulan Zuiva (seven caves) together with the fact that both places in Quiche and Nahua history were the point of separation for many tribes, is a singular coincidence, if they are not one and the same. In the preceding chapter we have seen that Tulan Zuiva of the Quiches was in a northern or at least a colder climate, where they suffered greatly for want of fire, a fact of no little significance. On the other hand Teo-Culhuacan, the place of yearly sacrifice, may have been a city of the Chiapan region, since Sahagun located Tamoanchan the first city of the Nahuas (Olmec) after their arrival from Florida in Mexico, somewhere in the Usuma- cinta Valley. It is possible that a large number of the immi- grants remained behind the company which migrated northward to Teotihuacan and thence to the seven caves, subsequently uniting with the Toltecs at Tollan. This view has had quite a number of advocates. 1 We will not undertake, in the present state of knowledge on the subject, to decide which of these 1 E. G. Squier in Notes on Cent. Am., p. 349, makes the following remark : " It is a significant fact, that in the map of their migrations, presented by Gemelli, the place of the origin of the Aztecs is designated by the sign of water (Atl standing for Atzlan), a pyramidal temple with grades, and near these a palm- tree. This circumstance did not escape the attention of the observant Hum- boldt, who says, ' I am astonished at finding a palm-tree near this teocalli. This tree certainly does not indicate a northern origin.'" We might add that we are equally surprised that so generally able a writer as Mr. Squier should resort to so absolutely weak an argument. Sr. Ramirez has clearly explained that all the figures and their adjuncts are but hieroglyphic parts of proper names. The palm-tree no doubt plays its part. M. Waldeck ( Voyage Pitt., p. 45) makes the same remark as Mr. Squier that it indicates a southern origin. Gondra (Prescott's Historia Cong. Mex., cited by Bancroft, vol. v, p. 306, note) replies that this may be a thoughtless insertion of the painter. The possibility that an unskillful artist should unintentionally represent a tree of which he had no knowledge is so great, that any argument dependent upon it hangs upon a slender thread. Over against Mr. Squier's claim we desire to place the simple inquiry, Does the Elephant Mound of Wisconsin indicate that its constructors were natives of Asia, where the elephant is common, or that they lived in the epoch of the American Mastodon? It is well-known that the latter phase of the question could not be true, since the condition of the mound contradicts such great antiquity. INSUFFICIENT DATA FOR A DECISION. 267 three claims is the true one, if either one of them is correct. Our only wish is to furnish the reader a margin for his choice. It seems to us that it would be unscientific to attempt to decide a question based upon such slender and contradictory data. It is unnecessary for us to follow the Aztecs farther in their history. The magnificent empire of the Montezumas, with its advanced civilization, but at the same time cursed with its horrid worship, in which thousands of human victims bathed the altars of Mexico yearly with their life-blood, has been described and its glory handed down to history by that most graceful and romantic of American writers, William H. Prescott. We cannot, however, dismiss this the most primitive period of the growth of the Nahua nations without a reference to the reputed author of the higher phases of their civilization. We refer to that semi- mythical and semi-divine personage, Quetzalcoatl. The numer- ous legends concerning this culture-hero, scattered chronologically over hundreds of years of Nahua history, may have originated in the life and character of some noted personage the leader and civilizer of the most ancient branches of the Nahua family, or in the personification of an ideal deity, a nature-god whose chief attribute, whose distinguishing office, was the fertilization of the earth, the revivification of the slumbering forces in nature and consequently the author of prosperity, agriculture, and the arts of peace. In either case the name of the original Quetzalcoatl, were he either man or deity, was eventually inherited by a line of individuals who became the priests of his worship, or the representatives of his teachings, and the inculcators of the most humane and noble principles which entered into the ancient civilization. Without entering into a lengthy discussion of the probabilities in the case, we give the substance of the tradi- tions, arranged in what appears to us not only the most con- sistent, but also the proper order. We have already acquainted the reader with the meaning of Quetzalcoatl, namely, " plumed serpent." From the distant East, from the fabulous Hue hue Tlapalan, this mysterious personage came to Tulla, and became the patron 268 QUETZALCOATL. god and high-priest of the ancestors of the Toltecs. 1 He is described as having been a white man, with a strong formation of body, broad forehead, large eyes, and flowing beard. He wore a mitre on his head, and was dressed in a long, white robe, reaching to his feet, and covered with red crosses. In his hand he held a sickle. His habits were ascetic ; he never married, was most chaste and pure in his life, and is said to have endured penance in a neighboring mountain, not for its effects upon him- self, but as an example to others. Some have here found a parallel for Christ's temptation. He condemned sacrifices, except of fruits and flowers, and was known as the god of peace ; for when addressed on the subject of war, he is reported to have stopped his ears with his fingers. 2 Quetzalcoatl was skilled in many arts, having invented gem- cutting and metal-casting. He furthermore originated letters and invented the Mexican calendar. The legend which describes the latter states that the gods, having made men, thought it advisable that their creatures should have some means of reckon- ing time, and of regulating the order of religious ceremonies. Therefore two of these celestial personages, one of them a god- dess, called Quetzalcoatl to counsel with them, and the three contrived a system which they recorded on tables, each bearing a single sign. That sign, however, was accompanied with all necessary explanations of its meaning. It is noticeable that the goddess was assigned the privilege of writing the first sign, and that she chose a serpent as her favorite symbol. Some accounts represent that Huemac was the temporal king, or at least associated with Quetzalcoatl in the government ; the latter occupying the priestly as well as the kingly office. Sahagun 1 Torquemada, Monarq. Ind., torn, i, p. 245 et seq., states that a band of people came from the north by way of Panuco, dressed in long black robes ; that they thence went to Tulla, where they were well received, but that region being already thickly populated, they went to Cholula. They were great artists, were skilled in working metals ; with them was Quetzalcoatl, with a fair and ruddy complexion and a long beard. ' He was their leader.' 2 Mendieta, Hist. Ed., pp. 82, 86, 92, 397-8 ; also cited by Bancroft, vol. iii, pp. 250-2, and Clavigero, Hist. Ant. Del. Messico, pp. 11-13. QUETZALCOATL'S DEPARTURE FROM TULLA. 269 calls the associate ruler Veraac. At all events, Quetzalcoatl had an enemy, the deity Tezcatlipoca, whose worship was quite opposite in its character to that of Quetzalcoatl, being sanguine and celebrated with horrid human sacrifices. A struggle ensued in Tulla (Tollan) between the opposing systems which resulted favorably to the bloody deity and the faction who sought to establish his worship in preference to the peaceful and ascetic service of Quetzalcoatl. Tezcatlipoca, envious of the magnificence enjoyed by Quetzal- coatl, determined upon his destruction. His first appearance at Tulla was in the role of a great ball-player, and Quetzalcoatl, being very fond of the game, engaged in play with him, when suddenly he transformed himself into a tiger, occasioning a panic among the spectators, in which great numbers were crowded over a precipice into a river, where they perished. Again the vicious god appeared at Tulla. This time he presented himself at the door of Quetzalcoatl's palace in the guise of an old man, and asked permission of the servants to see their master. They attempted to drive him away, saying that their god was ill. At last, because of his importunities, they obtained leave to admit him. Tezcatlipoca entered, and seeing the sick deity, asked about his health, and announced that he had brought him a medicine which would ease his body, compose his mind, and prepare him for the journey which Fate had decreed that he must undertake. 1 Quetzalcoatl received the sorcerer kindly, inquiring anxiously as to the journey and the land of his destiny. His deceiver told him that the name of the land was Tullan Tlapalan, where his youth would be renewed, and that he must visit it without delay. The sick king was moved greatly by the words of the sorcerer, and was prevailed upon to taste the intoxicating medi- cine which he pressed to his Itys. At once he felt his malady healed, and the desire to depart fixed itself in his mind. " Drink again ! " exclaimed the old sorcerer ; and again the 1 Sahagun, Hist. Gen., torn, i, lib. iii, p. 245, and Torqueraada, torn, ii, p. 47 et seq., do not agree fully as to the details. 270 QUETZALCOATL AT CHOLULA. god-king pressed the cup to his lips, and drank till the thought of departure became indelible, chained his reason, and speedily drove him a wanderer from his palace and kingdom. Upon leaving Tulla, driven from his kingdom by the vicious enmity of Tezcatlipoca, he ordered his palaces of gold, and silver, and turquoise, and precious stones, to be set on fire. The myriads of rich-plumed songsters that made the air of the capital melo- dious with song accompanied him on his journey, pipers playing on pipes preceded him, and the flowers by the way are said to have given forth unusual volumes of perfume at his approach. After journeying one hundred leagues southward, he rested, near a city of Anahuac, under a great tree, and as a memorial of the event, he cast stones at the tree, lodging them in its trunk. 1 He then proceeded still farther southward in the same valley, until he came to a mountain, two leagues distant from the city of Mexico. Here he pressed his hands upon a rock on which he rested, and left their prints imbedded in it, where they remained visible down to a very recent date. He then turned eastward to Cholula, where he was received with greatest reverence. 2 The great pyramid was erected to his honor. With his advent the spirit of peace settled down upon the city. War was not known during his sojourn within it. The reign of Saturn repeated itself. The enemies of the Cholulans came with perfect safety to his temple, and many wealthy princes of other countries erected temples to his honor in the city of his choice. 3 Here the silversmith, the sculptor, the artist, and the archi- tect, we are led to believe, from the testimony of both tradition and remains, flourished under the patronage of the grand god- king. However, after twenty years had elapsed, that subtile, fever- ish draught received from the hand of Tezcatlipoca away back in Tulla, like an old poison in the veins, renewed its power. Again his people, his palaces, and his pyramidal temple were 1 Torquemada, Monarq. Ind., torn, ii, p. 47 et seq., and Sahagun, torn, i, chap, iii, p. 245 et seq. 3 Mendieta, Hist. Eel, p. 82 et seq. QUETZALCOATL AT CHOLULA. 271 forsaken, that he might start on his long and final journey. 1 He told his priests that the mysterious Tlapalla was his destina- tion, and turning toward the East, proceeded on his way until he reached the sea at a point a few miles south of Vera Cruz. Here he bestowed his blessing upon four young men, who accom- panied him from Cholula, and commanded them to go back to their homes, bearing the promise to his people that he would return to them, and again set up his kingdom among them. Then, embarking in a canoe made of serpent-skins, he sailed away into the East. 2 The Cholulans, out of respect to Quetzalcoatl, placed the government in the hands of the recipients of his blessing. His statue was placed in a sanctuary on the pyramid, but in a reclining position, representing a state of repose, with the under- standing that it shall be placed upon its feet when the god returns. When Cortes landed, they believed their hopes real- ized, sacrificed a man to him, and sprinkled the blood of the unhappy victim upon the conqueror and his companions. 3 Father Sahagun, when on his journey to Mexico, was every- where asked if he had not come from Tlapalla. 4 No wonder when the fleet of Cortes hove in sight on the horizon, almost in the same place where Quetzalcoatl's bark had disappeared, that the Mexican, who had been waiting centuries for the prince of peace to return, believed his waiting to be at an end. No won- der that he inquired of the distant and mysterious Tlapalla. In this state of expectancy we find a most natural and fruitful soil for the operations of the Spanish conquerors. Such is the form into which the mass of legends concerning 1 Goatzacoalco, described as a province near the sea, one hundred and fifty leagues from CholuJa (Torquemada, torn ii, pp. 48-52). The same author tract's him to Yucatan and identifies him with Cukulcan. See preceding chapter. 9 On a raft, according to Sahagun. 8 See Milller, GescMcMe der AmerikaniscJien Urreligionen, p. 599. 4 Torquemada, Monarq. Ind., torn, ii, p. 50. In presenting these; legends we have employed nearly the same language which we used in treating the same subject in an article entitled "Culture-Heroes of the Ancient Americans," published in Appleton's Journal for March 1877. 272 ORIGIN OP THE QUETZALCOATL LEGEND. Quetzalcoatl have been woven. There is scarcely a doubt, how- ever, that it is a matter of growth is the accumulation of several centuries. The name Quetzalcoatl (Nahua), Gucumatz (Quiche) and Cukulcan (Maya), translated "feathered" or "plumed" or " winged " serpent, may originally have been applied to an intel- ligent princely foreigner who was cast upon the shores of the Central American region, and who introduced the art of casting metals, and especially taught agriculture. His doctrines of peace and virtue may have been sufficiently wide-spread to have brought about the prosperity which is ascribed to his age. From this standpoint we would consider him at first to have cast his lot among the descendants of Votan, otherwise known as the " Serpents," from which occurrence he may have received his name of " Feathered Serpent." On pages 241-42 we referred to the statements of the Codex Chimalpopoca, that Quetzalcoatl, becoming obnoxious to his companions, who seem to be Quiches, forsook them. The account also states that he afterwards brought maize to Tamoanchan (the city of the Nahuas). Our next account of him describes him as figuring among the Olmecs at Cholula. This realistic view of the tradition applies to the first Quetzalcoatl, who may have been an actual man. While entertaining this view, we must not forget that centuries prior to this period (which we may as well assign to the first or second century as to any other date), the Quiches possessed the ideal of such a personage whom they considered a deity, who figures so actively in their cosmogony under the name of Grucumatz. This deity was the vivifying force in nature, the bringer of the gentle south winds, the god of the harvest and of the air. He was best symbolized to the mind of the savage by the vernal shower and the return of spring. The serpent was everywhere considered an emblem of the vernal shower, and was thought to be in some way instrumental in bringing it, together with its refreshing and fructifying influences. So here, in the name of Quetzalcoatl, we find a progressive step indicated in the workings of the mind, an ad- vance from the lower figure of the serpent alone to that of an aerial combination, which, whiJe it contained all the virtues of A CULTURE-HERO. 273 the serpent, is lifted to a higher element that from which the shower falls. The feathery vapor-clouds of summer are but the plumes or wings of the shower which the serpent symbolized. At last when a teacher of agriculture and the mechanic arts, so conducive of prosperity and plenty, appeared an individual who discovers maize and directs the process of its reproduction and guards an improvident people against want and famine, the attributes of the god are recognized as dwelling in him, the ideal vaguely represented by the vernal shower is concreted, is become incarnate, is presented in a shape more comprehensible to the untaught mind, and at once the name, reverence and worship of the god are attached to the man, the culture hero. This we believe to be the simplest interpretation of the origin of the worship of Quetzalcoatl. A priesthood appears to have been founded who perpetuated the doctrines of this deified man. That part of the legend which relates to Tulla (Tollan) with the expulsion of the king and that which followed, properly be- longs to Ceacatl, surnamed Quetzalcoatl, Toltec king of Tollan, who ascended the throne about 873. 1 The father of this monarch had been cruelly murdered, and in his early boyhood Ceacatl is said to have wreaked a terrible vengeance on the murderer of his father, after which he concealed himself for about twenty years. At about the above-named date he reappeared, and established his claims to the throne. He espoused the religion of Quetzalcoatl, and the peace which followed brought great prosperity. Human sacrifices were forbidden, and a golden age seemed to dawn in which Tollan exceeded all the cities of the Mexican valley in importance and wealth. But a rivalry at once sprang up between the priests of the bloody god Tezcatlipoca, worshipped in Culhuacan and at Teotihuacan, and those of the peaceful and humane Quetzalcoatl, which resulted in the volun- tary departure of the Pontiff king, to whom the name of his god was attached. The contest between the two sects is sym- bolized in the legend by the tricks of Tezcatlipoca. Quetzalcoatl was received at Cholula, where he remained some years, but was 1 See Bancroft, vol. v, p. 256, and the authorities cited. 18 274 INTERPRETATION OF THE LEGEND TOLTEC KING. at last driven away before the leader of the Tezcatlipoca faction, namely, King Huemac, who advanced upon the peaceful king with a strong army. Quetzalcoatl again voluntarily withdrew, rather than occasion the bloodshed of his subjects. It is prob- able that he ultimately reached Yucatan and figured there in his old character under the name of Cukulcan. 1 1 The sources of the Quetzalcoatl legends have been cited in connection with our version of the fables applying to the name. On the relation of Ceacatl Quetzalcoatl, the Toltec king, to the subject, see Sahagun, Hist. Gen., torn, ii, lib. viii, p. 266, but especially see Bancroft, vol. v, p. 256 et seq., for a fuller account. The same author has treated the subject with an unprcedented fullness in his third volume, chap. vii. The able examination of Quetzalcoatl's character by Miiller, in his GescMchte d. Am. Urreligionen (pp. 577 et seq.), has been of great value to us in the preparation of this sketch. CHAPTER VII. THE ANCIENT PUEBLOS AND CLIFF-DWELLERS. Casas Grandes of Chihuahua Ruins in the Casas Grandes and Janos Valleys Casa Grande of the Rio Gila Ruins in the Gila Valley Also in the Valley of the Rio Salado Ruins in the Canon of the Colorado In the Valley of the Colorado Chiquito Pueblos of the Zufii River Zuni and the " Seven Cities of Cibola "" El Moro "Pueblos of the Chaco Valley- Cliff-Dwell- ers Mr. Jackson's Discoveries in the Valley of the Rio San Juan Cliff Houses of the Rio Mancos Cliff-Dwellings on the McElmo Traditional Origin and Fate of the Cliff-Dwellere Ancestors of the Moquis Remark- able Discoveries by Mr. Holmes The Seven Moqui Towns The Monte- zuma Legend. IN the State of Chihuahua, Mexico, and in our Territories of Arizona, New Mexico, Utah and the State of Colorado, a class of remains are found, wholly unlike those of the Mayas, Nahuas, or Mound-builders, though in some instances they are associated with earth- works resembling those of the latter race. The style of architecture is unlike that of any other people on either continent, and though varying considerably in its indi- vidual examples, still present certain marked and general features which leave little room for doubt that the peoples of the Pueblos and the Cliffs were the same. The earliest discovered of this class of remains are known as the Casas Grandes, situated at about half a mile from the modern town of the same name, in the fertile valley of the Casas Grandes or San Migual River in Northern Chihuahua. These ruins have often been described second-hand and their nature is well-known to persons interested in this field of inquiry. Of the above-named class of descrip- tions, the latest and best is by Mr. Bancroft, who has added a 276 CASAS GRANDES OF CHIHUAHUA. bibliographical apparatus to his account. 1 We will, therefore, confine our discussion of this group of remains to the essential facts as given by Mr. J. R. Bartlett, whose account of his researches is quite full and satisfactory. 2 These facts we will give as briefly as possible, preferring to devote our space to the new material composing . the latter part of the chapter. Several of the early writers refer to the Casas Grandes as one of the Aztec stations ; but a little intelligent study of the characteristics of the ruins, especially in the light of recent explorations in the Territories, is likely to dissipate such an opinion. The first examination of the ruins of which any reliable record is left, was by Sr. Escudero, in 1819, published in his Noticias Estadisticas del Estado de Chihuahua. A con- tributor to the Album Mexicano (torn, i, pp. 374-5) furnished a good account of the ruins as he found them in 1842. None of the hasty sketches subsequently made by several writers are worth a reference until we come to the excellent description written by Mr. Bartlett in 1851, while acting as United States Commissioner, in fixing the United States and Mexican boun- dary line. The Casas Grandes, according to Mr. Bartlett, are built of adobe or mud, in large quadrangular blocks measuring about twenty-two inches in thickness by three feet or more in length. The irregularity of the length of the blocks, how- ever, seemed to indicate that they had been formed on the wall, in situ, by means of a box open at the ends, which, when the block dried, was moved along to mould a fresh block. The mud is filled with coarse gravel from the plateau, which gives greater hardness to the material. The Casas face the cardinal points and consist of erect and fallen walls, ranging from five to thirty feet in height. The accumulation of rubbish is, however, considerable, and if the highest standing walls rest upon a com- mon level with the lowest, they will measure from forty to fifty feet in height. The edifice was discovered in ruins by the con- querors, and could not have been occupied for a century, at the 1 Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 404 et seq. 2 Personal Narrative of Explorations and Incidents in Texas, New Mexico, California, Sonora, and Chihuahua. New York, 1854, vol. ii, pp. 348 et seq. FORMER PROPORTIONS. 277 least calculation, prior to its discovery. It is, therefore, reason- able to presume that all the walls now standing were originally much higher than at present. It appears that the outer portions of the edifices were the lowest, and not more than one story in height, while the central ones were from three to six stories. The central or inner walls are better preserved, partly by their greater thickness five feet at the base and partly by the heaps of ruined walls which have fallen around them. Once prostrate, the blocks absorb the water, and in a few years are reduced to a mass of mud and gravel. It was with difficulty that Mr. Bartlett traced all the outlines of the buildings ; but close examination revealed the fact that three lofty edifices were connected into one by means of a low range of buildings, one story high, which may have merely inclosed intervening courts. The total length of this continuous edifice was at least 800 feet by 250 feet wide. A regular and continuous wall was observed on the south side, while the eastern and western fronts, with their projecting walls, were very irregular. The question of the exact number of stories is not capable of solution, as no vestige of timbers or wood now remains. The explorer could not even detect a trace of any cavities where the floor-timbers had been inserted in the walls, so decayed and washed was their condition. Many doorways remained, but the lintels having de- cayed, the tops had fallen in. Clavigero states that the edifice had " three floors with a terrace above them and without any entrance to the under floor, so that a scaling ladder is neces- sary." Garcia Conde confirms this statement as to the three stories besides a roof, 1 while both authors consider this to have been a station on the Aztec migration. Certainly, no architec- tural analogies with the remains farther south justify this opinion. Mr. Bartlett was unable to obtain but a par- ^_^^_^___ r _ n tial plan of the Casas Grandes. One class I of apartments, however, attracted his especial j^ attention, from the fact that they were evi- dently designed for granaries. They were arranged along one 1 Ensayo sobre Chihuahua, p. 74 .liiiillT 278 ADJACENT STRUCTURES. of the main walls, and measured twenty feet in length by ten in breadth. They were connected by doorways " with a small inclosure or pen in one corner, three or four feet high." Numer- ous long and narrow apartments, too contracted for sleeping or dwelling-rooms, lighted by circular apertures in the upper walls, are supposed to have been devoted to the same use. Large in- closures, too extensive in their dimensions ever to have been roofed, evidently were used as courts. Two hundred feet west of the Casas, on the plateau, are the remains of a building about 150 feet square, divided into compartments, as shown in the accompanying plan : Between this edifice and the main building, are three mounds of loose stones about fifteen feet high, which the explorers did not have time to open. For a distance of twenty leagues and covering an area of ten leagues wide along the Casas Grandes and Janos Eivers, according to Garcia Conde, are ruins resem- bling small mounds, from which jars, pot- tery in various forms, painted with white, blue and scarlet colors, corn-grinders (metates), and stone-axes have been taken. If this region was ever occupied by the Aztecs, even temporarily, this latter class of remains might more properly be attributed to them, than the Casas Grandes. Innumerable fragments of pot- tery, superior to that now manufactured by the Mexicans, are strewn everywhere in the neighborhood of the Casas Grandes. The decoration is in black, red or brown, on a white or reddish ground. Several graceful and highly artistic vases have been collected about the ruins, and stone metates, nicely hewn, have been recovered in perfect condition. On the summit of the highest mountain, ten miles southwest of the ruins, stands an ancient fortress of stone, the walls of which are said by the writer in the Album Mex/cano to have been from eighteen to twenty feet thick. The fort, which is attributed to the occu- pants of the Casas Grandes, was two or three stories, and in the centre had a high mound for the purposes of observation. Clavi- gero, who describes the fort and all of the ruins from hearsay, GROUND i'LAN OF ONE OF TjE CASAS GRANDES AT CHIHUAHUA. CASA GRANDE OF THE RIO GIL A. 279 falls into the error of supposing the Casas to have also been con- structed of stone. A short distance from the point where the 111 (meridian) of longitude crosses the Gila River, in Southern Arizona, in the valley occupied farther westward by the Pima villages, stands the most famous ruin of all the Western remains. The Casa Grande, otherwise named the Casa de Montezuma, has attracted the attention of and furnished a fruitful subject for most writers on Mexican antiquity, the majority of whom, however, have contributed nothing to our knowledge of the history or uses of the edifice. Of describers at second-hand, Mr. Bancroft has cited thirty-four authors, according to our reckoning, and to this number the reader must add that author's account and ours. This fact is an admonition to us to confine ourselves to the briefest possible statement of facts, for certainly the thirty- sixth repetition of the accounts furnished by two or three original explorers would be altogether inexcusable, were it not for the inseparable relation of the Gila Casas to the remains to be de- scribed farther on. Mr. Bancroft has treated the bibliography of the subject in his usually comprehensive manner, 1 and it only remains for us to refer the reader to the original descriptions. The first of these was written by Padre Mange, the secretary of Padre Kino, on the latter's tour of visitation to the missions of the region in 1697. a Lieutenant C. M. Bernal, of the same expedition, adds also a description. 3 Padre Sedelmair, who visited the ruin in 1744, copies literally Mange's description in his account of the Casas. 4 Father Font, who, in company with Father Garces, made an expedition conducted by Captain Anza to the Gila and the missions farther north, left a diary now preserved in the original, in the archives at Guadalajara from which Mr. Bartlett translated and published an extensive de- 1 Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 621 et seq. 2 Published in Doc. Hist. Mex., aerie iv, torn, i, pp. 282 et seq., translated in Schoolcraft's Hist, and Condition of Indian Tribes, vol. iii, pp. 300 et seq., and Bartlett's Pers. Narrative, vol. ii, pp. 281-2. Quoted in Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 622-23. 8 Bernal in Doc. Hist. Afer., serie iii, torn, iv, p. 804. 4 Sedelmair, Relation, in Doc. Hist. Mex., st'rir iii, torn, iv, p. 847, copied by Orosco y Berra, Geografia, pp. 108-10. Also cited by Bancroft. 280 DESCRIPTION OF THE CASAS. scrip tion of the Casas. 1 Of later writers, only four wrote from personal observation, namely, Emory 2 and Johnston, 3 of General Kearney's Military Expedition to California in 1846 ; Bartlett 4 in 1852, and Ross Browne in 1863. 5 These are the only original sources of information on the Casa Grande of the Gila, of which Bartlett's account may be said to be the best. However, Bancroft has contributed much to facilitate the study of the subject by his addition of a full literary apparatus. From all of these we draw the facts without further citation. Two and a half miles south of the Gila, on a slightly elevated plateau, stands the remains of the Casa Grande surrounded with a growth of mesquite trees. The ascent from the river bottom is so slight and gradual that its former inhabitants had con- structed acequias between the river and the buildings. Mr. Bartlett found three edifices within a space of one hundred and fifty yards. The larger one only was in a fair state of preserva- tion. Its four outer walls and most of the inner ones were standing. Three stories were plainly marked by the ends of the beams remaining in the walls or by the cavities which they once occupied. No doubt the building was one story, at least, higher than this indicated, as the upper walls have crumbled away considerably and filled the first story with disintegrated adobe and a mass of rubbish. The central portion or tower further- more rises eight or ten feet higher than the outer walls, and may have formed another story above the main building. At their base, the walls are between four or five feet in thickness, rising perpendicular on the inside, but on the outside tapering towards the top in a curved line. The material of the walls consists of blocks of adobe, pre- pared as in the Casas Grandes of Chihuahua, in position on the walls, probably in boxes two feet high and four feet long ; after the mud had dried sufficiently, the box was moved further along the walls and refilled. Some difference of opinion has existed as 1 Pers. Narrative, vol. ii, pp. 278-80. 3 Emory's Reconnaissance, pp. 81-3. 3 Johnston's Journal in Ibid, pp. 567-600. 4 Pers. Nar., pp. 271-284. 5 Browne's Apache Country, pp. 114-24. AGE OF THE CASA. 281 to the color of the mud employed, though all admit it to be that of the surrounding valley. Mr. Bancroft gives some attention to this point, and observes that Bernal pronounced it " white clay," and that according to Johnston it is also white with an admix- ture of lime from the vicinity. Mr. Hutton, a civil engineer who had thoroughly examined them, reported to Mr. Simpson that the surrounding earth was of a reddish color, but the ad- mixture of pebbles with the mud gave the Casa a whitish appear- ance in certain reflections. Mr. Bancroft seeks by this argument to identify this building with Castaneda's Chichilticale, which is described as having been built of red earth. 1 The outer sides of the walls were finished with a plaster similar to that which com- posed the blocks, but the inner side was covered with hard finish of such fine quality that when visited they still retained their polish after centuries of exposure. It is estimated that the edifice must have stood a hundred years at least prior to its dis- covery by the Spaniards. The inner walls are slightly thinner than the outer ones, and divide the building into five apart- ments, as shown in Mr. Bartlett's ground plan. The building measures fifty feet in length by forty in width. The three central rooms indicated are each about eight by fourteen feet, while those at each end of the edifice are ten by about thirty-two feet. The doorways in- dicated in the plan are three feet wide by five feet high, except that in the western . . i i i f , -i i GROUND PLAN. fagade, which is only two feet wide and seven or eight feet high. The main part of the edifice was m 1 Coronado, on his trip from Culiacan to the " seven cities of Cibola " in 1540, saw a roofless building called Chichilticale, or " red house." Castaneda says it was built of red earth and had formerly been occupied by people from Cibola. This is of interest, especially since it is quite certain that the seven citicn visited were identical with the Pueblo towns around old Zuni on the Zuni River in New Mexico (see Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 673-4, and Morgan in North American Review, April, 1869). The best treatment of Coronado's march is by Simpson in Smithsonian Report, 1859, pp. 309 et seq. See further Geut&Aetta, in Ternaux-campans, Voy., serie i, torn, ix, pp. 40-1, 161-2. Gallatin in Am. Ethnol. Soc. Trans., vol. ii, aud Whipple in Pac. R. R. Report, vol. iii.' 282 RUINS OP THE GILA VALLEY. probably thirty feet high, while the tower rose still ten feet higher. Padre Kino found a floor in an adjoining ruin still perfect, the supporting timbers of which were round and about five inches in diameter, while the floor proper was formed by placing cross-sticks on the joist and covering them with a laysr of adobe. Mr. Browne observed the marks of a blunt axe still plainly visible in the timbers of cedar or sabine which had been thus employed, while their charred ends furnish the only clue to the cause of the ruin of the edifice, a fact suggestive of the ravages of the savage Apaches. No stairways or other means of ascent were discovered, and it is inferred that ladders were employed upon the outside as among the modern Pueblos. Near the main building, to the south-west, Mr. Bartlett dis- covered another Casa in ruins, and with difficulty traced its ground plan ; while a third was so completely decayed as to leave no certain outline of its form. To the north-west about two hundred yards, was a circular embankment eighty or one hundred yards in circumference, which Mr. Bartlett supposes to have been used as a stock inclosure. A few yards farther north Mr. Johnston observed a terrace, two hundred by three hundred feet and five feet high, and having a summit platform seventy- two feet square, from which an excellent view of the valley is afforded. This monument is unlike any other found among the New Mexican remains. The entire valley is strewn with heaps of rubbish and ruined adobe edifices, which indicate that once the whole region was thickly populated by this remarkable people. Mr. Bartlett found broken metates (corn-grinders), and innumerable fragments of pottery painted tastefully with red, white, lead color, and black. The figures were geometrical, and many of the vessels had been decorated on the inside a practice not in vogue with the modern peoples of the Gila Valley. The finish was also far superior to that of modern pottery. The Casa Grande, when last observed by Mr. Browne, was fast going to pieces, the moisture having undermined some parts of the outer walls, which were only kept erect by their great thickness. In 1873, Mr. Bancroft learned that the edifice was still standing, but it is evident that it must soon share the fate of its fallen RUINS OF THE QILA VALLEY. 283 neighbors. It is certain that this Pueblo civilization spread itself over a large tract of country north of the Gila Valley in the basin of the Rio Salado or Salinas, the principal tributary of the Gila. Numerous buildings similar to those previously described, have been noticed by different writers on the Bio CASA GRANDE OF THE GILA VALLEY. (As sketched by Ross Browne in 1863.) Salado and its tributaries. The ruins of large edifices surrounded by smaller ones are described by Sedelmair (discovered in 1744) as standing between the Gila and Salado. 1 Velarde has also cited the remains of similar structures at the junction of Salado and Verde and of the Salado and Gila. 2 We cannot refer to all of the remains reported in this region, ' Relation in Doc. Hist. Hex., serie iii, torn, iv, p. 847. Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iv, p. 634. Velarde in ibid., serie iv, torn, i, p. 363, and Native Races, vol. iv, p. ( 284 TRANSITION FROM THE ADOBE TO STONE STRUCTURES. especially since most of them are indescribable and shapeless heaps of ruins. One edifice, however, was observed by Mr. Bart- lett, two hundred feet in length by sixty or eighty feet in width ; and from the accumulation of debris, it is estimated that the edifice must have been three or four stories in height. This was but one of several similar heaps of ruins observed in the immediate vicinity. This locality, distant thirty-five miles from the river's mouth, was evidently at one time the site of a populous city. The remains of numerous works, probably of a public character, such as irrigating canals one of which is now more than twenty feet wide and four feet deep and several miles long, in the con- struction of which it was necessary to cut down the bank of the plateau occur in considerable numbers. The whole region is strewn with fragments of broken pottery of fine workmanship. 1 M. Leroux, in 1854, discovered on the Bio Verde ruins of stone houses and regular fortifications which did not appear to have been occupied for centuries. The walls were of solid masonry of rectangular form, usually from twenty to thirty paces in length, and the style of architecture similar to that of the Casa Grande of the Gila. Still there was sufficient resemblance to the Pueblos of the Moquis to indicate a transition from the southern to the northern style of Pueblo dwelling. The sudden change in the material employed that from adobe to stone in large blocks, well hewn is rather remarkable. The ruins are found with more or less continuity between Fort McDowell and Prescott. 2 Mr. Bancroft, after citing the above, expresses regret at his inability to secure information in the possession of officers in the Arizona service. 3 Lieutenant Whipple describes extensive ruins on the small streams forming the head-waters of the Rio Verde. Both stone and adobe structures were numerous, and the walls usually were found to be about five feet thick. 4 Emory has described some 1 Bartlett's Pers. Nar., vol. ii, pp. 242-8. Johnston in Emory's Reconnais- sance, pp. 596-600. Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iv, p. 636. 2 Whipple, Ewbank and Turner, in Pacific R. R. Report, vol. iii, pp. 14, 15. 3 Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iv, p. 636. 4 Whipple in Pacific R. R. Report, vol. iii, pp. 91-4. BUIXS IN THE GRAND CANON. 285 Pueblo buildings of singular structure on the upper Gila and its tributaries ; most interesting of these is one with a laby- rinthine plan of inner circular walls. The region also abounds in rock inscriptions of a rude though no doubt conventional character. 1 It is quite natural to suppose that remains of this ancient people would have been found extensively on the greatest river of the region the Colorado. Mr. Bancroft passes the sub- ject with the statement that "no relics of antiquity are reported by reliable authorities," and fitly explains that it is unlikely, in view of the peculiarity of the region, that none will ever be found in the immediate vicinity of the river. 2 Whipple and his associates state that " upon the lower part of the Rio Colorado no traces of permanent dwellings have been discovered." 3 Since the publication of Mr. Bancroft's fourth volume, the public has been made acquainted with the details of Major J. W. Powell's exploration of the Grand Canon of the Colorado. 4 The descent of the river was accomplished by the Major and his com- panions in the summer of 1869, amid dangers so appalling and privations so distressing, that we need not hesitate in pro- nouncing it an exhibition of heroism having few parallels in the history of exploration. The Major has since repeated his perilous journey of which we have enjoyed the pleasure of a verbal description in part from the explorer himself. Groups of ruins were discovered in the gloomy depths of the Grand Canon at three different points. In referring to them we will reverse the order in which they were discovered. A hundred or more miles (for we are unable to estimate the distance from the account) above the Virgen River, where the granite walls rise perpendicularly from the water's edge thousands of feet, the canon widened somewhat and a considerable group of ruined buildings were discovered on a terrace of trap. There had evi- 1 Emory's Reconnaissance, pp. 63-9, 80, 133-4. Ibid., pp. 581-96. Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 638-9, has copied three plans. * Native Races, vol. iv, p. 640. 3 Whipple, Ewbank and Turner, in Pacific R. R. Report. 4 First published in Seribner's Monthly, vol. is, Nos. 3, 4 and 5, for January, February and March, 1875. 286 EXPLORATION OF THE CANON OF THE COLORADO. dent]y been quite a village in that solitary spot, shut in by hun- dreds of miles of granite walls either up or down the river's course. Mealing stones and fragments of broken pottery were scattered about the ruins, and so many beautiful flint chips that the discoverers conjectured that it might have been the home of an ancient arrow-maker. Major Powell found on a natural shelf in the rock, back of the ruin, a globular basket, badly broken, and so decayed that when taken up it fell to pieces. 1 Some dis- tance farther up the river, the grim walls of more than a mile in height parted to admit the clear waters of a stream named by the explorers " Bright Angel River." In a little gulch above the creek the foundations of two or three Pueblo houses were discovered. They were built of irregular cut stones, laid in mortar. An old, deeply- worn mealing stone and a great quan- tity of pottery were found, and old trails were observed worn into the rock. 2 It cannot fail, however, to excite the wonder of the reader to learn that Major Powell found ruined pueblos hundreds of miles 1 "Canons of the Colorado," in Scribner's Monthly, vol. ix, p. 528. Powell's Explorations of the Colorado Ricer of the West. Washington. 1875. 4to. 2 " It was ever a source of wonder to us why these ancient people sought such inaccessible places for their homes. They were doubtless an agricultural race, but there were no lands here of any considerable extent which they could have cultivated. To the west of Oraiby, and of the towns of the Province of Tusayan, in northern Arizona, the inhabitants have actually built little terraces along the face of the cliff, where a spring gushes out, and there made their site for gardens. It is possible that the ancient inhabitants of this place made their lands in the same way. But why should they seek such spots ? Surely the country was not so crowded with population as to demand the utilization of a region like this. The only solution which suggests itself is this : We know that for a century or two after the settlement of Mexico, many expeditions were sent into the country now comprising Arizona and New Mexico for the purpose of bringing the town-building people under the dominion of the Spanish govern- ment. Many of their villages were destroyed, and the inhabitants fled to regions at that time unknown, and there are traditions among the people who now inhabit the pueblos which remain, that the canons were these unknown lands. It may be that these buildings were erected at that time. Sure it is that they had a much more modern appearance than the ruins scattered over Nevada, Utah, Colorado, Arizona and New Mexico." Major Powell in Scribner, vol. ix, p. 525. Id., Explorations of the Colorado River of the West, pp. 87, 88. ANCIENT STAIRWAY IN COLORADO CANON. 287 farther up that dismal, almost subterranean river. Not far be- low the foot of the Cataract Cauon, and a considerable distance above Escalante River, in Southern Utah, the explorers discov- ered on a wall two hundred feet above the river, but removed from the water by a narrow plain, an old stone house of good masonry. The stones were laid in mortar with much regularity. It had been a three-story building, the first of which still re- mained in good condition, the second being much broken, and but little being left of the third. Flint chips, beautiful arrow- heads and broken pottery abounded in the vicinity. The faces of the cliffs were also covered with etchings. Fifteen miles farther down the river another group was discovered, the princi- pal building of which was in the shape of an L, with five rooms on the ground floor ; one in the angle and two in each wing. In the centre of the angle there was a deep excavation, doubtless an underground chamber for religious services, known as an Estufa. Major Powell considers these remains the work of a branch of the people now occupying the province of Tusayan in northern Arizona. These Moqui peoples will be noticed farther on. In the neighborhood of the last-named ruin, the Major found a tall, pyramidal work of nature, formed by smooth rock- mounds, rising one above another. On climbing this he ob- served that this natural eminence had been used as an outlook by the people of the Pueblo. A stairway cut in the rock by human hands and an old ladder resting against a perpendicular rock were discovered. 1 The Colorado Chiquito and its tributaries flows through the very heart of the Pueblo country. One hundred miles above its junction with the Rio Colorado, Whipple, Sitgreaves and others, found numerous ruins, crowning nearly every prominent point in the valley. The pottery of the region is unlike that usually met with, in that it is ornamented with 1 Canons of the Colorado, in Scribner's Monthly, vol. ix, p. 402; Powell's Exploration of the Colorado River of the West, pp. 68-9. Major Powell on the 125th page of his report on the Colorado, gives a brief description of remains in a side canon, a few miles from the great river. 288 REMAINS IN VALLEY OF THE COLORADO CHIQUITO. impressions and raised work, instead of being painted. 1 Forty miles farther up the river colossal ruins were discovered standing on the summit of a sandstone bluff. The walls, such as remained standing, were ten feet thick, while the building measured 360 feet in length by 120 in width. 2 With the exception of the remains of stone-houses, at the junction of the Rio Puerco with the Colorado Chiquito, the only aboriginal remains reported are pottery, scattered arrow-heads and numerous rock inscriptions. The next tributary of the Colorado Chiquito the Zufii River is celebrated because of its ancient and modern Pueblo struc- tures. For fifty miles from the mouth of the Zufii, the anti- quarian who could, might read the history of this ancient people, spread out upon the imperishable cliffs the parchment of Nature's children. Within eight miles of the inhabited Pueblo towns, numerous ruins are encountered. 3 Here, within a few miles, the almost mythical " seven cities of Cibola," described by Coronado in 1540, and by Marco de Niga the year previous, are demonstrated to have been situated. 4 Zufii itself is the Granada of the devoted and romantic conquerors. In the centre of a plain upon a commanding eminence, stands the inhabited Pueblo of Zufii. Its frontage is upon the river of the same name, while but a short distance in the background, the mesa terminates in tall cliffs of metamorphic rock several hundred feet high. The town is built in blocks, with terrace-shaped houses, usually three stories high, in which the lower stories do service as the platform for those immediately following them. Access is obtained by means of ladders reaching to the roof or terrace, formed upon the first story of each of the houses. The town is very compactly built, many of the streets passing under the upper stories of houses. The whole is divided into four squares, and the houses in each are continuously joined 1 Sitgreaves' Report, Zuni and Colorado Rivers, pp. 8-9 ; Whipple, Pacific R. R. Report, vol. iii, pp. 46-50 ; Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 642-3. 2 Whipple, Pacific R. R. Report, vol. iii, pp. 76-7. 3 Sitgreaves, Zuni Ex., p. 6 ; Whipple, in Pacific R. R. Report, vol. iii, pp. 39, 71 ; Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 645, 673. 4 See authorities cited on page 281, note 1, of this chapter. ZUNI. 289 together. The building material employed is stone, plastered with mud. 1 A little more than two miles south-east of Zuni, the ancient ruined Pueblo of the same name is situated on an elevated mesa of a mile in width, the precipitous descent from which, upon all sides, measures a thousand feet. The ruins of old Zuni are surrounded with a growth of cedars, and cover several acres of ground. The walls, constructed of small sand- stone blocks laid in mud-mortar, are only eighteen inches thick and are sadly dilapidated from age, only twelve feet marking their highest point of present elevation. Still, there is a deeper mystery about this antiquated ruin, for beneath the walls now standing, others are found of a more ancient city, whose walls were six feet thick, which perished either of age or by the hand of the destroyer, before the present was begun. The ascent to the ruin is a winding and difficult path, guarded with stone battlements at different points. At a sacred spring near Zufli, Whipple found vases standing inverted upon an adobe wall. " Many of these were white, well-proportioned, and of elegant forms. Upon their inner and outward surfaces they were curi- ously painted to represent frogs, tadpoles, tortoises, butterflies, and rattlesnakes." The tufted snakes on one of the vases are pronounced almost unique in America. 2 Twelve miles above Zuni, at Ojo del Pescado, four or five ruined towns are found, but so badly decayed as to furnish little clue to their plan. Two of them, however, are constructed elliptically around a spring, and present a circumference of about 800 to 1000 feet. Two- thirds of a mile down the river, ruined pueblos in a fair state of preservation, with two stories standing, are described as covering an area of 150 by 200 yards. At the time of Mollhau- sen's visit, the roofs and fire-places were in quite good condition. 3 1 See Whipple, in Pacific R. R. Report, vol. iii, p. 67, with beautiful full page view. Simpson's Jour, of Mil. Recon., pp. 90-3 ; Bancroft's Notice Races, vol. iv, pp. 645, 667, 673. 1 Whipple in Pacific R.R. Report, vol. iii, pp. 68, 70, 66, 40-8, views of old Zuni, and sacred spring; M511h.ni in. Hiixm in die Felsengebirge N. Am., torn, ii, pp. 196, 402 ; Id., Tagebuch, pp. 283-4, 278, with cut ; Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 645-7, witli cut. * Mo'llhausen's Journey, vol. ii, p. 82 : Whipple et al., in Pacific R. R. Report, 19 290 RUINS AT OJO DEL PESCADO. A square estufa, still under roof, and numerous rock inscrip- tions, were observed. In this instance we are furnished with abundant evidence that the destruction of this people never was a wholesale one, but that gradually they are succumbing to their unpropitious surroundings a land which is fast be- coming a howling wilderness, with its scourging sands and roaming savage Bedouin the Apaches. One more locality in this region merits attention. Eighteen miles south-east of the sources of the Zuni River, stands a sandstone rock three hundred feet high, which at a distance resembles a Moorish fortress. The Spaniards named it El Moro. It is also known as " Inscription Rock," because of the Spanish and Indian inscrip- tions which cover its smooth face. Simpson has copied some of them, which is quite fortunate, since later explorers have found many of them almost effaced. The ruins of two buildings are found on the summit, which is reached by a difficult path. The large group is in the form of a rectangle, measuring 307 by 206 feet. The walls, faced with sandstone blocks, remain standing to the height of six and eight feet. The other group is separated from the first by a deep ravine, and is found upon the very brink of the outer precipice. A circular estufa thirty-one feet in diameter was also noticed. Cedar timbers were found in the walls, and broken pottery in abundance. 1 About one hundred miles in a north north-easterly direction from Zuni, in longitude 108 and latitude 36, the most remarkable of the pueblo ruins are sit- uated. These are on the north bank of the Chaco River, a tributary of the Rio San Juan, a stream the affluents of which are noted for a greater number of pueblo and cliff-dwellers' ruins than are found elsewhere. Lieutenant Simpson has described the ruins of the Chaco, eleven in number, occurring within a distance of twenty-five miles. The first of these met with in vol. iii, p. 39 ; Simpson's Jour. Mil. Recon., pp. 95-7 ; Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 647-8. 1 Simpson's Jour. Mil. Recon., pp. 89-109, 60-1, 65-74, 100, with cuts, views and plans ; Whipple, Ewbank and Turner, in Pacific R. R. Report, vol. iii, pp. 22, 52, 63-4 ; see also Mollhausen's Tagebuch and Journey; Bancroft, vol. iv. pp. 645-50. PUEBLOS OF THE CHACO VALLEY. 291 coming from the south is called at present (we presume in the absence of the knowledge of the true name) the Pueblo Pintado. The most remarkable feature of this great structure is the beauty and precision of the masonry. The fine, hard gray sand- stone blocks are quite uniformly three inches in thickness and are laid without mortar, always breaking joints. The crevices between the ends of the blocks are filled with very thin pieces of stone, not over a quarter of an inch thick. The walls of the pueblo now standing, are at their greatest height, thirty feet, and furnish evidence from the marks of the floor-timbers that the building was three stories. The walls are between two and three feet thick at the base, though this is diminished with each succeeding story by a jog of a few inches, upon which the flooring timbers rest. These are from six to eleven inches in diameter, always of uniform size in the same room. On these beams small round sticks are laid transversely, and these in turn covered with thin cedar strips, lying transversely of the round sticks. In some rooms the chinks in the floor were filled with small stones and the whole covered with a layer of mortar. One room, however, had a floor of smooth cedar boards, seven inches wide and three-quarters of an inch thick. The edges and ends were squarely cut, and their smooth surfaces indicate that they were polished by being rubbed with flat stones. The size of these ruins may be better understood when we state that five buildings measured in circumference respectively 872, 700, 1700, 1300 and 1300 feet ; while the number of rooms, still well-defined on the ground floor of each, is 72, 99, 112, 124 and 139. Some of these buildings undoubtedly had as high as a thousand rooms, while the smallest of them probably contained half that number. The smallest apartments are five feet square, while the largest are eight by fourteen feet. The ground plan of the buildings of this valley have three tiers of rooms, while one building, the Pueblo Bonito, has four tiers of apartments. The usual form of the buildings corresponds to three sides of a rectangle, with the fourth (one of the long sides of the figure) left unbuilt (except that in some cases it was inclosed by a semi-circular stone wall), thus affording a partially enclosed court of large dimen- 292 PUEBLO ARCH. sions. The exterior walls are in all cases perpendicular, thus differing from the pueblos farther south. The terracing in the Chaco structures is upon the inside (court side) of the buildings. In some of the buildings, however, the angles of the quad- rangle are rounded, and in one instance that of the Penasca Blanco the structure is elliptical. From the nature of the plan of any of these buildings it is evident that many of the apartments on the ground floor were dark, and were probably used for granaries and store-rooms. There are no doors what- ever in the outer walls, and no windows except in the upper stories. Windows and doors opening into the courts are, on the contrary, numerous in all the stories but the first. The doors are quite small, in many cases not exceeding two and a half feet square. The lintels of the doors and windows are in most cases stone slabs, but in some instances are small round timbers tied together with withes. A remarkable feature of the construction is the presence of the Yucatan arch formed of overlapping stones, illustrations of which may be seen in our next chapter. Dr. Hammond, a companion of Lieutenant Simpson, has minutely described a room of very perfect finish. 1 Each edifice was pro- vided with the sacred estufa, and some of the houses had as many as seven, circular in form, excavated several feet deep in the earth and enclosed with circular walls. One in the Pueblo Bonito was of remarkable size, having been sixty feet in diameter, extending twelve feet below the surface and rising two or three stories high. Lieutenant Simpson found in close proximity to one of the ruins an excavation in the cliif which had been enclosed with a front wall of well-laid stone and mortar, thus associating one of the simplest of the cave-dwellings to which we shall refer presently, with one of the most extensive and per- fect of the Pueblo buildings ; a fact of no little value in identi- fying the architects of both as one and the same. 2 This intro- 1 In Simpson's Jour. Mil. Eecon., pp. 131-3, and copied in a note by Ban- croft, vol. iv, p. 657. 2 See on Chaco ruins, Simpson's Jour, Mil. Eecon., pp. 34-43, 131-3. Dome- nech's Deserts, vol. i, pp. 199-200, 379-81, 385. Baldwin's Anc. Am., pp. 86-9, cut ; Bancroft's Native Raws, vol. iv, pp. 652-62, which we have found of valu- THE CLIFF-DWELLERS. 293 duces us to another class of ruins, which, with a couple of exceptions, were not discovered prior to the summer of 1874. We refer to the cliff-dwellings, the most remarkable habitations ever occupied by man. The descriptions of them seem more suitable to form parts of the most romantic works of fiction than of sober and scientific memoirs from the pens of govern- ment explorers. One hundred miles westward from the ruins of the Chaco lies the Chelly Valley or Canon. The Chelly is one of the tributaries of the Rio San Juan from the south, having its source in the Navajo country. The Chelly Canon is described as from one hundred and fifty to nine hundred feet wide, with perpendicular sides between three hundred and five hundred feet high. Simpson in 1849 found several caves built up in front with stone and mortar in a side canon. About four miles from its foot or mouth he observed on a shelf fifty feet high, accessible only by ladders, a stone ruin, the plan of which resembles that of the Chaco Valley pueblos, except that it was constructed on a considerably smaller scale. Three miles fur- ther up the canon a double ruin of an extraordinary nature was discovered. At the base of the canon stood an ancient pueblo in ruins, but with parts of the first and second stories still erect. Fifty feet in a perpendicular line, above and immediately back of the first edifice, in a shelf, or in the mouth of a cavern in the canon's walls, stood another building constructed of sandstone and mortar, and measuring one hundred and forty-five by forty- five feet, with walls eighteen feet high still standing. Broken pottery was plentiful, as around all the ruins we have described. The building was lighted by square windows and provided with a circular estufa. 1 The most surprising results in all the history of archaeological exploration in this country were obtained in September, 1874, by a party connected with the United States Geological and able assistance ; especially see Ruins of the Chaco Gallon, examined in 1877, by W. H. Jackson, in Tenth Annual Report of U. 8. Geol. Survey. Washington, 1879. Best account. 1 Simpson's Jour. Mil. Eecon., pp. 74-5, plates 53-4. copied by Bancroft, vol. iv, p. 652 ; also see Domenech's Deserts, vol. i, p. 201, and Annual SV. M, ZHwwv.,1850, p. 362. 094 CANON OF THE RIO MANCOS. Geographical Survey Corps. This party was composed of only three persons, Mr. W. H. Jackson and Mr. Ingersoll with their guide, Captain John Moss, a resident of La Plata, who possessed both a knowledge of the country and an acquaintance with the language of the Indians. In the south-western corner of Colorado, the canons of two of the tributaries of the San Juan were exam- ined, namely, the valleys of the Eivers Mancos and McElmo. 1 The former stream rises among the western foothills of the Sierra La Plata, and flows south-westerly through fertile valleys to a great table-land known as the " Mesa Verde," thence to the San Juan near the crossing of the boundary lines of the four territories. In the upper valley of the Mancos, between the mountains and the mesa, groups of undistinguishablc ruins were discovered in great numbers. An examination of the shapeless heaps revealed foundations composed of great square blocks of adobe. The great multitude of these heaps of masonry overgrown with pines indicates a general and unsparing destruction of the houses of the people who once inhabited the valley, at the hands of their enemies. The canon through the Mesa Verde is quite uniformly two hundred yards wide, with perpendicular walls of grayish cretaceous sandstone ranging from six hundred to one thousand feet in height. Numbers of the mounds of ruined adobe were met with at each advance into the canon, and upon promontories jutting out towards the stream, remains of stone walls were seen as high as fifty feet from the river's bed. Every step revealed great quantities of broken pottery, and with this statement we will let the subject of these fragmentary relics of the by-gone civilization rest for the present. One of the first cliff houses discovered by the explorers is a most interesting structure, the position of which, over six hun- dred feet from the bottom of the cafion in a niche of the wall, 1 W. H. Jackson in Bulletin of U. 8. Geol. and Oeog. Survey of the Terri- tories, 2d series, No. 1, Washington, 1875, and in the Annual Report of the same, Washington, 1876, pp. 369 et seq. A condensed though excellent account is furnished by Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 718 et seq. Also a condensed account by Prof. Edwin A. Barber in Congres des Americanistes, Luxembourg, 1877. Seconde Session, torn, i, pp. 22-88. Also Ibid., The Ancient Pueblos, or Ruins of the Valley of the Rio San Juan. Parts I, II. CLIFF-HOUSE OF THE RIO MANGOS. 295 furnishes a significant commentary on the straits to which this sorely-pressed people were driven by their enemies. Five hun- dred feet of the ascent to this aerial dwelling was comparatively easy, but a hundred feet of almost perpendicular wall confronted the party, up which they could never have climbed but for the fact that they found a series of steps cut in the face of the rock leading up to the ledge upon which the house was built. CLIFF-HOUSE IN THE CA^ON OF THE MANGOS. This ledge was ten feet wide by twenty feet in length, with a a vertical space between it and the overhanging rock of fifteen feet. The house occupied only half this space, the remainder having been used as an esplanade, and once was inclosed by a balustrade resting on abutments, built partly upon the sloping face of the precipice below. The house was but twelve feet high and two-storied. Though the walls did not reach up to the rock above, it is uncertain whether it ever had any other roof. The ground plan showed a front room of six by nine feet in dimensions, in the rear of which were two smaller rooms, each 296 CLIFF-HOUSE OF THE KIO MANGOS. measuring five by seven feet. The left-hand room projected along the cliff, beyond the front room, in the form of an L. The rock of the cliff served as the rear wall of the house. The cedar beams upon which the upper floor had rested had nearly all disappeared. The door opening on the esplanade was but twenty by thirty inches in size, while a window in the same story was but twelve inches square. A window in the upper story, which commands an extended view down the canon, corresponded in dimensions and position with the door below. The lintels of the window were small straight cedar sticks laid close to- gether, upon which the stones rested. Opposite this window was another and smaller one, opening into a semicircular cistern, formed by a wall inclosing the angle formed by the side wall of the house against the rock, and holding about two and a half hogsheads. The bottom of the reservoir was reached by descend- ing on a series of cedar pegs about one foot apart, and leading downward from the window. The workmanship of the structure was of a superior order ; the perpendiculars were true ones and the angles carefully squared. The mortar used was of a grayish white color, very compact and adhesive. Some little taste was evinced by the occupants of this human swallow's nest. The front rooms were plastered smoothly with a thin layer of firm adobe cement, colored a deep maroon, while a white band, eight inches wide, had been painted around the room at both floor and ceiling. An examination of the immediate vicinity revealed the ruins of half a dozen similar dwellings in the ledges of the cliffs, some of them occupying positions the inaccessibility of which must ever be a wonder, when considered as places of residence for human beings. Half-way down the canon, one of Mr. Jack- son's party discovered a rather remarkable watch-tower, which, because of the accumulations of debris, he was not able to ac- curately measure, though approximate figures were given. Since his visit, the tower has been thoroughly examined by Mr. W. H. Holmes, to whose work in this field we will refer on a future page. Mr. Holmes' measurements and ground-plan are, there- fore, substituted for those of Mr. Jackson. The diameter of the outer wall is forty-three feet, that WATCH-TOWER OF THE MANCOS. 297 of the inner, twenty-five feet. The outer wall is still standing to the height of twelve feet at one point, and is in a fair state of preservation, with a thickness of twenty-one inches, and has the stones dressed to the curve. The ring-shaped space be- tween the inner and outer wall is estimated to have contained ten compartments, two of which at present have complete walls. GROUND PLAN OF TOWER IN THE MANCOS CANON. No door or window was observed in the outer wall, and it is supposed that access was obtained by means of a ladder. Two nearly rectangular openings were found connecting the outer apartments with the central part of the tower, which no doubt was used as an estufa. 1 Mr. Jackson, after leaving the tower which Mr. Holmes has so fully described (of which the above is but a condensed account, saw similar towers on a somewhat 1 Bulletin No. 1, vol. ii, pp. 11, 12. 298 NEST-LIKE DWELLINGS. smaller scale. His next discovery in the face of the vertical rock, which here ran up from the bottom of the canon and at a height of from fifty to one hundred feet, were a number of nest- like habitations, one of which is figured in the cut. The cliff-house in this case was reached by its occupants from the top of the canon. The walls are pronounced as firm as the rock upon which they were built. The stones were very CLIFF-DWELLING OF THE MANCOS CA&ON. regular in size, and the chinking-in of small chips of stone rendered the surface of the wall remarkably smooth and well finished. The dwelling measured fifteen feet in length, five feet in width, and six feet in height. A short distance below this little dwelling, five or six cave-like crevices were found walled up in front with very perfect walls, rendered smooth by chinking. Three miles farther down the canon, the party discovered at heights ranging from six hundred and eight hundred feet above their heads, some curious and unique little dwellings sandwiched in among the crevices of the horizontal strata of the rock of CLIFF-DWELLINGS OF THE MANCOS CANON. 299 CLIFF-DWELLING OF THE MANCOS CANON. which the bluff was composed. Access to the summit of the bluff, a thousand feet high, was obtained by a circuitous path through a side canon, and the houses themselves could only be reached at the utmost peril of being precipitated to the bottom of the dizzy abyss by crawl- ing along a ledge twenty inches wide and only high enough for a man in a creep- ing position. This led to the wider shelf on which the houses rested. The perfection of the finish was especially noticeable in one of these houses, which was but fifteen feet long and seven feet high, with a side wall run- ning back in a semicircular sweep. In every instance the party found the elevated cliff-houses situated on the western side of the canon with their outlook toward the east, while the build- ings at the bottom of the canon were indiscriminately built on both sides of the river. A circular watch-tower, which may be said to serve as a fair type of others met with at irregular intervals, is shown in the cut (p. 300). The tower remained standing to a height of twenty feet. Its diameter measured twelve feet and the thickness of the walls sixteen inches, the stones being of uniform size and smoothly dressed to the curve of the circle. A rectangular structure, divided into two apartments, each about fifteen feet square, once joined the tower, but now is in ruins, all but the founda- tion. It is supposed that this edifice was built over a large sub- terranean keep or place of defence. The exploring party here emerged from the cafion, and could discern, as they glanced down the valley of the Rio Mancos, which now turned towards the west, mounds of shapeless ruins at short distances from one another as far as the eye could reach. Bearing around the Mesa to the west, the party encamped upon the site of the most extensive mass of ruins yet found in 300 CIRCULAR WATCH-TOWER. United States territory, "known as the Aztec Springs." As Mr. Jackson's description is but partial, we defer the treatment of this locality until we take up the explorations of Mr. Holmes, already mentioned. Four miles distant from "Aztec Springs," the party reached a river-bed, dry during most of the year, and known as the McElmo, which, when it flows at all, empties into the San Juan farther to the west. On the mesa, above this river-bed, a tower resembling that first met in the Mancos was WATCH-TOWER OF THE CA$X>N OF THE MANCOS. observed, but of much greater size, having a diameter of fifty feet. Adjoining the tower were the ruins of large subdivided buildings resembling the community dwellings of the Moquis and the old ruins of the Chaco. This group of ruins was very extensive and complicated, literally occupying all the available space in the vicinity. Half a dozen miles down the canon of the McElmo, several of the little nest-like dwellings peculiar to the Mancos were seen perched forty or fifty feet above the valley. A couple of miles beyond these, the tower shown in the cut (p. 301) was discovered standing on the summit of a great block of sandstone forty feet high, and detached from the bluff back of it. SQUARE TOWER ON THE McELMO. 301 The building which surmounts this rocky pedestal is square and about fifteen feet high at present. Windows open toward the -north and east, the directions from which the enemies of this people, according to tradition, came down upon them. A wall at the base of the rock is mostly in ruins and covered with debris from the building above. Immediately beyond this point the boundary line into Utah was crossed, and two or three miles distant the party came upon a very interesting group, a historic SQUARE TOWER ON THE MCELMO. spot in the career of this ancient race. In the centre of the widening valley stands a solitary butte of dark-red sandstone, upon a perfectly smooth floor of the same, dipping gently towards the centre of the valley. This butte or cristone is about one hundred feet high and three hundred feet in length, of irregular form. All around the rock are remains of stone walls which indicate an extensive structure and complicated system of walls and towers. At the back of the rock two remains attract special attention. One wall forming the corner of a building near the base of the rock, seems to have served as an approach 302 ORIGIN AND FATE OF THE CLIFF-DWELLERS. to the larger house up in the side of the butte. This structure is about eighteen feet in length and twelve feet in height, nearly reaching to the top of the rock. Part of the walls have fallen, but those standing show a finish surpassing those of any struc- ture previously discovered in the region. In front is a single aperture eighteen by twenty-four inches. On top of the rock are remains of masonry, but too badly ruined to indicate their original form. All the crevices and irregularities in the faces of the CLIFF HOUSE IN THE CANON OF THE McELMO. butte had been smoothly walled up ; it is supposed, to make its ascent impossible. In the vicinity a tower with a rounded corner and twelve feet in diameter by twenty feet high stood in a dry creek bed. We remarked that this was a historic locality, as certainly it was if the legend obtained by Captain Moss from an old man among the Moquis is reliable. Mr. Ingersoll has rendered it in the New York Tribune for November 3d, 1874, as follows : "Formerly, the aborigines inhabited all this country we had been over as far west as the head- waters of the San Juan, as far north as the Eio Dolores, west some distance into Utah, and south and south-west throughout Arizona and on down into Mexico. They had lived there from time immemorial since the earth was a THEIR TRADITION. 3Q3 small island, which augmented as its inhabitants multiplied. They cultivated the valley, fashioned whatever utensils and tools they needed very neatly and handsomely out of clay and wood and stone, not knowing any of the useful metals ; built their homes and kept their flocks and herds in the fertile river- bottoms, and worshipped the sun. They were an eminently peaceful and prosperous people, living by agriculture rather than by the chase. About a thousand years ago, however, they were visited by savage strangers from the North, whom they treated hospitably. Soon these visits became more frequent and annoy- ing. Then their troublesome neighbors ancestors of the present Utes began to forage upon them, and, at last, to massacre them and devastate their farms ; so, to save their lives at least, they built houses high upon the cliffs where they could store food and hide away till the raiders left. But one summer the invaders did not go back to their mountains as the people expected, but brought their families with them and settled down. So, driven from their homes and lands, starving in their little niches on the high cliffs, they could only steal away during the night, and wander across the cheerless uplands. To one who has traveled these steppes, such a flight seems terrible, and the mind hesitates to picture the suffering of the sad fugitives. At the Cristone they halted and probably found friends, for the rocks and caves are full of the nests of these human wrens and swallows. Here they collected, erected stone fortifications and watch-towers, dug reservoirs in the rocks to hold a supply of water, which in all cases is precarious in this latitude, and once more stood at bay. Their foes came, and for one long month fought and were beaten back, and returned day after day to the attack as merciless and inevitable as the tide. Meanwhile, the families of the defenders were evacuating and moving south, and bravely did their pro- tectors shield them till they were all safely a hundred miles away. The besiegers were beaten back and went away. But the narrative tells us that the hollows of the rocks were filled to the brim with the mingled blood of conquerors and conquered, and red veins of it ran down into the canon. It was such a victory as they could not afford to gain again, and they were glad, 304 RUINS OF THE HOVENWEEP. when the long fight was over, to follow their wives and little ones to the south. There, in the deserts of Arizona, on well-nigh unapproachable isolated bluifs, they built new towns, and their few descendants, the Moquis, live in them to this day, preserv- ing more carefully and purely the history and veneration of their forefathers than their skill or wisdom. It was from one of their old men that this traditional sketch was obtained." In a side canon, a tower eighteen feet high was seen perched on a huge block of sandstone which had fallen from the top of the mesa and lodged on a projecting shelf of rock, midway from top or bottom. Eight or ten miles westward of the McElmo, Mr. RUINS OF THE HOVENWEEP. Jackson and his party discovered on a stream known as the Hovenweep, the ruins of a city. Mr. Jackson's description is as follows : " The stream referred to sweeps the foot of a rocky sandstone ledge, some forty or fifty feet in height, upon which is built the highest and better-preserved portion of the settlement. Its semicircular sweep conforms to the ledge, each little house of the outer circle being built close upon its edge. Below the level of these upper houses some ten or twelve feet, and within the semicircular sweep, are seven distinctly marked depressions, each separated from the other by rocky debris, the lower or first series probably of small community houses. Upon either flank, and founded upon rocks, are buildings similar in size and in other respects to the large ones on the line above. As paced off, ADDITIONAL EXPLORATIONS BY MR. JACKSON. 305 the upper or convex surface measured one hundred yards in length. Each little apartment is small and narrow, averaging six feet in width and eight feet in length, the walls being eighteen inches in thickness. The stones of which the entire group is built are dressed to nearly uniform size and laid in mortar. A peculiar feature here is in the round corners, one at least appear- ing upon nearly every little house. They are turned with consid- erable care and skill, being true curves solidly bound together." Here the labors of Mr. Jackson's party ended for the year 1874, but the work was again resumed in July of the following year with even richer results. Two parties were put in the field by the Government Surveying Corps, one headed by Mr. Jack- son and the other by Mr. W. H. Holmes, geologists of the San Juan division of the survey for 1875. I am indebted to Prof. Hayden, United States geologist-in-charge, for the memoirs pre- pared by these gentlemen, with the accompanying illustrations.' The reader has already become acquainted with the general character of the remains of the cliff-dwellers, and it will not be necessary to repeat the descriptions of buildings or ruins similar to those already described in these pages. We shall therefore cite only the more remarkable ruins discovered by the above- named explorers. Mr. Jackson was accompanied on his second tour, by Mr. E. A. Barber, naturalist and correspondent of the New York Herald, with Harry Lee as guide and interpreter. The party resumed their labors in the arid, waterless region around the Hovenweep, and in fact the same barren charac- teristics are peculiar to the whole basin of the San Juan. The whole region is rapidly drying up and fast becoming a desert. Down the canon from the pueblo of the Hovenweep, broken towers and rock shelters were passed in rapid succession. Seven miles distant from their starting-point, they found on the western side of the valley three elevated benches ranging one above another in the face of a jutting promontory, each of which contained 1 Published in Bulletin of the Geological and Geographical Survey of the Territories, vol. ii, No. 1. Washington, 1876. Mr. Bancroft's account in the Native Races, necessarily terminates with the close of Mr. Jackson's labors in 1874. 20 306 NICHE STAIRWAY OF THE HO YEN WEEP. X? NICHE STAIRWAY OF CHELLY CANON. houses (see illustration, pag< 3C7). The first bench was reached by climbing over a sloping mass of debris to a height of one hundred feet from the base of the cliff, while the upper benches were only accessible by means of a niche stairway similar to the one shown in the figure. Ruins and masses of char- coal were found at the base of the rock. Numerous adobe foundations, probably of wood- en buildings, always circular in form and ranging from fif- teen to twenty-five feet in diameter, were met with a short distance down the canon. CLIFF-HOUSE OF THE HOVENWEEP. 307 Near the junction of the Hovenweep and McElmo canons an inscription covers sixty feet of the face of a large rock. The figures are those of men, goats, lizards, and hieroglyphic signs. As the party proceeded in the canon they met rock shelters and enclos- ures, the latter on the top of the mesa in which slabs of stone three by five feet in size were set on end. Mr. Jackson re- ports that a party con- tMBBSSHIB?/ nected with the survey corps discovered near the head of the Hovenweep, on a ledge three hundred feet long by fifty feet wide, one-third of the distance from the top of the canon, some forty houses crowded along the shelf all in a row. On the San Juan west of the mouth of the Montezuma CaSon, upon a bench fifty feet high, Mr. Jackson found a quad- rangular structure of pe- culiar design, as shown CLIFF-HOUSE OF THE HOVENWEEP. in the cut on page 308. " We see that it is arranged very nearly at right angles to the river, its greatest depth on the left, where it runs back one hun- dred and twenty feet ; the front sweeps back in a diagonal line, so that the right-hand side is only thirty-two feet in depth. The back wall is one hundred and fifty-eight feet long, and at right angles to the two sides. In the centre of the building, looking out upon the river, is an open space seventy-five feet wide, and averaging forty feet in depth, its depressed centre 308 RUINS UPON THE SAN JUAN. divided nearly equally by a ridge running through it at right angles to the river. , We judged it to have been an open court, because there was not the least vestige of a wall in front, or on the ridge through the centre, while upon the other three sides they were perfectly distinct ; although it is difficult to explain why it should have been hollowed out in the manner shown in the plan. Back of this court is a series of seven apartments of equal size, springing in a perfect arch from the heavy wall facing the court, leaving a semicircular space in the centre, forty-five feet across its greatest diameter. Each one is fifteen feet in RUINS UPON THE RIO SAN JUAN uff 50 ft. in height, intoning a row ot small buildings length, and the same in width across its centre, the walls some- what irregular in thickness, but averaging twenty inches, com- pact, and well laid. On the left are three rooms extending across the whole width of the building, each averaging forty-five by forty feet square ; on the right only one was discernible. Back of the circle, our impression was that the walls diverged in the manner shown in the plan, although there is so much con- fusion resulting from the heaping up of the debris that much must be left to conjecture. There is also a slight shadow of doubt in regard to the wall facing the river on the right ; it is barely possible that it extended somewhat farther out, although ROCK-SHELTERS ON THE RIO SAN JUAN. 309 there is here a steep inclination to the brink of the bluff, and that it has become entirely obliterated by its foundations giving way. The remains of the wall above, however, led us to believe that it had been originally built in the way it is shown in the plan. Extreme massiveness is indicated throughout the whole structure by the amount of debris about the line of the walls, forming long rounded mounds four to five feet high, with the stone-work cropping out, twenty to twenty-four inches in thick- ness." In the face of the bluff immediately under this ruin and upon a recessed bench three hundred feet long was a row of little rock-shelters, with just enough room on the ledge in front of them to admit of a promenade the entire length of the shelf. All down the valley of the San Juan, rock shelters and dwellings similar to the group shown in the cut, were met with. In this instance the houses were situated sixty feet above the trail without any visible means of access. If ladders were used, they were made of timber taller than any of the trees now growing in the valley. Twelve miles below the Montezuma the party discovered really one of the most pictur- esque and wonderful of all the cliff dwellings. On the opposite side of the river, where the bluff was two hundred feet high, near the top of the cliff, they observed a deeply receding cave with an opening nearly circular " two hundred feet in diameter, divided equally between the two kinds of rocks, reaching, within a few feet, the top of the bluff above and the level of the valley below. It runs back in a semicircular sweep to a depth of one ROCK-SHELTERS or THE SAN JUAN CANON. 310 GREAT ECHO CAVE, RIO SAN JUAN. hundred feet ; the top is a perfect half dome, and the lower half only less so from the accumulation of debris and the thick brushy foliage, the cool dampness of its shadowed interior, where the sun never touches, favoring a luxuriant growth. A stratum of harder rock across the central line of the cave has left a bench running around its entire half circle, upon which is built the row of buildings which caught our attention half a mile away." HORIZONTAL SECTION Of the GREAT ECHO CAVE on the Rio SAN JUAN Row Qf u Roomg one story - ,- n jkejght from 4 to 10 feet j n w jdth, by 130 feel ''It will be seen that the houses occupy the left-hand or eastern half of the cave, for the reason, probably, that the ledge was wider on that side, and the wall back of it receded in such a manner as to give considerable additional room for the second floor, or for the upper part of the one-story rooms. It is about fifty feet from the outer edge in to the first building, a small structure sixteen feet long, three feet wide at the outer end, and four at the opposite end ; the walls, standing only four feet on the highest remaining corner, were nearly all tumbled in. Then came an open space eleven feet wide and nine deep, that served probably as a sort of workshop. Four holes were drilled into the smooth rock floor, about six feet equidistantly apart, each from six to ten inches deep and five in diameter, as perfectly round as though drilled by machinery. We can reasonably GREAT ECHO CAVE. 311 assume that these people were familiar with the art of weaving, and that it was here they worked at the loom, the drilled holes supporting its posts. At b, in this open space, are a number of grooves worn into the rock in various places, caused by the artificers of the little town in shaping and polishing their stone implements. The main building comes next, occupying the widest portion of the ledge, which gives an average width of ten GREAT ECHO CAVE. feet inside ; it is forty-eight feet long outside, and twelve high, divided inside into three rooms, the first two thirteen and a half feet each in length, and the third sixteen feet, divided into two stories, the lower and upper five feet in height. The joist holes did not penetrate through the walls, being inserted about six inches, half the thickness. The beams rested upon the sloping back-wall, which receded far enough to make the upper rooms 312 CAS A DEL about square. Window-like apertures afforded communication between each room, all through the second story, excepting that which opened out to the back of the cave. There was also one window in each lower room, about twelve inches square, looking out toward the open country, and in the upper rooms several small apertures not more than three inches wide were pierced through the wall, hardly more than peep-holes. The walls of the large building continued back in an unbroken line one hundred and thirty feet farther, with an average height of eight feet, and divided into eleven apartments, with communi- cating apertures through all. The first room was nine and a half feet wide, the others dwindling down gradually to only four feet in width at the other extremity. The rooms were of unequal length, the following being their inside measurements, com- mencing from the outer end, viz. : 12|, 9|, 8, 7^, 9, 10, 8, 7, 7, 8, 31 feet; the ledge then runs along, gradually narrowing, fifty feet farther, where another wall occurs across it, after which it soon merges into the smooth wall of the cave. The first of these rooms had an aperture leading outward large enough to crawl through ; the wall around it had been broken away so that its exact size could not be determined ; all the others, of which there were about two to each room, were mere peep-holes, about three inches in diameter, and generally pierced through the wall at a downward angle." The apartments were well plastered, and in one or two places even the delicate lines on the thumbs and fingers of the plasterers had been plainly retained. At one point an entire hand had left its impress in the cement. All these marks indicated that the hands of these people were much smaller than those of the explorers, and it is sup- posed that they were those of women and children. A circular hollow place, all begrimed and blackened by smoke, seemed to indicate the locality of a common kitchen. The surroundings of this little community of that ancient people indicated that they were well-to-do, and were probably the lords of the neighbor- ing country. From their home in this elevated gallery, under CAVE-VILLAGE ON THE CHELLY. 313 nature's arching roof of rock, they were in a position to give defiance to their enemies and enjoy the pursuit of their pastoral occupations. This unique residence was named hy the explorers the Casa del Eco. Over the plateau westward, the remains of this ancient people were numerous and of the same general character as already described. The party after reaching the Canon of the Chelly (the stream flowing, as already stated, into CAVE-VILLAGE IN THE VALLEY OF THE Rio CHELLY. the San Juan from the south) found several circular caves averag- ing about one hundred feet in diameter and containing the ruins of old houses. About five miles southward from the San Juan, and in a valley of the Chelly, a cave- village of considerable extent was discovered, perched upon a recessed bench about seventy feet above the valley, and overhung by a solid wall of massive sandstone, extending up over two hundred feet farther. Mr. 314 CAVE-VILLAGE ON THE CHELLY. Jackson describes it in detail as follows : " The left-hand side of the bench supporting the buildings sweeps back in a sharp curve about eighty feet under the bluff, and then gradually comes to the front again until, on the extreme right hand, the buildings are built upon a mass of debris, but partially pro- tected overhead. The total length over the solidly built por- tion of the town is five hundred and forty-five feet, with a greater width in no place of more than forty feet. There are somewhere in the neighborhood of seventy-five rooms upon the ground-plan, with some uncertainty existing as to many of the subdivisions on the right ; but in the cave-built portion every apartment was distinctly marked. Midway in the town is a circular room of heavily and solidly built masonry, that was probably meant for an estufa or council-hall ; that is, if we can reasonably assume any similarity in the methods of build- ing or worship to those of the pueblos of New Mexico. Start- ing from this estufa is a narrow passage running back of the line of houses on the left to a two-story group, where it ends abruptly, further access being had through the back row of rooms, or over the roofs of the lower front row, probably the latter, for it is likely that these roofs served as a platform from which to enter the rooms back of it. At the extreme end a still higher ledge occurs, with the overhanging wall coming down close over it, its outer edge enclosed by a wall, and a little store-room in its farther corner ; it was reserved, prob- ably, as an out-door working-room. All the buildings of this half are of one story, with the exception of one group, the residence probably of the chief or of some other important family in the community. The rooms just back of it are the store-rooms of the family, where the corn and squashes were put away for the winter's consumption. Near these store-rooms, there are two half-round enclosures of stone- work, that are very likely the remains of small reservoirs or springs. The rock back of them is dug out beneath, and had, even in the dry season, when we were there, a damp appearance, as though water was not far removed, and might easily be coaxed to the surface. The front line of wall of this left side of the town is EPSOM CREEK AND THE SAN JUAN VALLEYS. 315 built upon a steep angle of smooth rock, with the interior of the apartments filled up with earth so as to make their floors level, bringing them a little below the passage way. In two or three instances the front wall has given way, precipitating all but the back wall to the bottom of the cliffs. Holes have been drilled into the rock in a few places beneath the walls, evidently to assist in retaining them in their places. The whole front of this portion of the town is without an aperture, save very small windows, and is perfectly inaccessible, both from the solidity of the wall and the precipitous nature of the founda- tion-rock beneath it. Admittance was probably gained from near the circular building in the centre, by ladders or any other well-guarded approach over the rocks." Two miles down the Canon of the Chelly, below the mouth of the fertile Canon Bonito Chiquito, the house figured on page 306 was found with its niched stairway cut in the face of the rock. The house is two-storied, twenty feet in height, the lower story of which is eighteen by ten feet square, divided into two rooms. A natural reservoir of water was found in the rock only twenty rods distant. Eight miles up the Chelly they came to the cave Pueblo, seen by Simpson and mentioned on page 293. From this point it was but forty miles to the inhabited Moquis town Tegua. The explorers after visiting that interesting place returned northward again to the San Juan, reaching Epsom Creek, a tributary of the same from the north, a short distance from the mouth of the Chelly Canon. Among a number of remains found in the Canon of Epsom Creek, one in particular is of interest ; this was the remnant of a square tower, of most per- fect masonry, built upon a point of rock entirely inaccessible to the explorers. A few miles farther up the Epsom Valley, the ruins of quite a town were discovered. " It lay upon both sides of a small, dry ravine, some twenty or thirty rods back from the bed of the creek, and consisted of a main rectangular mass sixty by one hundred feet, occupying quite an elevation, dominating all the others. Just below it and close upon the edge of the ravine, was a round tower, twenty-five feet in diameter ; and seventy- 316 ELEVATED TOWER ON EPSOM CREEK. five below that, and also close to the ravine, was a square build- ing, twenty-feet across, nearly obscured by a thicket of pinon- trees, growing about it. On the opposite bank were two small round towers, each fifteen feet in diameter, with two oblong structures between, twelve by fifteen feet square; at right angles to these four, which were arranged in a straight line, another square building occurred, the same size as the one just opposite on the other bank." The surroundings of this ancient village are de- scribed as truly picturesque and the valley fertile, con- trasting considerably with the Chelly Canon. The ex- ploring party followed the Epsom to a point thirty miles above the San Juan, and in the head canons between it and the Montezuma found themselves in the midst of ruins which mark the former presence of a dense population. No ruins were found near the Sierra Abajo nor in the great basin lying between it and the Sierra La Sal. In the deep caiion of the Montezuma (fifteen hundred feet deep), cliff- dwellings and other remains were found in great numbers- Cave-shelters, with the orifice of the oval and circular crevices in the rocks walled up with neat masonry and accessible by means of niche-steps for the hands and feet, leading up the perpendicular cliff to the little nest-like houses above, were especially numerous. In one of these a skeleton was found, but examination proved it to be that of a Navajo, and quite certainly not that of one of the ancient residents. At different points midway down the canon, narrow promontories jut out into the valley a hundred yards or more, ranging from twenty to one hundred feet in height. Within a distance of sixteen miles, ELEVATED TOWER ON EPSOM CREEK. DWELLINGS ON THE MONTEZUMA. 317 eighteen of these were observed, covered with ruins of massive stone-built structures. They were rectangular in form, ranging from oue hundred by two hundred feet, down to thirty by forty feet in size. We cannot devote further attention to the vast number of ruins found by Mr. Jackson and party in the Monte- zuma Valley, except to note the curious little house shown in the cut. Among a colony of these cave-dwellings, occurring at the first bend of the West Montezuma, a dozen miles above its junction with the east fork, this one commands attention as much for the neatness and perfection of its masonry as for the snug little cave in which its architect lodged it. A block of sandstone resting on the edge of the mesa bench fifty feet above the valley, had a deep oval hole worn in it by the winds and sands. This was occupied by the little house, ten feet long, six feet high and five feet deep ; a space, however, was reserved at one end to serve as a platform from which to enter. In addition to the ex- plorations of Mr. Jackson and party, Mr. W. H. Holmes of the Geological and Geographical Survey, was also assigned the duty of examining ancient remains in the valley of the Upper San Juan, during the summer of 1875. 1 1 See A Notice of the Ancient Ruins of South-western Colorado, examined during the summer of 1875, by W. H. Holmes, in Bulletin of the Geological and Geographical Survey of the Territories, vol. ii, No. 1. Washington, 1876. CAVE-DWELLING IN THE MONTEZUMA VALLEY. 318 EXPLORATIONS BY MR. HOLMES. Mr. Holmes and party examined an area of nearly six thousand square miles, chiefly in Colorado on the San Juan and its tribu- taries. Most of the ruins met with were of the same general character and description as those examined by Mr. Jackson, and to repeat in detail the majority of descriptions contained in Mr. Holmes' memoir, would be to weary the reader with repetitions without affording additional advantage. However, a few remark- able ruins described by Mr. Holmes command our attention. The first of these which may be pronounced unique in this section of the country, and quite unlike anything met with thus far in the exploration, is situated on the Bio La Plata, about twenty-five miles above its junction with the San Juan. The remains of an extensive village with structures of various forms, are scattered upon a terrace some twenty feet above the river- bed. The distribution of the works viewed in connection with plans upon which they were constructed are suggestive of the remains of the mound-builders of the Ohio valley. The forms are chiefly rectangular and circular, one or two seem to have been elliptical while a number have consisted of irregular groups of apartments. All now lie in ruins with their outlines marked by ridges of debris composed of earth, water-worn pebbles, and small fragments of sandstone. The walls of the main structure are still prominently defined, while those of a circular enclosure, used probably as an estufa, are standing to the height of four feet. Three hundred feet directly north of this enclosure is a truncated rectangular mound nine feet high, measuring fifty by eighty feet. In one of the angles of the east end are the remains of what may have been a tower rising above the plat- form of the mound. One hundred feet north of this mound is a rectangular enclosure measuring sixty by one hundred feet. Its wall ranges from four to six feet in height. The ruins of a wall extending between the mound and the enclosure, indicate that they were once connected. A system of works joined these to a range of low hills, lying to the north. Southward from the large central circle are earthworks and ruins covering an area of fifteen thousand square feet. A large number of small circles and mounds occupy the southern extremity of the terrace. It CAVE-SHELTERS AND TOWERS OF THE SAN JUAN. 319 is impossible to account for the sudden change in the plan of works so contiguous to those of a well-marked pueblo origin. On the San Juan River, thirty-five miles below the mouth of the La Plata and ten miles above the Mancos, Mr. Holmes ob- served an interesting combination of cave-shelters and towers united in a system for giving signals upon the approach of the enemy. In the face of a vertical bluif thirty-five feet high and about half way from the trail below, caves had been quarried or weathered in considerable numbers in the shales which consti- tute one of the strata in the bluff. A hard platform of rock formed the floor, and afforded sufficient protection for a narrow platform in front of these openings. Immediately above these caves upon the summit of the bluffs, a system of ruined circular towers, enclosed by semicircular walls with the open side of the semicircle facing the precipice, was observed. The caves were accessible from the valley below only by means of ladders, and the towers in turn only by ladders from the caves through the open side of their semicircular enclosures. The walls of these enclosures presented no openings to the plateau above, and it is inferred that the towers which they enclosed served as outlooks from which the sentinel could signal the people who were engaged in tilling the valley below to flee to their cave-shelters at the approach of the enemy, and when too closely pressed by an enemy upon the plateau the sentinel himself could make his retreat by means of his ladder to the caves beneath. The most remarkable cliff-dwellings, discovered by Mr. Holmes, are shown in the cut. These extraordinary fortresses, lodged in caves eight hundred fset above the level of the valley, are situated in the caflon of the Mancos, a few miles from its mouth. The first five hundred feet of the ascent from the level of the stream, is over a rough cliff- broken slope, the remainder of massive sandstone, full of niches and caves. The upper house is situated in a deep cavern with overhanging roof about one hundred feet from the cliff's top. The front wall of the house is built upon the very edge of the giddy precipice. The larger house is lodged in a niche or cave thirty feet below. The lower house was easily accessible. The 320 CAVE-DWELLINGS ON THE RIO MA NCOS. V CAVE-FORTRESSES OF THE Rio MANCOS. wall was built flush with the precipice and remained standing to a height of fourteen feet at the highest point, though other portions had crumbled away considerably. The house occupied the entire floor of the niche, which measures sixty feet long by fifteen feet wide. Mr. Holmes described these structures as fol- lows ; of the first he says : Sheila Sandstone* and. Clajt 322 CAVE-DWELLINGS OF THE MANCOS. " The arrangement of the apartments is quite complicated and curious, and will be more readily understood by a refer- ence to the ground-plan (figure 1). The precipice line or front edge of the niche-floor, extends from a to b. From this the broken cliffs and slopes reach down to the trail and river, as shown in the accompanying profile (figure 3). The line bed represents the deepest part of the recess, against which the walls are built. To the right of 6, the shelf ceases, and the vertical face of rock is unbroken. At the left, beyond a, the edge is not so abrupt, and the cliffs below are so broken that one can ascend with ease. Above, the roof comes forward and curves upward, as seen in the profile. " The most striking feature of this structure is the round- room, which occurs about the middle of the ruin and inside of a large rectangular apartment. * Its walls are not high and not entirely regular, and the inside is curiously fashioned with offsets and box-like projections. It is plastered smoothly, and bears considerable evidence of having been used, although I observed no traces of fire. The entrance to this chamber is rather extraordinary, and further attests the peculiar importance attached to it by the builders, and their evident desire to secure it from all possibility of intrusion. A walled and covered passage-way, /, /, of solid masonry, ten feet of which is still intact, leads from an outer chamber through the small intervening apartments into the circular one. It is possible that this originally extended to the outer wall, and was entered from the outside. If so, the person desiring to visit the estufa would have to enter an aperture about twenty-two inches high by thirty wide, and crawl, in the most abject manner possible, through a tube-like passage-way nearly twenty-feet in length. My first impression was that this peculiarly-constructed doorway was a precaution against enemies, and that it was probably the only means of entrance to the interior of the house ; but I am now inclined to think this hardly probable, and conclude that it was rather designed to render a sacred chamber as free as possible from profane intrusion. The apartments I, k, m, n, do not require any especial description, as they are quite plain and almost empty. CAVE-DWELLINGS OF THE MANGOS. 323 The partition walls have never been built up to the ceiling of the niche, and the inmates, in passing from one apartment to another, have climbed over. The row of apertures indicated in the main front wall are about five feet from the floor, and were doubtless entered for the insertion of beams, although there is no evidence that a second floor has at any time existed. In that part of the ruin about the covered passage-way, the walls are complicated, and the plan can hardly be made out, while the curved wall enclosing the apartment e is totally overthrown. * * * * rp ne rock-face between this ruin and the one above is smooth and vertical, but by passing along the ledge a few yards to the left a sloping face was found, up which a stair- way of small niches had been cut ; by means of these, an active person, unincumbered, could ascend with safety. On reaching the top, one finds himself in the very doorway of the upper house (a, figure 2) without standing-room outside of the wall, and one can imagine that an enemy would stand but little chance of reaching and entering such a fortress if defended, even by women and children alone. The position of this ruin is one of unparalleled security, both from enemies and from the elements. The almost vertical cliff descends abruptly from the front wall, and the immense arched roof of solid stone projects forward fifteen or twenty feet beyond the house (see section, figure 3). At the right the ledge ceases, and at the left stops short against a massive vertical wall. The niche-stairway affords the only possible means of approach. " The house occupies the entire floor of the niche, which is about one hundred and twenty feet long by ten in depth at the deepest part. The front wall to the right and left of the door- way is quite low, portions having doubtless fallen off. The higher wall/0 is about thirty feet long, and from ten to twelve feet high, while a very low rude wall extends along the more inaccessible part of the ledge, and terminates at the extreme right in a small enclosure, as seen in the plan at <;. " In the first apartment entered, there were evidences of fire, the walls and ceiling being blackened with smoke. In the second, a member of the party, by digging in the rubbish, 324 TRIPLE-WALLED TOWER ON THE McELMO. obtained a quantity of beans, and in the third a number of grains of corn ; hence the names given. There are two small windows in the front wall, and doorways communicate between rooms separated by high partitions. " The walls of these houses are built in the usual manner, and average about a foot in thickness. " The upper house seems to be in a rather unfinished state, looking as if stone and mortar had run short. And when one considers that these materials must have been brought from far below by means of ropes, or carried in small quantities up the dangerous stairway, the only wonder is that it was ever brought to its present degree of finish." TRIPLE-WALLED TOWER ON THE MCELMO. The ruins of a triple-walled tower with fourteen sectional apartments between the outer and second walls were examined near the McElmo. One of these sectional apartments was still standing to the height of twelve feet. We have already referred to the group of ruins at Aztec Springs near the divide between the McElmo and the lower Mancos tributaries. " These ruins," says Mr. Holmes, " form the most imposing pile of masonry yet found in Colorado. The whole group covers an area of about four hundred and eighty thousand square feet, and has an average depth of from three to four feet." The accompanying plan, with the measurements and 1 O carpi, ^"nLJrri I y eraDQQQh GOB RUINS at AZTEC SPRING" \ SOUTH WEST COLORADO W.Il.llolmes 326 CLIFF-DWELLER AND MOQUI POTTERY. dimensions indicated upon it, precludes the necessity of a detailed description. The walls are twenty-six inches thick, and in some cases are huilt double. The whole resembles in plan one of the ruined pueblos of the Chaco, with the addition that it was designed to be an impregnable fortress. The plate from Mr. Jackson's memoir shows specimens of pottery collected during his explorations among the cliff-dwell- ings. The pieces a and b are of modern make, and were obtained among the Moquis of Tegua. The ware and finish of both these vessels are far inferior as compared with the ancient fragments. We have quoted on a previous page Mr. Ingersoll's rendering of the romantic legend which tells in few words the sad his- tory of the ancient architects of these aerial abodes. We have observed that, according to this account, the remnant of this people who escaped the destruction visited upon the cliff-dwellers by the warlike Utes fled to the South to the deserts of Arizona and built the present Moqui towns. We have already stated that Mr. Jackson's party found it necessary to travel forty miles due southward from the ruins of the Chaco Canon in order to reach Tegua, the nearest of the Moqui settlements. It may be a matter of some interest to the reader, after having studied the cliff architecture, to be introduced into one of the habitations now occupied by the descendants of that remarkable people. Lieutenant Ives, who visited the Moqui towns in 1858, has furnished an interesting account of their general characteristics, from which we take condensed extracts : " As the sun went down," says Lieutenant Ivcs, " and the con- fused glare and mirage disappeared, I discovered with the spy- glass two of the Moqui towns eight or ten miles distant, upon the edge of a high bluff overhanging the opposite side of the valley. They were built close to the edge of the precipice. The outlines of the closely-packed structures looked in the distance like the towers and battlements of a castle, and their command- ing position enhanced the picturesque effect." "The face of the bluff, on the summit of which the town was perched, was cut up and irregular. We were led through a passage that CLIFF-DWELLER AND MOQUI POTTERY. 327 wound among some low hillocks of sand and rock that extended half-way to the top. It did not seem pos- sible, while ascending through the sand-hills, that a spring could be found in such a dry- looking place ; but presently a crowd was seen collecting upon a mound before a small plateau, in the centre of which was a circular reservoir fifty feet in diameter, lined with masonry and filled with pure cold water The basin was fed by a pipe connecting with some source of supply upon the summit of the mesa. Continuing to ascend, we came to another reservoir, smaller, but of more elaborate construction and finish. From this the guide said they got their drinking water, CLIFF AND MOQUI POTTERY. 328 INTERIOR OF A MOQUI DWELLING. the other reservoir being intended for animals. Between the two the face of the bluff had been ingeniously converted into terraces. These were faced with neat masonry, and contained gardens, each surrounded with a raised edge so as to retain water upon the sur- face. Pipes from the reservoir permitted them at any time to be irrigated. Peach trees were growing upon the terraces and in the hollow below. A long flight of stone steps with sharp turns that could be easily defended was built into the face of the precipice, and led from the upper reservoir to the foot of the town. The scene, rendered animated by the throngs of Indians in their gayly-colored dresses, was one of the most remarkable I had ever witnessed." " Without giving us time to admire the scene, the Indians led us to a ladder planted against the centre of the front face of the pueblo. The town is nearly square and surrounded by a stone wall fifteen feet high, the top of which forms a landing extending around the whole. Flights of stone steps led from the first to a second landing, upon which the doors of the houses open. Mounting the stairway opposite to the ladder, the chief crossed to the nearest door and ushered us into a low apartment, from which two or three others opened towards the interior of the dwelling." " The room was fifteen feet by ten ; the walls were made of adobes ; the partitions of substantial beams, the floor laid with clay. In one corner were a fireplace and a chimney. Everything was clean and tidy. Skins, bows and arrows, quivers, antlers, blankets, articles of clothing and ornament, were hanging from the walls or arranged upon shelves. Vases, flat dishes, and gourds filled with meal or water, were standing along on one side of the room. At the other end was a trough divided into compartments, in each of which was a sloping stone slab two or three feet square, for grinding corn upon. In a recess of an inner room was piled a goodly store of corn in the ear. I noticed, among other things, a reed musical instrument with a bell-shaped end like a clarionet and a pair of painted drum-sticks tipped with gaudy feathers." " We learned that there were seven towns; that the name of that which we were visiting was Mooshahneh. A second smaller town was half a mile distant ; two miles distant was a MOQUI, ONE OF THE SEVEN PUEBLOS. 329 MOQUI (WOLPI), ONE OF THE SEVEN PUEBLOS. (From a photo taken by the U. S. exploring party in 1875.) third. * Five or six miles to the north-east a bluff was pointed out as the location of three others ; and we were informed that the last of the seven, Oraybe, was still further distant on the trail towards the great river." " Each pueblo is built around a rectangular court, in which we suppose are the springs that furnish the supply to the reser- voirs. The exterior walls, which are of stone, have no openings, 330 ORAYBE. and would have to be scaled or battered down before access could be gained to the interior. The successive stories are set back one behind the other. The lower ones are reached through trap-doors from the first landing. The houses are three rooms deep, and open upon the interior court. The arrangement is as strong and compact as well could be devised, but as the court is common and the landings are separated by no partitions, it involves a certain community of residence." In describing the gardens of Oraybe, distant eight or nin3 miles, he remarks : " At the foot [of the bluff] was a reservoir and a broad road winding up the steep ascent. On either side the bluffs were cut into terraces, and laid out into gardens similar to those seen at Mooshahneh, and like them irrigated from an upper reservoir. The whole reflected great credit upon Moqui ingenuity and skill in the department of engineering. The walls of the terraces and reservoirs were of partly-dressed stone, well and strongly built, and the irrigating pipes conveniently arranged. The little gardens were neatly laid out. * * * The walls of the terraces and the gardens themselves are kept in good order and preserva- tion. The stone and earth for construction and repairs they carry in blankets upon their shoulders from the valley below." l Mr. Bancroft has furnished the reader descriptions of several of the New Mexican group of pueblos, which he has extracted from the reports of various travelers. We do not consider it necessary to repeat accounts so generally accessible. 2 The New Mexican group, situated on the Bio Grande del Norte and its tributaries, is the most numerous in inhabited pueblos, but as they differ little if at all from those of the Moquis, further treatment of them is unnecessary. The pueblos which are and have been inhabited during the nineteenth century number about twenty, some of which are well known to have been occupied by the ancestors of their present inhabitants when first visited by 1 Ives' Colorado River of the West, pp. 119-26, with plates. The same extract condensed into nearly the same form as above is given by Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 667-80. 2 Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 662 et seq , and the authors cited therein. PECOS. 331 the Spaniards. The best specimen of inhabited pueblos is that of Taos, situated on one of the northern forks of the river which gives it its name. There are two large houses, each between three and four hundred feet long by one hundred and fifty wide, situated on opposite sides of a small creek, and tradition states that formerly they were connected by a bridge. They are five and six stories high. Besides the inhabited towns there are a number now unoccu- pied and fast going to decay. The names of these are given with slight variations by different writers ; the following, how- ever, are generally agreed upon: Pecos, Quivira, Valverda, San Lazaro, San Marcos, San Cristobal, Socorro, Senacu, Abo, Quarra, Rita, Poblazon, old San Filipe, and old Zuni. 1 The most important of all these ruins is Pecos, one of the sacred cities of the pueblos. Here the everlasting fire dedicated to their god Montezuma was kept burning from time immemorial down to the abandonment of the town, which occurred some time during the second quarter of the present century. The reader will remember, however, that the culture-god of the Pueblos and the Aztec monarch are in no sense to be associated with each other, since it is quite certain that they were not con- founded in the mythology of the worshippers of the deity. Whether the Pueblos, Cliff-dwellers, etc., were ever in any way related to the Aztecs or any Nahua people is difficult to deter- mine. Certainly there is no architectural nor traditional evi- dence that they were. When the Spaniards under Coronado traversed the region in 1540 A. D., no reports of inter-com- munication between the two peoples seem to have been current. Father Escalante, who in 1776 visited many of the pueblos, and mentions many ruins not since located, as well as many inhabited towns now in ruins, found nothing to really substantiate the " Aztec theory." 2 On the contrary, substantial arguments can 1 Native Races, vol. iv, p. 663, and Simpson's Journal Mil. Recon., p. 114. 2 I have carefully examined Father Escalante's Dinrio in the MS. copy deposited in the Congressional Library at Washington, but find nothing to contradict the opinion of recent explorers. The reader will also see Domingwz and Escalante's Diario y Derrotero Sante Fe d Monterey, 1776, in Doc. Hist. Hex. Serie ii, torn. i. 332 MR. BECKER ON THE PUEBLOS. be presented for the intimate relationship of the Nahuas and some of the Pueblos. In the tenth chapter of this work will be found the basis of linguistic affinities between the Nahua and Moqui languages, though none is claimed between the Nahua and New Mexican Pueblos. Mr. Becker, in his memoir addressed to the Congrcs des Amcricanistes at Luxembourg, refers to Camergo's account of the migration of the Teo-Chichimecs, the allies of the Toltecs, and to his statement that they came from Amaquetepic (" the mountains of the Amaques "), and expresses the belief that the words Amaques and Moquis are identical. Mr. Becker considers the " A " prefix of the former to be an abbreviation of the Nahua "atl" water, and Amaqui would mean the Maqui or Moqui living by the water, just as Acolhuas means Culhuas near the water and Anahuac, the Nahua land on the water. The tradition of the Moquis distinctly states that they formerly lived on the river at the north-east of their present home. The reader will remember that the Quiches called the Nahuas Yaqui, the name of a river of Sinaloa and Sonora where marked traces of the Nahua language are found, and the supposed locality of the first Toltec station. Is it not possible that Yaqui is a dialectic modification of Maqui or Moqui ? It has been observed in the pages of this chapter that in more than one instance ruined pueblos were com- posed of either red adobe or had been painted, a circumstance which had won for them such a designation as " Red-house " or "Pueblo-pintado/' etc. Furthermore, the red glare of the desert north of the Moqui settlements has received the name of the " Painted desert." The fact that Hue hue Tlapalan signifies "old red land" is suggestive that this locality may have been the mysterious rendezvous of the Toltecs. The Moquis like the Nahuas are sun-worshippers, though the ceremonial of both people differ considerably. Besides the mound- works observed on the upper San Juan by Mr. Holmes associated with the work of the Cliff-dwellers, recent exploration has shown that combinations of mound and pueblo features of architecture exist in Utah, Dr. C. C. Parry found in a mound on the St. Clara River in Southern Utah very fine THE CULTURE-HERO MONTEZUMA. 333 specimens of Pueblo pottery, and other articles which clearly identify its architects with the people of the cliffs or with the village builders at the South. 1 The recent exploration of several mounds in southern Utah by Dr. Edward Palmer fully confirms this conclusion. In Kane County, Utah, the same explorer dis- covered among a number of articles of apparent Moqui make in a cave-shelter, a shovel of horn having a blade fourteen inches long by five inches wide. Among the articles was a pair of shoes made of the fibre of the Yucca, which in style, shape, manner of braiding, etc., closely resemble shoes made of the leaves of the Typa found by Prof. F. W. Putnam in a cave in Kentucky. 2 The mound examinr-d by Mr. Barrand on the west fork of the Little Sioux of Dakota, and found to contain a large ulterior circular chamber, probably was the work of the ancestors of this western branch of the mound-building people. 3 The circular chamber was much like an estufa. The many-sided culture-hero of the Pueblos, Montezuma, is the centre of a group of the most poetic myths found in Ancient American Mythology. The Pueblos believed in a supreme being, a good spirit, so exalted and worthy of rever- ence that his name was considered too sacred to mention, as, with the ancient Hebrews, Jehovah's was the " unmentionable name." Nevertheless Montezuma was the equal of this great spirit, and was often considered identical with the sun. The variety of aspects in which Montezuma is presented to us is due to the fact that each tribe of Pueblos had its particular legends concerning his birth and achievements. Many places in New Mexico claim the honor of his nativity at a period long before those village builders were acquainted with the arts of archi- tecture, which have since given them their distinguishing name. In fact, this culture-god was none other than the genius who introduced the knowledge of building among them. 4 Some tradi- 1 Ninth Anmtal Report of Peabody Museum, p. 12. Cambridge, 1876. 8 Eleventh Annual Report of Peabody Museum, Cambridge, 1878, pp. 198- 200, 267-80. 8 Smithsonian, Report for 1872, pp. 413 et seq.; and this work, chapter I. 4 The facts claimed in the following account are drawn from Bancroft's 334 THE CULTURE-HERO MONTEZUMA. tions, however, make him the ancestor and even the creator of the race ; others, its prophet, leader and lawgiver. Mr. Bancroft says, " Under restrictions, we may fairly regard him as the Mel- chizedek, the Moses, and the Messiah of these Pueblo-desert wanderers from an Egypt that history is ignorant of, and whose name even tradition whispers not. He taught his people how to build cities with tall houses, to construct Estufas, or semi- sacred sweat-houses, and to kindle and guard the sacred fire." It has been aptly remarked by Mr. Tyler, that Montezuma was the great "somebody" of the tribe to whom the qualities and achievements of every other were attributed. Fremont gives an account of the birth of the hero, in which his mother is declared to have been a woman of exquisite beauty, admired and sought for by all men. She was the recipient of rich presents of corn and skins from her admirers, yet she refused the hands of all her suitors. A famine soon occurred, and great distress followed. Now the fastidious beauty showed herself to be a lady of charitable spirit and tender heart. She opened her granaries, in which all her presents had been stored, and out of their abundance relieved the wants of the poor. The offerings of love were made to perform their mission a second time. At last, when the pure and plenteous rains again brought fertility to the earth, the summer shower fell upon the Pueblo goddess, and she gave birth to a son, the immortal Montezuma. The intelligent chief of the Papagoes, whose people occupy the territory between the Santa Cruz River and the Gulf of California, related a legend of the origin and offices of Montezuma, which, while it surprises the reader with its close resemblances to some leading points in the Hebrew and Chaldean genesis and deluge accounts, still is conspicuous for its inconsistencies, and in its closing statements for the absence of any knowledge of time or order. 1 Native Races, vol. iii., pp. 171-74 and 75-7. Ward, in Ind. Aff. Report, 1864, pp. 192-3. Brinton's MytJis of the New World, p. 190. Ten Broeck in School- craft'3 History and Condition of the Indian Tribes, vol. iv, p. 73, and Tyler's Primitive Culture, vol. ii, p. 384. 1 Davidson, in Ind. Aff. Report, 18G5, pp. 131-3. and Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 75-77. THE CULTURE-HERO MONTEZUMA. 335 In substance it is as follows : The Great Spirit, having made all things sky, earth, and the living creatures which in- habit it descended into the earth for the purpose of creating man also. Digging in the earth, he found clay, such as a potter uses ; this he carried back with him to his celestial abode, and dropped it again from the sky into the pit from which he had dug it. Instantly Montezuma, the genius of life, sprang from the pit, and became a partner in the creation of other men. The Apaches were the next formed, and were so wild that they severally ran away as fast as created. Those were golden days which followed the birth of the race ; the sun was very much nearer the earth than now, and his grateful presence rendered clothing useless. A common language between all men, shared even by beasts, was one of the strongest possible bonds of peace. But at last this paradisiacal age was ended by a great deluge in which all men and living creatures perished. Only Mon- tezuma and his friend, the coyote a prairie-wolf escaped. This wonderful animal, with semi-divine attributes, plays a remarkable part in the religion of many of the Pacific tribes, and furnishes us a parallel in our Occidental mythology with the half-human, half-brute combinations of Greco-Roman myth- ology. The coyote, gifted with prophetic powers, had foretold the approach of this great calamity, and Montezuma, heeding the warning, had built him a boat, which he kept in readiness on the summit of Santa Rosa. His sagacious friend, the coyote, also escaped in an ark made from a gigantic cane which grew by a river's side ; having gnawed it down and crawled into it, he stopped up the ends with gum, and escaped. When the waters subsided, the two met again on dry ground. Montezuma then , employed the coyote on several wearisome excursions in order to discover the extent of the land, which developed the fact that upon the east and south and west the water yet remained. Only on the north was there land. The Great Spirit and Montezuma again created men and animals, and the former committed to his partner in the work the duties of governing the new race. These were, however, neglected by Montezuma, who became puffed up with pride, and 336 THE CULTURE-HERO MONTEZUMA. permitted all manner of wickedness to prevail. The Great Spirit remonstrated with him, even descending to the earth for the purpose of moving his faithless and haughty vicegerent to restore order, but with no avail. Then, returning to his abode in heaven, he pushed the sun back to a remote part of the sky as a punishment on the race. At this, Montezuma became enraged, collected the tribes around him, and set about the con- struction of a house which should reach heaven. The builders had already completed several apartments, lined with gold and silver and precious stones, and progressed to a point which encouraged all to believe that their defiant purpose would be accomplished, when the Great Spirit smote it to the earth amid the crash of his thunder. Here the account becomes very con- fused a great leap is made from Montezuma the culture-hero to Montezuma the emperor, and the two become confounded. The legend states that upon the defeat of his rebellious scheme, Montezuma still hardened his heart, and caused the sacred images to be dragged through the streets for the derision of the villagers ; the temples were desecrated, and defiance to the Supreme declared. As a punishment, the Great Spirit caused an insect to fly toward the east to an unknown land, to bring the Spaniards, who utterly destroyed him. The post-diluvian part of this story presents the hero in quite another light than that generally accepted by most of the Pueblo tribes, in which he is represented as having been the very model of goodness and beneficence the founder of their cities, of which Acoma was the first and Pecos the second. Before taking his departure from his people, he prophesied that they should suffer from drought and from the oppressions of a strange nation, but promised them to return as their deliverer. He then planted a tree upside down, and bade them preserve the sacred fire notwithstanding their misfortunes, until the tree fell, at which time he would return with a white race, who would destroy all their enemies and bring back the fertile showers. It is said that this tree fell from its place as the American army entered Santa Fe, in 1846. In the cramped, subterranean estufa, the Pueblo fed the sacred fire burning in the basin of a THE CULTURE-HERO MONTEZUMA. 337 small altar. It was a warrior's vigil, for by turns their heroes descended into its suffocating atmosphere, thick with smoke, and charged with carbonic acid, to wait often for two successive days and nights without refreshment, often even until death relieved the guard. 1 For generations these strange architects and faithful priests have waited for the return of their god looked for him to come with the sun, and descend by the column of smoke which rose from the sacred fire. As of old the Israelitish watcher upon Mount Seir replied to the inquiry, "What of the night?" "The morning cometh," so the Pueblo sentinel mounts the house-top at Pecos, and gazes wistfully into the east for the golden appearance, for the rapturous vision of his redeemer, for Montezuma's return ; and, though no ray of light meets his watching eye, his never-failing faith, with cruel deception, replies, " The morning cometh." 2 1 This feature of the legend is beautifully developed by Mr. Bancroft. 2 In this account of Montezuma I have used, with few variations, the same language employed by me in treating the subject in an article entitled, " Culture- Heroes of the Ancient Americans," published in Appleton's Journal for March, 1877, pp. 275-6. EXPLORATIONS AMONG THE PUEBLOS. In the summer of 1879 the Smith- sonian Institution undertook a thorough and extensive examination of the Pueblo civilization of New Mexico and Arizona. Major Powell sent an expe- dition to New Mexico in charge of Mr. James Stevenson, and a large collection illustrative of the manners and customs of the Pueblos was made. Mr. F. H. Cushing was especially fortunate in obtaining minute information concerning their traditions, rites, and ceremonies. The work of investigation is still in progress, and at this writing (September, 1881) an expedition is in the field. A full report will ultimately be published. During the latter half of the year 1880 Mr. Baidelier, the eminent Mexican scholar, visited Taos, and prepared a *fJ/ paper on that interesting locality for the Archaeological Institute of America, under whose patronage his exploration was conducted. During a residence of two months in the Pueblo of Cochiti, occupied by a branch of the Queres .< tribe, Mr. Baildelier made a thorough study of the institutions of that interest- ing people. See Second Ann. Report of Arch. Inst. of Amer. 22 CHAPTER VIII. ANCIENT AMERICAN CIVILIZATION AND SUPPOSED OLD WORLD ANALOGIES ARCHITECTURE, SCULPTURE AND HIERO- GLYPHICS. Analogies, Real and Fancied MAYA ARCHITECTURE The American Pyramid The Palace of Palenque The French Roof at Palenque The Trefoil Arch Yucatanic Architecture Uxmal The Casa de Monjas Kabah Casa Grande of Zayi QUICHE ARCHITECTURE Copan Circus of Copan Description by Fuentes Utatlan NAHUA ARCHITECTURE Remains in Oajaca Mitla Grecques at Mitla Remains in the State of Vera Cruz Cholula Pyramid of Xochicalco The Temple of Mexico Teotihuacan Los Edificios of Quemeda Maya and Nahua Architecture Compared Old World Analogies SCULPTURE Of the Mounds At Palenque At Uxmal At Chichen-ltza On the Isla Mujeres Of the Nahuas Ancient American Art and its Old World Analogies Egyptian Tau at Palenque Serpent Sculpture Nahua Symbolism probably Asiatic HIEROGLYPHICS Maya MSS. and Books Landa's Alphabet The Attempts at the Inter- pretation of Maya MSS. by Bollaert, Charencey, and Rosny Rosny's Clas- sification of the Hieroglyphics Hopes that a Key has been Discovered The Mexican Picture-writing Aztec Migration Maps. "TTTITHOUT pretending to furnish an exhaustive treatment VV of the subject proposed for this chapter, we desire to make observations on some phases of the development of American civilization in the Pre-Historic period. One of the most natural fruits of the study of the arts and customs of any people, is a disposition on the part of the investigator to institute a com- parison with corresponding features of civilization in all parts of the world. Unfortunately this disposition has led many writers on America into wild and fanciful speculations, which tend only to deceive the reader and add nothing to true investi- gation. In a few instances pronounced old world analogies have ANALOGIES REAL AND FANCIED. 339 been proven to exist in ancient American institutions and arts, but their number bears a small ratio to the multitude of fancied analogies which never existed, except in the imaginations of their discoverers. To discuss the subject in hand without tran- scending the limits of the period which is treated in previous chapters, namely, the Primitive period that which antedates the era of the annals of those ancient peoples, is a somewhat difficult task, since the question of dates is a very uncertain one in the absence of any sufficient key to the hieroglyphic and picture records. The customs and political organization, to- gether with the Aztec civilization, have been often treated, and by none better than our own Prescott and Bancroft. The repetition of their labors here would be highly superfluous. We shall, however, ask the attention of the reader to some considera- tions upon the following divisions of the subject : 1. AKCHITECTUKE. 2. SCULPTURE and HIEROGLYPHICS. 3. CHRONOLOGICAL and ASTRONOMICAL KNOWLEDGE. 4. RE- LIGIOUS ANALOGIES. Architecture. The works of the Mound-builders and Pueblos have already been described and their transitional forms or stages noted. To seek for parallelisms or analogies between the Mound- builders and the people of Asia because mounds are common to both continents, or to seek to identify them with the people of Northern Europe because the shell-heaps of our sea-board resemble those of Denmark, would certainly be an unjustifiable use of the imagination, in anything like a serious discussion of the question. We have no disposition to speculate on this sub- ject, since such speculation cannot furnish any satisfactory results. Certain resemblances between American and Hindoo- mounds have been supposed to exist, but the resemblance, if any, proves nothing. 1 That more fruitful and wonderful field of ancient architecture in Central America, Yucatan and Mexico, furnishes abundant opportunity for the discussion of our subject. Detailed descriptions of the remains found in different localities 1 Hindoo Mounds, see Squier's observations on Dr. Westerman in Am. Ethnol. Soc. Trans., April, 1851 ; and Atwater, in Am. Ethnd. Boc. Trans., vol. i, pp. 196-267. 340 MAYA ARCHITECTURE PALENQUE. have been given by travelers, artists and authors, the latter availing themselves of several accounts and instituting com- parisons between the statements of different explorers. Such works, savoring somewhat of the critical, cannot be under- rated, since their development of the true facts has contrib- uted largely to our knowledge of the subject. It has been generally the rule for writers to undertake the description of remains in a particular locality and treat them in detail, thus presenting to the mind a pleasant picture of the whole, together with the relation of parts. This is certainly a satis- factory plan to many readers, but it seems to us that such a course is unnecessary, after it has been once pursued by the explorer. By repetitions nothing is gained, unless the work of classification (by which certain architectural forms and methods are woven into a style and their variations noted) receives atten- tion. In preceding chapters we have treated of the Maya, the Quiche, and the Nahua peoples, and in this, it is our purpose to briefly note the main features of their styles of architecture, sculpture, etc., as indicated in the divisions above laid down. Maya Architecture furnishes evidence of growth, and may be classified into the Chiapan or ancient and the Yucatanic or modified styles. The Chiapan or ancient style is exhibited in the imposing remains of Palenque, with which the reader is supposed to be already familiar, from the descriptions of several explorers. 1 Palenque is situated in the Usumacinta River region in Chiapas, on a small stream sometimes called the Otolum, a tributary of the Tulija, which is itself a branch of the Usuma- cinta. The ruins are situated in a small valley of the foot-hills, from which rise the high table-lands of the interior. They are known as the Palace, with a pyramidal base measuring two hundred and sixty by three hundred and ten feet and forty feet high ; Temple of the three Tablets ; Temple of the Beau Belief; Temple of the Cross, and Temple of the Sun. The 1 Chief among whom are Dupaix, in Kingsborough's Mexican Antiquities; Waldeck (exploration performed in 1832-3), Pub. 1866 fol.; Stevens and Cather- wood in 1840 ; M. Morelet in 1846, and Charney in 1858 ; for best bibliographical treatment, see Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 289-294, note. THE AMERICAN PYRAMID. 341 most conspicuous feature of the architecture employed, and seen in most of the Central American structures, is the massive pyramidal foundation The sides of the pyramid of the Pa- lenque palace are faced with regular blocks of hewn stone, with extensive flights of stairs, upon the east and north leading to its summit. 1 Mr. Bancroft has analyzed the structure of the American pyramid in a philosophical way, and no doubt has in part explained its object. " I think," he remarks, " that per- haps with a view to raise this place or temple above the waters of the stream, four thick walls, possibly more, were built up perpendicularly from the ground to the desired height ; then, after the completion of the walls, to strengthen them, or during the progress of the work to facilitate the raising of the stones, MODE OF CONSTRUCTING PYRAMID. the interior was filled with earth, and the exterior graded with the same material, the whole being subsequently faced with hewn stone." 2 In the above cut Mr. Bancroft illustrates his opinion. Stephens and Waldeck, who excavated from the summit down- wards, imply that the interior D is of earth. Twenty years later Charnay found a perpendicular wall on the eastern side, quite contrary to the observations of all previous travelers. Mr. Ban- croft accounts for this on the supposition that the stone facing, loosened by the growth of trees which covered it, had fallen from B to F, and that the earth which filled the sides at E E had been washed away by the rain and left the perpendicular wall 1 Stephens, vol. ii, p. 310: Waldeck's Palenque, p. 2, and Brasseur in Ibid, p. 17 ; Bancroft, vol. iv, p. 300. * Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 300-1. 342 THE PALACE OF PALENQUE. exposed at B. Such a supposition we consider to be perfectly probable in view of the rapid dilapidation of the ruins since Dupaix's visit in 1806. The ancient model thus established in the construction of this, perhaps oldest of existing American cities, may have determined the style of many similar edifices. A plan of the palace has been furnished by several authors. 1 The accompanying restoration from Armin's Das Heutige Mexiko, THE PALACE RESTORED. employed by Mr. Bancroft, may serve to give an idea of the proportions of the structure. The edifice occupies the entire summit platform of the pyramid except a narrow passage-way around the edge, and measures 228 feet by 182, and about 30 feet in height. The doorways, of which there are forty in the outer wall, are wider than the piers intervening between them, and were constructed originally with flat wooden lintels, all of which have disappeared. The main architectural features will 1 Waldeck's Palenque, pi. vii. See also Stephens, vol. ii, p. 310 ; Dupaix, pi. xi.; Kingsborough, vol. iv, pi. xiii ; Bancroft, vol. iv, p. 307. ARCHITECTURAL FEATURES AT PALENQUE. 343 be observed in the accompanying plate from Waldeck. The lower right-hand figure shows the angle of the foundations of one of the interior buildings and the manner in which the stones were laid. The left-hand figure affords a sectional view of the eastern stairway descending from the principal corridor into the grand court. It will be observed that the height of the steps ARCHITECTURAL FEATURES AT PALENQUE. considerably exceeds their width. Waldeck illustrates this sin- gular disproportion by a diagram in which a native is represented as sitting upon the stairway. The perpendicular face of a step is shown to be considerably higher than the Indian's knee, and must have measured two feet. The upper left-hand figures represent the forms of niches, which are of frequent occurrence. The T shaped niche is the representative of a numerous class so resembling the Egyptian tau or cross as to excite no little interest in its origin. M. Waldeck found the marks of lamp- black upon the tops of some of them, and supposes them to have 344 PALENQUE ROOFS. held torches which illuminated the corridors ; others, which extend through the walls, may have served for the purposes of ventilation ; while others perhaps contained idols. 1 The right- hand upper figures represent the highly artistic double cornices employed. Nothing of a definite nature is known of the style of roof with which the palace was covered, since every vestige of it has disappeared. Castaiieda represents it as sloping and plas- tered, while Dupaix refers to it as consisting of large stone flags, carefully joined together. 2 The neighboring buildings, such as the Temple of the Three Tablets, the Temple of the Cross, and the Temple of the Sun, each have well-preserved roofs of masonry, which are quite remarkable. The first of these stands upon its lofty pyramidal base, measuring one hundred and ten feet on the slope, with continuous steps on all sides. The temple, which is thirty-five feet high, is crowned with a sloping ornamental roof of great beauty. Stephens illustrated the temple in several views, sub- sequently copied by Bancroft. 3 The roof is divided into three parts ; the lower section recedes from the cornice with a gentle slope, and resembles the corresponding section of a French or Mansard roof. The stucco decorations of this lower section, which is also painted, add considerably to the general effect. Five solid square projections with perpendicular faces suggestive of the attic windows of a modern French roof are found on this section, corresponding to the several doors of the temple imme- diately below. The second section, which slopes back at a more acute angle, is of solid masonry. The crowning section seems to have been purely ornamental, consisting of a line of pillars of stone and mortar, eighteen inches high and twelve inches apart, surmounted by a layer of flat stones with projecting sides. The Temple of the Cross and Temple of the Sun both have roof- structures which may be described as resembling a lattice-work of stone. The most interesting feature of Palenque architecture is 1 Tbid., Native Races, vol. 5v, p. 312. 2 Bancroft, vol. iv, p. 303. 8 Stephens, vol. ii, pp. 339-43, and Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 323-27. THE PALENQUE ARCH. 345 the arch, of which there are two styles, if one of them may be classed as an arch at all ; of this we have doubts. The style to which we allude is that which has been designated as the Yucatan arch. A section of the double corridor of the palace furnishes an example as shown in the cut from Mr. Ban- croft's work. This so-called arch is nothing more than the approach of two walls toward each other in straight lines, nearly forming an acute angle at the top. These inclining walls are constructed of overlapping stones, with a small surface of exposed ceiling, produced by a lin- tel-like covering. The prin- cipal doorway, which is eighteen feet high, is con- structed in the form of a trefoil arch, while niches or depressions of the same trefoil form are ranged along the inclined face of the gallery on each side of the entrance. This arch is suggestive of the Moorish pattern, though the latter probably is the more modern. The accompanying cut a photographic reduction from Waldeck will convey a clear idea of its form. The tower situated in the southern court is considered by Waldeck as the crowning work of all. The frontispiece is a photographic reduction from Waldeck's drawing, and no doubt indicates the true number of its stories, as well as the remarkable growth of vegetation upon its roof. The descent of the little roots and tendrils of the trees above in quest of nourishment, furnish a striking illustration of the luxuriant vegetable growth which pervades the region. The very air is laden with life, though the remains of man's handicraft and power are but the lifeless monuments of his vanished glory. The gentle evening breeze which plays upon the tendrils stretching themselves down the tower's wall, produces a soft melodious sound, resembling SECTION OF PALACE CORRIDOR. 346 THE TREFOIL ARCH, PALENQUE. that of the ^Eolian harp, and gives rise to the apprehension in the minds of the natives that the place is enchanted. 1 TREFOIL ARCH, PALENQUE. The second division of Maya architecture, namely, the Yuca- tan or modified style, presents some variations from the ancient 1 On the tower, see Waldeck's Pcdenque, p. iii, pi. xviii, xix. Morelet's Voyage, torn, i, p. 266. Bancroft, vol. iv, p. 315, and Brasseur de Bourbourg, Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, i, pp. 86-7. CASA DEL GOBERNADOR, UXMAL. 347 or Chiapan. Probably the most remarkable group of ruins in that richest of American architectural fields Yucatan is situated at Uxmal, in Lat. 20 27' 30", thirty-five miles south of Merida. The reader is of course acquainted with the detail of the survey of this remarkable city of antiquity through the work of Stephens and Catherwood. 1 These indefatigable ex- plorers examined about forty ruined cities, nearly all of which were previously unknown to others than the natives, and many of them were unknown at Merida, the capital of the country. While these travelers are pre-eminently the explorers of Yuca- tan, there are others whose services have been of great value in the same field. 2 Mr. Bancroft has divided the architectural remains in Yuca- tan into four groups, classifying them geographically. We do not consider it necessary to follow such a course, nor enter into the detailed description of any group, but will content ourselves by simply noting any variations from the Palenque models. At Uxmal our attention is at once arrested by the irregular pyramidal base of the building known as the Casa del Gobernador. The base of the pyramid is a figure of an irregular rectangular form. The northern and eastern sides of the base are equal, and measure about six hundred feet each ; the southern and western are, however, irregular. As all the angles are right angles, and two contiguous sides are equal, it will be understood that the figure of the base would have been a square, but for the irregularity of the remaining two sides. These irregularities fall within the figure of the square. The pyramid is terraced, the first promenade when observed being but three feet from the ground. The second terrace rises from 1 Stephens' Incidents of Travel in Yucatan. New York (1st ed. 1843, and others subsequently). s Waldeck, Voyage Pittoresque et Areheologique dans la Province r. !57. Kings- borough, pi. xxxv, fig. 37. Stephens, vol. ii, p. 355. Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 32S-30. 390 TABLET OF THE CROSS. TABLET OF THE CROSS. which begin at the left-hand upper corner with a large capital letter. Some one had removed the central stone from its posi- tion prior to Waldeck's visit, and conveyed it to a point in the forest not far distant. Stephens also found it in the same locality. By referring to the hieroglyphic tablet at the left of the cross A PALENQUE STATUE. 391 it will be observed that just below the large initial letter or word is a three- fold hieroglyphic, while seven others in the same column are double. This would indicate, we should think, that the characters were read from the top downwards, though it .is possible that the lines were read horizontally, each line beginning with a capital as in poetry. 1 On either side of the doorway opening to the inner sanctuary of the Cross, were originally two male figures sculptured in low-relief on stone ; one of them, which appears to represent an aged royal person, is beautifully clad in a leopard's skin, while the opposite figure, designed probably to represent youthful man- hood, is arrayed in what may be an elaborate military dress and plumed crest of magnificent character. He wears what appears to be a cuirass about his shoulders and chest. These tablets were removed to the village of Santo Domingo years ago and set up in a modern house, where they were offered to M. Waldeck on the sole condition that he should marry one of the proprietresses, though he at the time was more than sixty- four years of age. Stephens could have obtained them by purchas- ing the house in which they had PALENQUE STATUE. 1 Waldeck, p. vii, pi. xxi-ii. Stephens, vol. ii, pp. 845-7. Charnay, p. 4181 pi. xxi. Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 332-6. Especially see Rau's Pttleiujue Tahiti (Smithsonian Contrib., No. 331), for the best account of Tablet of the Cross. 392 TABLET OF THE SUN. been placed, but did not. 1 On the slope of the pyramid of the Cross, M. Waldeck found two statues just alike, one of which was unfortunately broken ; the other, subsequently sketched by Catherwood, is shown in the cut, a photographic reduction from Waldeck. These statues were ten and a half feet high, though two and a half feet of their length, not shown in the cut, formed a tenon by which they were embedded in the floor of the pyramidal surface, where Waldeck supposes they stood sup- porting a platform about twenty feet square, in front of the central doorway. These are the only statues ever found at Palenque ; but it is doubted whether they can be technically called statues, since the back is of rough stone, and unsculptured. They probably rested against a wall and served as supports for an upper roof or floor, as indicated by Waldeck. The head- dress has been pronounced Egyptian by all who have seen it. 2 In the temple of the Sun, in a position precisely correspond- ing to that occupied by the tablet of the cross, stands a some- what similar tablet cut in low-relief on three slabs covering an area of eight by nine feet. The figure of the cross in this instance is displaced by a hideous face or mask supposed to represent the sun, supported by a framework resting on the shoulders of crouching men. The priest and priestess occupy the same positions as occupied by them in the tablet of the cross. Each is in the act of presenting a child with masked face to the sun, and each is standing upon the back of a kneeling slave. The lateral tablets are covered with columns or rows of hieroglyphics, as in the tablet of the cross. 3 The stuccoed roofs and piers of both the temples Cross and Sun may be truly pronounced works of art of a high order. On the former, Stephens observed busts and heads approaching the Greek models in symmetry of contour and perfectness of proportion. M. Waldeck has pre- 1 Waldeck, pi. 23-24 ; Stephens, vol. ii, p. 352 ; Dupaix, p. 24, pi. xxxvii- viii ; mention in Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 332-3. 2 Waldeck, pi. 25 ; Stephens, vol. ii, pp. 344, 349 ; Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 336-7. with cut. 3 Waldeek, pi. xxvi-xxxii ; Stephens, vol. ii, pp. 351-4 ; Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 338-41. SCULPTURE AT UXMAL. 393 served in his magnificent drawings some of these figures, which are certainly sufficient to prove beyond controversy, that the ancient Palenqueans were a cultivated and artistic people. In passing to Uxmal the transition is from delineations of the human figure to the elegant and superabundant exterior orna- mentation of edifices, and from stucco to stone as the material employed. The human figure, however, when it is represented, is in statuary of a high order. The artists of Uxmal did not improve upon the Palenque models so much in the design as in the execution of their subjects. Uxmal statuary approximates more closely to what properly may be called statuary, being cut more nearly " in the round " and having less unfinished back surface than the Palenque statue. The elegant square panels of grecques and frets which compose the cornice of the Casa del Gobernador, delineated in the works of Stephens, Baldwin and Bancroft, are a marvel of beauty, which must excite the ad- miration of the most indifferent student of this subject. The ornamentation of this great cornice, equal to one-third the height of the building, is cut on blocks of stone and inserted in the wall with the utmost precision, so that every line matches, and the graceful arabesques and bas-reliefs, which sometimes cover several blocks with a single figure, are unbroken by appar- ent joints. The grandest specimens of American ornamental sculpture are, however, to be seen on the inner fronts of the four buildings of the Casa de Monjas, a plan of which is given on page 350 of this work. It will be remembered that these fronts face the court around which the buildings were constructed. The court front of the eastern building is probably one of the most tasteful and interesting specimens of sculpture to be met with in America. 1 M. Waldeck considers that it presents an appearance of grandeur of which it would be difficult to give an idea, while Stephens considers its chasteness of design a great relief from the gorgeous masses of other fa9ades. The cornice over the central doorway and the corners of the eastern court 1 Plates, Waldeck's Vvy- Pitt-, pi- xv-xvii ; Charnay's photographs have attested the accuracy of Waldeck's drawings ; Waldeck's views reproduced in Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 183-3. 394 SCULPTURED FACADES OP THE CASA DE MONJAS. fa9ade are ornamented with ugly masks and " elephant trunks " protruding from them, as in the Governor's home. 1 If the pre- ceding fagade is the most generally admired of those at Uxmal, " the most magnificent and beautiful front in America " is that of the Serpent Temple, or western court fagade of the Nunnery, as is shown in the accompanying engraving, which is a photo- graphic reduction of Waldeck's drawing employed in Mr. Ban- croft's work. Vm!Tffi\Tnmuri/iVn7liVVlll!iM WESTERN COURT FACADE CASA DE MONJAS. The marked feature of the sculpture is the formation of square panels by the intertwined bodies of two huge stone ser- pents with monster heads, surmounted by plumes and enclosing between the jaws of each a human face. A head and tail as shown above occupy opposite extremes of the front. This may be a representation of the plumed serpent of the Central Amer- ican mythology. The stone lattice-work (a feature of Uxmal sculpture) underlying the serpents and covering the panels 1 Stephens' Yuc., vol. i, p. 306 ; Waldeck's pi. xvi ; also see Charnay's phot. 39 ; Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 182-4 ; Viollet-le-Duc's drawing in Charnay, p. 65. THE SERPENT TEMPLE. 395 as SUN SYMBOL. formed by their folds, is more complicated and beautiful than any other in America. At regular intervals large grecques or arabesques, with their connecting bars lengthened to the width of the entire sculptured portion of the fa9ade, are distributed. Several panels are ornamented with life-sized human figures, while each panel contains a human face, some of which ar beautiful as the Greek models. The upper cornice is ornamented, as are all the other cor- nices of the Nunnery, with what are supposed to be Sun symbols, one of which is shown in the cut, reduced photographically from Wai- deck's drawing. The appended "feathers" are almost Assyrian in their type, while the double triangle within the circle is certainly an ancient symbol in the old world. The "elephant trunks" and rude masks employed as ornaments above the doorways of the other fronts, are also numerous here. Since M. Waldeck's visit portions of this wonderful example of ancient decorative art have fallen. 1 The northern building of the court offers no sculptured contrasts with the other buildings, except that above the upper cornice, thirteen turrets, each seventeen feet high and ten feet wide, are distributed at regular intervals, and are also covered with sculpture resembling the grecques of the Serpent temple. Most of the sculptures at Uxmal were probably painted, as traces of various colors were observed in sheltered localities. The rich sculptures of the prophet's house were painted blue, red, yellow and white, according to M. Waldeck. The Mayas no doubt employed the brush freely, and in some instances with skill. In the gymnasium at Chichen-Itza, Stephens grew enthusiastic 1 Cut from Waldeck's Voy. Pitt., pi. xiii-xviii and p. 100 ; reproduced by Bancroft, vol. iv, p. 185, of which ours is an electrotype copy. See also Stephens' Yucatan, vol. i, pp, 302-3 ; Charnay, Ruines Amer., phot. 40, 41, 44 ; Norman's Rambles in Yucatan, p. 162. "ELEPHANT TRUNK." DR. LE PLONGEON IN YUCATAN. over the exceedingly fine series of paintings in bright colors, which cover the walls of one of the chambers. Many of the pictures have been destroyed by the falling of the plaster upon which they were painted. In this series of pictures, battles, processions, houses, trees and a variety of objects are represented blue, red, yellow and green are the colors employed, though the human figures are painted reddish brown. 1 At Chichen, as elsewhere, the favorite subject for the Maya sculpture was the serpent. A colossal serpent balustrade is one of the wonders of this interesting place. Dr. Augustus Le Plongeon, during the last quarter of the year 1875, made an extensive exploration of Chichen-Itza. The reports of his discoveries seem at first well-nigh fabulous, though their authenticity is so well attested as to leave no room for doubt. Mr. Stephen Salisbury, Jr., of Worcester, Massachu- setts, has in several memoirs of intense interest and unusual scientific value, communicated the progress and results of Dr. Le Plongeon's exploration in Yucatan to the American An- tiquarian Society. Mr. Salisbury has also presented the ex- plorer's original memoirs, accompanied by photographs made at Chichen-Itza and on the Islands of Cozumel and Mugeres. These valuable documents have reached the public in Mr. Salis- bury's publications entitled, (.1.) The Mayas, the Sources of their History (Worcester, 1877, with heliotype reproductions of the photos); (2.) Maya Archaeology (Worcester, 1879, with heliotype reproductions of photos and drawings). 2 In these pages we are impressed with the fact that the darkness which has so long enveloped the antiquity of Yucatan is soon to be displaced by the noon-day of scientific investigation. Still we cannot refrain from expressing the regret that Dr. Le Plongeon's enthusiasm is so apparent in his reports. A judicial frame of mind, as well as the calmness which accompanies it, are requisites both for scien- 1 Stephens' Yucatan, vol. ii, pp. 303-11 ; Charnay's Euines Amer., pp. 140-1, phot. 33, 34 ; Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iv, pp. 220-36. 2 Mr. Salisbury, with the most liberal courtesy, has furnished the heliotypes and photos from which the accompanying engravings were made. We take this opportunity of expressing publicly our thanks for this rare favor. STATUE OF CHAAC MOL. tific work and the inspiration of confidence in the reader. Not- withstanding this, our views have been most happily expressed by the committee of the American Antiquarian Society, to whom was entrusted the publication of Dr. Le Plongeon's memoirs. Their statement is as follows : " The successes of Du Cbaillu, Schliemann, and of Stanley, are remarkable instances of triumphant results in cases where enthusiasm had been sup- posed to lack the guidance of wisdom. If earnest men are willing to take the risks of personal research in hazardous regions, or exercise their ingenuity and their scholarship in attempting to solve historical or archaeological problems, we may accept thankfully the information they give, without first demanding in all cases unquestionable evidence or absolute demonstration." Dr. Le Plongeon says of the columns at Chichen, " the base is formed by the head of Cukulcan, the shaft by the body of the serpent, with its feathers beautifully carved to the very chapter. On the chapters of the columns that support the portico, at the entrance of the castle in Chichen-Itza, may be seen the carved figures of long bearded men, with upraised hands, in the act of worshipping sacred trees. They forcibly recall to mind the same worship in Assyria." In consequence of the successful interpretation of certain hieroglyphic inscriptions at Chichen, the explorer and his wife (who accompanied him in his perilous enterprise), learned that the statue of Chaac Mol, or Balam, (the tiger king), the greatest of the Itza monarchs, had been buried below the surface of the ground at a certain point, dis- tant four hundred yards from the palace. The first result of excavation in the locality indicated was the discovery of a sculp- tured tiger of colossal size, having a human head, which, un- fortunately, was broken off. Several slabs bearing sculptures of tigers and birds of prey in relief were unearthed. A pedestal supporting the sculptured tiger apparently had once occupied the spot, and its destruction had left a mound of debris. Seven metres below the surface of this mound a rough stone urn contain- ing a little dust was secured, and upon it an earthen cover. This was near the head of the statue of Chaac Mol, which was next 398 SCULPTURED SLABS AT CHICHEN-ITZA. disclosed. The statue is of a white calcareous stone, one metre fifty-five centimetres long, one metre fifteen centimetres in height, and eighty centimetres wide, and weighed fifty kilos. The statue represents the reclining figure of a man, who is naked SCULPTURED SLAB FOUND AT CHICHEN-ITZA. except that he is adorned with a head-dress, with bracelets, garters of feathers, and sandals similar to those found upon the mummies of the ancient G-uanchies of the Canary Islands. The statue of Chaac Mol was seized by Mexican officials and sent to the capital. Our friend, the Rev. John W. Butler, of SCULPTURED SLABS AT CI1ICHEN-ITZA. 399 the city of Mexico, writes to us (letter received October 10, 1878) concerning the statue : " It is just as represented. It may be seen in the National Museum, just opposite its exact SCULPTURED SLAB FOUND AT CHICHEN-ITZA. duplicate, which was found under the Plaza of the city of Mexico, some years ago. What is the meaning of this ? tribe whose king (or god?) it was, must have migrated torn ward, for the one excavated in Mexico shows greater age the one from Yucatan." In reply we would say that the evi- 400 STATUE OF CHAAC MOL. dences are sufficient that the Maya civilization once extended farther north than the city of Mexico, but the conquests of the Nahuas drove that ancient people no doubt to abandon their northern territory and to confine themselves to their lands farther south. Dr. Le Plongeon, in speaking of the historical value of the statue, says Chaac Mol was one of the three brothers whom tra- STATUE OF CHAAC MOL. ditipn declares were the co-rulers of Yucatan at a very ancient period. Chaac Mol and his beautiful queen Kinich-Kakmo were the powerful sovereigns of the kingdom of Chichen-Itza. Aac, one of the brothers, becoming enamored of his sister-in-law Kinich-Kakmo, slew Chaac Mol that he might make her his wife. The funeral-chamber, the mural paintings, the statues, and the monument of the. murdered king found by the explorer, were memorials of the sad event which the faithful queen caused to be executed by the artisans and artists of the royal MURAL PAINTING FROM CHAAC MOL MONUMENT. 401 city. Dr. Le Plongeon remarks : " In the funeral-chamber, the terrible altercation between Aac and Chaac Mol, which had its termination in the murder of the latter by his brother, is represented by large figures, three-fourths life size. There Aac is painted holding three spears in his hands, typical of the three wounds he inflicted on the back of his brother. These wounds are indicated on the statue of the dying tiger (symbol of Chaac Mol) by two holes near the lumbar region, and one under the left scapula, proving that the blow was aimed at the heart from behind. The two wounds are also marked by two holes near each other in the lumbar region, on the bas-relief of the tiger eating a human heart that adorned the Chaac Mol mausoleum (see sculptured slab on page 399)." 1 Mr. Stephen Salisbury, Jr., in his Maya Archceology, has reproduced one of Dr. and Mrs. Le Plongeon's tracings of a mural painting in the funeral-chamber of the Chaac Mol monu- ment at Chichen-Itza. Through the courtesy of Mr. Salisbury we have been permitted to copy it for this work. The Doctor interprets it as representing the queen Kinich-Kakmo when a child consulting an H-Men, one of the Maya wise men or astrol- ogers, in order to know her destiny. The prediction is based upon the lines produced by fire on the shell of an armadillo or turtle, and is expressed in the colors of the elaborate scroll pro- ceeding from the throat of the H-Men. Referring to his tracings of mural paintings at Chichen-Itza, Dr. Le Plongeon says " they represent war scenes with javelins flying in all directions, warriors fighting, shouting, assuming all sorts of athletic posi- tions, scenes from domestic life, marriage ceremonies, temples with complete domes, proving that the Itza architects were acquainted with the circular arch, but made use of the triangular probably because it was the custom and style of architecture of the time and country." 2 Besides the sculptures of long-bearded men seen by the explorer at Chichen-Itza mentioned on a pre- 1 Archaeological Communication on Yucatan, by Dr. Le Plongeon in Salis- bury's Maya Archaeology, p. 65, and Proceedings of Am. Antiq. 8oc., October 21, 1878. 2 Maya Archaeology, p. 61. 26 402 MURAL PAINTING FROM CHAAC MOL MONUMENT. TERRA-COTTA FIGURE FROM ISLA MUUERES. 403 ceding page, were tall figures of people with small heads, thick lips, and curly short hair or wool, regarded as negroes. " We always see them as standard or parasol bearers, but never en- gaged in actual warfare." 1 He pronounces the features of the long-bearded men pictured on the walls of the queen's chambers to be Assyrian in their type. On the Isla Mugeres (in the latter part of the year 1876), Dr. Le Plongeon exhumed por- tions of a female figure in terra-cotta, which indicate an advanced state of art among the ancient Mayas. The fragments of the statue, consisting of the head and feet, were probably attached to the front of a brasero or incense-burner used at the shrine of the Maya Venus, located on the southern ex- tremity of the island. It was immediately in front of this shrine, visited by Cordova in 1516, 2 that the remains of the statue were found buried in the sand. The expression of the face TERRA-COTTA FIGURE FROM ISLA MUGF.RES. is cruel and savage, the nos- trils are perforated and also the pupils of the eyes. The teeth are filed as those of the statue Chaac Mol are said to be. The head is surmounted by a head-dress eight inches high. The 1 Ibid., p. 62. * See Torquemada, Monarchist Indiana, lib. iv, cap. 3, and Herrera, L Gen. Ind., decade ii, lib. iv, cap. 17, quoted by Salisbury, Maya Archaology, pp. 33-35. 404 THE CARA GIGANTESCA. fragments of this statue are now in the possession of Mr. Salis- bury. 1 Through the courtesy of the owner we are enabled to present a photographic reduction of the relics in the preceding cut. At Izamel, the burial-place of the culture-hero Zamna, a remarkable example of aboriginal sculpture is found upon the side of a mound now enclosed in a private court-yard. This specimen of art, known as the Cara gigantesca, or gigan- tic face, measures seven feet in width and seven feet eight inches in height. " The fea- tures were first rudely formed by small rough stones, fixed in the side of the mound by means of mortar, and after- wards perfected with a stucco so hard that it has success- fully resisted for centuries the action of air and water." The accompanying cut from Mr. Bancroft's work will show the type of features. The subject of Maya sculpture is almost a limitless one, but we trust that the above-cited examples may give the reader a comprehensive acquaintance with the existing types. The sculp- ture of Copan is no less remarkable than its architecture. In fact, every object bore the skillful marks of the graver's chisel. The great number of sculptured obelisks, pillars and idols have been the wonder of every reader of Mr. Stephens' description. Since his work is so generally known, we refrain from presenting more than one example of Copan art. In the accompanying cut employed in Mr. Bancroft's work the elaborateness of the sculp- ture will be observed, and may well be pronounced a marvel of aboriginal art. THE CARA GIGANTESCA. 1 See Terra-cotta Figure from Isla Mugeres, by Stephen Salisbury, Jr., in Maya Archeology (heliotypes). COPAN SCULPTURE. 405 But for the perfectly hori- zontal position of the eyes, the aspect of some of the faces represented by Stephens would strike us as having a Mongolian cast. The mag- nificently sculptured hierogly- phics which cover the sides and backs of these huge idols, no doubt could tell the sealed story of Copan's greatness and the attributes of its many gods, were the key once discov- ered. Everything is covered with these significant sym- bols, differing slightly from those at Palenque ; but who will read them ? In the court of the temple, a solid block of stone six feet square and four feet high, resting on four globular stones was sketched by Catherwood, and pronounc- ed an altar by Stephens. Six- teen figures in profile, with turbaned heads, breast-plates, and each seated cross-legged on hieroglyphic-like cushions, are sculptured jn low-relief, four figures being on each side of the block. The top of the altar is covered with thirty-six squares of hierogly- phics, shown in a cut on a future page. Besides num- bers of masks, effigies and rows of death's heads at Co- COPAN STATUE. 406 NAHUA SCULPTURE. pan, there are sculptures of the face which we may believe to have been portraits. The Copan sculpture is generally admitted to be of a high order, and Stephens thinks it unsurpassed in Egypt. The receding forehead of most of the portraits have excited general interest, and are believed to be delineations of the priestly or aristocratic type. No weapons are sculptured at Copan, but on the contrary altars abound in considerable num- bers, especially in front of the sculptured obelisks or idols. The presumption is therefore strong that this was a religious centre, unmolested by any enemy, and undisturbed by the alarm of war. 1 Nahua Sculpture. The Nahua sculpture is not of as high an order nor of as frequent occurrence as that of the Mayas. At Monte Alban in Oajaca, in a gallery within a mound, Castaneda sketched the sculptured profile shown in the accompanying cut, employed in Mr. Bancroft's work. It is cut upon the face of a granite block about three feet square^ and is interesting be- cause of the Chinese-like queue which hangs from the figure's head. At Mitla the grecques and arabesques which cover the fagades of the several edifices are not sculptured, except in cases where large stones serve as lintels over doorways. On them the running borders are sculp- tured in low-relief, while the remainder of the profuse orna- mentation is of the nature of mosaic work, being built into the wall. Several minor objects of sculpture found in the States of Oajaca and Vera Cruz might be cited, but their interest for the reader would be too insignificant to justify a description. 2 One 1 Stephens, Cent. Amer., vol. i, pp. 103-4, 134-43 with plates ; Foster, Pre- Historic Races, pp. 302-322, 338-9 ; Qalindo in Amer. Antiq. Soc. Trans., vol. ii, pp. 548-9 ; Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 89-105, with cuts. * Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 371, 381, 385, 387, 414, 415, 421, 427, 428, 435, 436, FIGURE FROM MONTE ALBAN. SCULPTURED FOUNTAIN AT TUSAPAN. 4Q7 of the principal objects of this class and much superior to any of the others is a grotesque fountain cut in the living rock at Tusapan. The statue is that of a woman in a kneeling posture, and measures nineteen feet in height. The waters of a neigh- boring spring formerly ran into a basin formed among the plumes of the female's head-dress, from which it found its way through the entire length of the figure, and flowed forth from beneath her skirts. 1 At Panuco the traditional point of the arrival of the Nahuas, several rude limestone statues were found, some of which have been figured in the Journal of the London Geographical Society, by Mr. Vetch, one of which is copied by Mr. Bancroft. 3 The marked features of these statues is the elaborateness of the style of head-dress worn. We cannot see that they are far removed in their style from similar statues dug from mounds in the Mississippi Valley. In the State of Puebla, at various points, especially at Tepexe el Viejo, at Tepeaca, and at Quanhquelchula, minor sculptures of animals, birds, reptiles, monsters, etc., were observed by Dupaix. 3 Rat- tlesnakes were found plentiful both in sculptures and in a state of nature. At Cuernavaca, in the State of Mexico, numerous boulder-sculptures, finely executed in low-relief, exist. Dupaix has figured and Bancroft copied one in particular, showing a beautiful coat-of-arms, sculptured on the smooth face of a huge boulder. A circle of arrows and Maltese cross which compose them, are all symbolical of power. 4 Similar coats-of-arms were 455, 457, 462, has figured some of these, but all indicate an order of art inferior to the Maya. 1 Nebel, Viaje Pintoresco ; Mayer's Hex. Aztec, vol. ii, pp. 199, 200; Ban- croft, vol. iv, pp. 457-8. 2 Vetch, in London Geog. 8oc. Jour., voL vii, pp. 1-11, plate ; Bancroft, vol. iv, p. 462. 8 Dupaix, Third Expedition, p. 5, pi. i-ii ; Ibid, First Expedition, pp. 3-4, pi. i-ii, fig. 1, 2 ; p. 10, pi. xii ; pp. 12-13, pi. xvii-xxii, fig. 19, 24 ; Second Expedition, p. 51, pi. Ixi, fig. 117 ; Kingsborough, vol. v, pp. 285-6 ; vol. iv, pi. i-ii, fig. 1-3; vol. vi, p. 467; vol. v, pp. 209-10 ; vol. vi, pp. 421-2; vol. iv, pi. 5, fig. 1-4; vol. v, p. 217; vol. iv, p. vi, fig. 16, and Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 467-69. * Dupaix, First Expedition, p. 14 ; Bancroft, vol. iv, p. 481. 408 XOCHICALCO SCULPTURE. observed in the State of Puebla. Probably the most remarkable sculpture found in the country occupied by the Nahuas, is that upon the walls of the pyramid of Xochicalco, illustrated on a preceding page. 1 Most of the sculptures are of colossal dragons' heads, which occur at each of the corners. Human figures, seated cross-legged and holding something like the Assyrian sun symbol in the left are found on the frieze, though some observers have considered this figure to be that of a curved cross-hilted sword, a weapon never employed by the Nahuas. The elaborate head-dresses and strings of enormous pearls worn by the seated figures bear a striking resemblance to the stuccoes of Palenque. At Xochimilco on the western shore of Lake Chalco, Dupaix found several interesting specimens of ancient sculpture. 2 The most celebrated article of Aztec sculpture, unquestionably, is the calendar-stone, which, together with the so-called sacrificial stone and the idol Teoyaomiqui, was in December, 1790, dug up in the Plaza Mayor, in the city of Mexico, on the supposed site of the great teoealli, destroyed by the conquerors. The calendar-stone, now built into the wall of the cathedral, where it can be seen by all passers-by, is a rectangular block of porphyry, thirteen feet one inch square and three feet three inches thick, and of the enormous estimated weight of twenty-four tons. The sculptured portion of the block, on the exposed face, is contained in a circle, eleven feet one inch and four-fifths of an inch in diameter. The regularity and geometrical precision with which the figures are executed called forth enthusiastic admiration from Humboldt, and has been the source of equal wonderment to many later observers. Our cut is a reproduction of Charnay's photograph, by means of the photo-engraving process, and may be relied upon as absolutely correct. Prescott considers that the original weight of the block before it was mutilated must have been nearly fifty tons ; and as no similar stone is found within a radius of twenty- five miles of Mexico, that it must have been brought from the mountains beyond Lake Chalco. 3 Some remarks upon the 1 Tliis work, p. 372. 2 Bancroft, vol. iv, p. 499, has reproduced some of them. 3 Humboldt, Vues, torn, i, pp. 332 et s?q.; torn, ii, pp. 1 et seq. and 84-5, CALENDAR-STONE. 409 Aztec calendar will be found in the following chapter. The sacrificial stone is a cylindrical block of porphyry, nine feet ten inches in diameter and three feet seven inches thick, and is now lying in the courtyard of the University of Mexico. If the reader will imagine the border of the calendar-stone outside AZTEC CALENDAR STONE IN ITS PRESENT CONDITION. of the eight triangular points removed entirely, will substitute a concave basin in the place of the central face or sun, also instead of all the calendar signs intervening between the face and the circle, upon which the base of the four principal triangular figures rest, will imagine the existence of several concentric pi viii, (fol. ed. pi. xxiii) ; Mayer, Mexico As it Was. pp. 12G-8 ; Prescott. Omq. Mex, vol. i, pp. 126, 145-6 ; vol. ii, pp. 112, ed. 1875 ; Bancroft, vol. pp. 505-9, and cut. 410 SCULPTURED BURIAL VASE. circles not unlike strings of beads, he will have a general idea of the top of the stone. We should not omit to state that a groove or channel leads from the central basin to the outer cir- cumference. The use of the stone is a matter of controversy, Humboldt considering it the gladia- torial stone, Gama a calendar-stone, and Tylor that it was an altar on which animals were sacrificed. Fif- teen groups of two human figures, each dressed in the insignia of royalty, are sculptured around its circumfer- ence. Bancroft, as well as several others, give cuts of the stone and sculptures. The horrid monster Teo- yaomiqui goddess of death is sculp- tured in high-relief on a block of porphyry ten feet high and six feet wide and thick. Probably no myth- ology nor all the mythologies of the world besides could produce so hideous and unsightly a combination of reptile, BURIAL URN FROM MEXICO. human and infernal formgj ag make up the three sides of this idol. 1 Mr. Bancroft first figured the beautiful earthen burial vase dug up in the Plaza Tlatelulco and sketched by Col. Mayer. It is twenty-two inches high and fifteen and a half inches in diameter ; a closely fitting lid most chastely sculptured covered it, as will be seen in the accompanying cut. Among the elegant sculptures upon one of its sides is a comely face surmounted by a crown, from each side of which project wings of the same character as were employed to symbolize the sun among the Assyrians. 2 The original is pronounced one of the 1 Humboldt, Vues, torn, ii, pp. 148-61 (fol. ed., pi. xxix) ; Ibid, Antiq. Mex., torn, i, div. ii, pp. 25-7, suppl. pi. vi ; Nebel, Viaje, with large plate ; Mayer, Mex. Aztec, vol. i, pp. 108-11 ; Ibid, Mexico As it Was, pp. 109-14 ; Bullock's Mexico, pp. 337-43 ; Leon y Gama, Dos Piedras, pt. i, pp. 1-3, 9, 10, 34, and five plates latterly cited by Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 512-15, four plates. 3 Bancroft, vol. iv, p. 517 ; Mayer, Mexico As it Was, pi. 100-1 ; Ibid, Mex, Aztec, vol. ii, p. 274. VASES FROM WALDECK. 411 VASES FROM WALDECK. finest relics preserved in the Mexican Museum. M. Waldeck has figured many beautiful examples of Mexican ceramic art pre- served in the above collection as well as in others. The finest specimens of ancient terra-cotta work of which we have any 412 MOSAIC KNIFE. knowledge are shown in the cut, photographically reduced from Waldeck's plate. 1 No description can convey any idea of their beauty. The upper left-hand vase, it will be observed, is supported on three feet, each perforated by a perfect Maltese Cross. The central lower vase, of remarkable symmetry, is distinguished by the per- fect crux ansata which adorns its side. The lower right and left hand figures are different views of a swinging lamp. These vases cannot but command the admiration of all who see them. MOSAIC KNIFE CHRISTY COLLECTION. M. Waldeck has delineated with remarkable artistic skill three specimens of Mexican mosaic work now in the Christy collection in London. One of these beautiful relics is shown in the cut, reduced from Waldeck's colored plate for Mr. Bancroft's work. However, the cut conveys but a faint idea of its beauty, especially of the handle. The blade is of semi-translucent chalcedony from the volcanic regions of Mexico, while the handle is a most artistic mosaic of bright green turquoise, malachite, and white and red shells. The blade is of a light straw-colored tint, and is mortised in the handle, which is wrapped nearest to the blade with what appears to be a golden braid. Mr. Bancroft remarks " it is certainly most extraordinary to find a people still in the stone age, as is proved by the blade, able to execute so perfect a piece of work as the handle exhibits." 2 Among the few 1 Waldeck's Palenque, pi. 55. 2 Waldeck's Palenque, p. viii, pi. xliv. Tylor's AnaTiuac, pp. 110, 337, for information concerning the masks. Also Bancroft, vol. iv, pp. 557-9. COLUMN FROM TULA. 413 relics recovered at Tula, the ancient Toltec capital Tollan, the column shown in the cut (from Mr. Bancroft's work) is very interesting, both for its sculpture and for the exhibition it affords of the manner in which the Toltecs formed their columns, namely, by fastening the sections together by means of circular tenons. The largest block measures four feet long by two and a half in diameter. A COLUMN PROM TULA. Our National Museum at Washington contains numerous fine specimens of Mexican terra-cotta ware, some of which have been figured recently in Dr. Charles Rau's " Archaeological Col- lection of the U. S. National Museum." l Two large vases in particular demand attention. These were brought to the United States by General Alfred Gibbs at the close of the Mexican war, and are shown in the cut. The upper vase, which is thirteen and a half inches high, is very elaborately wrought, being surrounded with ten female figures in relief, each alternate figure bearing a child on the left arm. It is noticeable that the head-dresses of the figures holding the children are more elaborate than those of the re- maining figures. The second or lower vase, Dr. Rau considers equal to many Etruscan or Greek vases in gracefulness of out- line. "The vessel may be compared to a pitcher with two handles, standing opposite each other, and with two mouths projecting between them." Among the terra-cotta images of Mexican origin in the National Museum the two shown in the cut are of interest. The left-hand figure is that of a woman pressing her hands upon her ears. The face represents an aged 1 Smithsonian Contribution, No. 287, pp. 83-7 (1876). MEXICAN VASES IN THE NATIONAL MUSEUM. STATUETTES IN THE NATIONAL MUSEUM. 415 individual. The Museum possesses almost an exact duplicate of this image. The right-hand figure is much smaller and is hollow, enclosing a clay ball, and was probably used as a rattle. It is scarcely necessary for us to remark that the seeming analo- STATUETTES IN THE NATIONAL MUSEUM. gies between the Maya (Central American) sculpture and that of Egypt have often been noted. Juarros, in speaking of Palenque art, says: "The hieroglyphics, symbols and emblems which have been discovered in the temples, bear so strong resemblance to those of the Egyptians, as to encourage supposition that a colony of that nation may have founde 416 EGYPTIAN TAU AT PALENQUE. city of Palenque or Culhuacan." 1 Giordan found, as he thought, the most striking analogies between the Central American remains, as well as those of Mexico, and those of the Egyptians. The idols and monuments he considers of the same form in both countries, while the hieroglyphics of Palenque do not differ from those of ancient Thebes. 2 Senor Melgar, in a communication to the Mexican Geographical Society, has called attention to the frequent occurrence of the (T) tau at Palenque, and has more studiously advocated the early relationship of the Palenqueans to Egypt than any other reliable writer. 3 He cites Dupaix's Third Expedition, page 77 and plates 26 and 27, where in the first figure is a goddess with a necklace supporting a tau like medallion to which the explorer adds the remark that such is " the symbol in Egypt of reproduction or abundance." In the second plate he finds an altar dedicated expressly to the tau. He considers that the cultus of this, the symbol of the active principle in nature, prevailed in Mexico in many places. Senor Melgar also refers to two idols found south of the city of Mexico, " in one of which two symbols were united, namely, the Cosmo- gonic egg, symbolical of creation, and two faces, symbols of the generative principle. The other symbolized creation in the bursting forth of an egg. These symbols are not found in the Aztec mythology, but belong to the Indian, Egyptian, Greek, Persian, Japanese and other cosmogonies." This, the Senor considers proof that these peoples were the primitive colonists of that region, and seeks to sustain his views by references to the Dharma Sastra of Manou and the Zend Avesta. The reader has no doubt been surprised at the frequent occurrence of the T-shaped niches in the Palenque palace, and has observed the same symbol employed on some of the hieroglyphics of the Tablet of the Cross. The Egyptian tau, one of the members of the Crux ansata, is certainly present at Palenque, but whether it was derived from any one of the Mediterranean peoples who 1 Hist. Kingdom Guatemala, p. 19. Lond., 1823. 2 F. Giordan, Description et colonization de I'Isthme de Tehuantepec, p. 57. Paris, 1838. 3 Melgar in Hex. Geog. Soc. Bolletin, 2d epoca, torn, iii, p. 112 et seq. CRUX ANSATA. 417 employed it, cannot be ascertained. Among the Egyptians it signified "life," as is shown by the best Egyptologists. 1 The tau was usually surmounted by a roundlet, though such was not always the case. On a stele from Korasabad, an eagle-headed man is depicted as holding the oval in one hand and the cross in the other. 2 M. Mariette recently, while exploring the ancient temple of Denderah, discovered the sacred symbol in a niche of the holy of holies. It is probable that this emblem was the central object of interest in these inner precincts of the temple, as it was preserved with scrupulous care as the hidden wisdom. 3 Macrobius tells us that the crux ansata was the hieroglyphic sign of Osiris or the Sun, 4 but other writers inform us that it was an ancient symbol of majesty and divinity, and so employed in a modified form in the hands of Brahma, Vishnu and Siva. 5 The associations of the tau in Central America are such as to lead us to believe that it may have had a significance analogous to that which it possessed on the shores of the Mediterranean, the Nile, and the Ganges. The Palenque Cross tablet is a most singular work of American antiquity, and though Mr. Stephens attempted to prove that no analogy exists between it and Egyp- tian sculptures, still Mr. Bancroft has shown that the former was unfortunate in his selection of Egyptian specimens for the purpose of comparison, since marked analogies between the sculp- ture of the Vocal Memnon of Thebes and the top of the fallen obelisk at Carnac and the Palenque Tablets exist. 6 1 Dr. Max Uhlmann, Handbuch der gesamten ^Egyptischen AUerthumxkunde, I Theil. Oenchichte der Egyptologie, p. 108. Leipzic, 1857. 2 Botta, Mon. de Ninive, vol. ii, pi. 58, and Edinburgh Review for Jan. 1870, p. 231. 3 John Newton in Appendix to Inman's Ancient Pagan and Modern Chris- tian Symbolism, p. 116. London, 1874. 4 Saturn, lib. i, cap. 20. 5 Zoeckler, Das Kreutz Christi, p. 9, Gtiterelo, 1875, and Edinburgh Review, Jan. 1870, p. 232. Mr. Bancroft remarks, " He happens, however, here to have selected Egyptian subjects which almost find their counterparts in America. In the preceding volume of this work, page 333, is given a cut of what is called the ' Tablet of the Cross ' at Palenque. In this we see a cross and perched upon it 27 418 PALENQUE INFLUENCED FROM THE MEDITERRANEAN. It has been argued that the Egyptian and Palenque sculp- ture resemble each other in that both are generally in profile ; but the trivialness of the reasoning will be at once apparent. On the contrary, Mr. Bancroft remarks, " Sculpture in Egypt is for the most part in intaglio, in America it is usually in relief." Notwithstanding the oft-repeated assertion that a resemblance between Egyptian and Maya hieroglyphics exist, no one of the Egyptologists so successful in their chosen field have been able to decipher the Maya writing. It is not improbable that the Palenque and Copan civilization received its first impulse from some of the peoples of the southern or eastern shores of the Mediterranean, but from which it would be impossible to say even if we were certain that such was the case. Whatever of a foreign character it may have had at first has been mostly lost in the independent development of new and original charac- teristics, the natural outgrowth of new wants and new condi- tions, arising through the lapse of many centuries. The latter remark we think may be applied with even more certainty to the Nahua civilization as displayed in its sculpture. All through Mexico the favorite subject for the Toltec or Aztec sculptor was the serpent, generally the rattlesnake. Mr. Bancroft in his a bird, to which (or to the cross) two human figures in profile, apparently priests, are making an offering. In Mr. Stephens' representation from the Vocal Memnon we find almost the same thing, the differences being 1 , that instead of an ornamented Latin cross, we have here a crux commissa, or pa- tibulata ; that instead of one bird there are two, not on the cross but imme- diately above it, and that the figures, though in profile and holding the same general positions, are dressed in a different manner, and are apparently binding the cross with the lotus instead of making an offering to it ; in Mr. Stephens' representation from the obelisk of Carnac, however, a priest is evidently mak- ing an offering to a large bird perched upon an altar ; and here again the human figures occupy the same position. The hieroglyphics, though the characters are of course different, are, it will be noticed, disposed upon the stone in much the same manner. The frontispiece of Stephens' Cent. Amer., vol. ii, described on p. 852, represents the tablet, on the back wall of the altar, Casa No. 3 at Palenque. Once more here are two priests clad in all the elaborate insignia of their office, standing one on either side of a table or altar, upon which are erected two batons, crossed in such a manner as to form a crux decus- sata, and supporting a hideous mask. To this emblem they are making an offjrin^." Bancroft's Native Races, vol. v, pp. 60-1, note. HIEROGLYPHICS. 419 fourth volume has given numerous examples of this fact. Ser- pent sculpture was also common among the Mayas, but to a less extent, and it is not improbable that the symbol entered into their art through the Quiches a mixed people composed of Mayas and Nahuas. We have already observed the same dis- position to sculpture the rattlesnake among the Mound-builders. In the great serpent upwards of a thousand feet in length on Brush Creek, Adams County, Ohio, we find a striking analogy to the tendency of Mexican art. Furthermore, the great ser- pent grasps in its jaws (if they may be so called) an immense oval figure of precisely the shape of an egg, and " the combined figure is regarded as a symbolical illustration of the Oriental cosmological idea of the serpent and the egg." We have seen in the remarks of Senor Melgar that two examples of the egg possessing precisely the same significance which is attached to it in Eastern Asia were found near the City of Mexico. The part which the serpent symbol plays in the south and east Asiatic sculpture and mythology is probably well known to the reader ; and if not, a perusal of Maurace's Indian Antiquities or Moor's Hindu Pantheon will satisfy him that it occupied a place equally important among Nahuas and Hindoos. The great serpent in Ohio may be a connecting link between the art of both Mexicans and Asiatics. In the course of independent development which the Nahuas underwent during thousands of years, the Cosmo- logical symbol of the egg may have been lost and supplanted by that of the serpent alone, the emblem of the life principle in both America and Asia. However, we may safely close these speculations with the conclusion that though the Mayas and Nahuas were probably descendants of foreign stock, their civil- ization, so far as we are able to judge from their arts, was indigenous developed upon our soil, and offering but few anal- ogies to any other. Hieroglyphics. No well authenticated Mound-builder hiero- glyphics have as yet come to light. The Grave Creek Mound tablet we believe is now shown unquestionably to be an archaeo- logical fraud. The Cincinnati tablet figured in our first chnpti r seems to bear some symbolic signs upon its face, but no resem- 420 HIEROGLYPHICS. blance can be traced between them and any other known hiero- glyphic signs. The Davenport tablet if genuine is of great interest in that it abounds in hieroglyphics, some of which are not unlike some of the signs employed by the Aztecs ; besides, the ele- ment of picture-writing so common to that people plays a promi- nent part on both sides of that mysterious stone. Col. Charles Whittlesey, in the second chapter of his Report to the Centennial Commission of Ohio (already cited), has figured and described rock sculpture near Barnesville, Newark, Independence, Amherst and Wellsville, most of which are of the lowest grade of savage art, and we think can only be attributed to the red Indian. Mr. W. H. Holmes has furnished specimens of picture- writing of a rude character found engraven in the rocks of the canon of the Rio Mancos and San Juan, but there is no evidence that they are or are not the work of the Cliff-dwellers whose works abound upon neighboring rocks. 1 We have already called attention to the tablets of hieroglyphics at Palenque, Copan and in Yucatan, a specimen of which is shown in a cut on page 390. The accompanying cut, employed by Stevens, Bald- win and Bancroft, show the thirty-six squares of hieroglyphics engraven upon the top of a Copan altar. In addition to these stone and stucco records, the Mayas had books, which Bishop Landa describes as written on a large leaf doubled in folds and enclosed between two boards which they ornamented ; they wrote on both sides of the paper, in columns accommodated to the folds ; the paper they made from the roots x of trees, and coated it with a white varnish on which one could write well. These books were called Analtees, a word which, according to Villagutierre, signifies the same as history. 2 Bishop Landa confesses to having burned a great number of the Maya books because they contained nothing in which were not supersti- tions and falsities of the devil. 3 Bancroft has quoted from Peter Martyr a description of these books, which conveys the additional 1 W. H. Holmes in Bulletin of the Geog. and Qeol. Survey of the Territories, Vol. II, No. I, p. 20, PI. 11 and 12. - Landa, Relation, p. 44. Villagutierre, Cong. Itza, pp. 393-4. Bancroft, vol. ii, p. 768. Relation, p. 316. HIEROGLYPHICS ON THE COP AN ALTAR. 421 information that they were written on many leaves joined together but folded so that when opened two pages are presented to view.' Three of the Maya manuscripts are known to have escaped the vandalism of the early Fathers. These are, first, the Mexican MS. No. 2 of the Imperial Library at Paris, called by Kosny the Codex Peresianus, which has been photographed by order of HIEROGLYPHICS ON THE COPAN ALTAR. the French government, but we believe is still unedited. The second, the Dresden Codex, in the Royal Library at Dresden, a complete copy of which was published by Lord Kingsborcm^li. It is a Maya, and not an Aztec MS., as is proven by its marked resemblance to the tablets of Palenque and Copan, a fact pointed 1 Peter Martyr, Dec. iv, lib. viii. Bancroft, vol. H, pp. 769-70. 422 MS - TROANO. out by Mr. Stephens, though at the date of his exploration everything was pronounced Aztec. 1 The third, the Manuscript Troano, found by Brasseur de Bourbourg at Madrid in 1865 in the possession of Senor Tro y Ortolano, from whom it derives its name, is a Maya MS. of unknown origin and history. The French government and the Commission Scientifique du Mexique repro- duced it in fac- simile by means of chromo-lithography, and Brasseur, with the expenditure of great labor, attempted to translate part of it, which he has published ; but in a subsequent work he confesses that he began his reading at the wrong end of the manuscript, which, as Mr. Bancroft humorously remarks, was a " trifling error perhaps in the opinion of the enthusiastic Abbe, but a somewhat serious one as it appears to scientific men." 2 Mr. Bancroft has reproduced a page of the MS. Troano in his work, and accompanied it with a condensed account from the Abbe's description as follows : "The original is written on a strip of maguey paper about fourteen feet long and nine inches wide, the surface of which is covered with a whitish varnish, on which the figures are painted in black, red, blue and brown. It is folded fan-like in thirty-five folds, presenting when shut much the appearance of a modern large octavo volume. The hieroglyphics cover both sides of the paper, and the writing is consequently divided into seventy pages, each about five by nine inches, having been apparently executed after the paper was folded, so that the folding does not interfere with the written matter. * * * The regular lines of written characters are uniformly in black, while the pictorial portions, of what may perhaps be considered repre- sentative signs, are in red and brown, chiefly the former, and the blue appears for the most part as a background in some of the pages." 3 Notwithstanding the bigoted spirit exhibited by 1 Stephens' Cent. Amer., vol. ii, pp. 342, 453-5. 2 Bancroft's Native Races, vol. ii, p. 780. Brassenr's admission will be found in the Bibliothegue Mexico-Guntemalienne, Paris, 1871, p. xxvii. The transla- tion, prefaced with 136 quarto pages devoted to a consideration of the Maya characters, is published under the title, MS. Troano : Etudes sur le systeme graphique et la langue des Mayas. Paris, 1869-70. 4to, 2 vols., 70 colored plates. 3 Bancroft, vol. ii, p. 773, plate, p. 774. LANDA'S ALPHABET. 423 Bishop Landa in his destruction of the native Maya books in the presence of their sorrowful and helpless owners, he did one act of service for the antiquarian, which will ever entitle him to the gratitude of every student of ancient American civilization. That act was the record which he made of the Maya hiero- glyphic alphabet. The Bishop has left us scarcely two and a half octavo pages (of his work as edited by Brasseur de Bour- bourg) upon this important subject, yet it is the only known key to the mysteries of Palenque, Copan and the numerous inscrip- tions found in Yucatan. His explanation of the manner in which letters are combined into words is not clear, and though Mr. Bancroft has translated it literally and introduced parenthetic explanations, still the sense is not very apparent. Brasseur de Bourbourg in his French translation has not succeeded much better, and complains of Landa's style as being untranslatable. One important fact, however, is deducible from the Bishop's remarks and example, namely, that the Maya letters were formed into words in much the same order as in the English and other languages which read from the left to the right. 1 Landa's alphabet is given in the accompanying cut which is an exact photographic reproduction of the original. Landa adds nothing after this table except the remark : " Of the letters which here fail, this language is wanting and has others added of ours, for other things of which they have need, and already they do not use these characters of theirs, especially 1 The original of Landa's explanation is as follows : " De SOB letras porne aqui an a, b, c, que no permite su pesadumbre mas porque usan para todas las aspiraciones de las letras de un caracter, y despues, al pun tar de las partes otro, y assi viene a hazer in infinitum, como se podra ver en el siguiente ezemplo : Le, quiere dezir laco y cacar con el ; para escrivirle con BUS carateres, haviendolea nosotros hecho entender que son dos letras, lo eecrivian ellos con tres, puniendo a la aspiracion de la I la vocale >' que antes de si trae, y en esto no hierran. aunque usense, si quisieren ellos de su curiosidad, exemplo : e L e Le. Despnea al cabo le pegan la parte junta. Ha que quiere dezir agna, porqun la hacht tiene a, h, antes de si la'ponen ellos al prinicipio con a, y al cabo deste manera, ha. Tambien lo escriven a partes pero de la una y otra manera, yo no pusiera aqui ni tratara dello sino por dar cuenta entera de las cosaa desta gente. Ma in kuti quiere dezir no quiero, ellos lo escriven a partes desta manera : ma i n ka ti." Landa, Relation, p. 318, translated by Bancroft, Native Race*, vol. ii, p. 778. 2. a 10. a 11. - (M) 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 13 U. t 16. h 18. (Variation of a n.l) (Variation of 19. L ca 20. PP 1 23. fnl m 24. 25. 17 - J? o 26. 9 u o 27. a-H-0 ma me or mo. ha n LANDA'S ALPHABET. sign of aspiration? LANDA'S HIEROGLYPHICS. 495 the young people who have learned ours." 1 Landa has left us other hieroglyphic signs, relating to the Maya months and days, which will be given in the next chapter. Many of the hiero^ glyphics in his alphabet are plainly recognizable in the three Maya MSS. which we have named, though it is quite certain that other signs, which are wanting in his list, are found not only in the MSS. but also among the inscriptions of the several localities we have already described. Besides the attempts made by Brasseur de Bourbourg to decipher the Maya writing, three Americanistes in particular have bestowed labor upon the sub- ject. These are Mr. Wm. Bollaert, 2 M. Hyacinthe de Charencey, 3 and M. Leon de Rosny, 4 the latter of whom is the honorable president of the Societe Americaine de France. By means of Landa's key, Mr. Bollaert obtained encouraging results from hieroglyphics figured in Stephens' works. In that author's Yucatan, vol. ii, page 292, is seen a sculptured figure with hieroglyphics represented on the upper part of the door called Akatzeeb at Chichen-Itza. This tablet is examined by Mr. Bollaert with the following result : " The figure (male) is nude ; the cap is like those on the figures at Kabab, and has an ornament round the neck ; the large crucible-form before him contains fire, in which some small animal is being burnt or sacrificed. Comparing the hieroglyphs on either side of the figure with the Maya key, I get the following words : Ahau, 'king'; oc, 'leg'; Muluc, 'to unite'; ik, 'courage'; cib, 'copal'; eznab, ' magician'; no, 'frog'; which may mean that the magician has in the crucible a frog to be sacrificed, in which copal as incense is used. The two lines of hieroglyphs give something like the following : Kings must die they have 1 Relation, p. 322. * Bollaert, Examination of Central American Hieroglyphs, in Memoir* of Anthropological Soc. of London, vol. iii, pp. 288-314. London, 1870. 3 Charencey, Essai de Dechiffrement d'un fragment d 'inscription palm- queenne, in Actes de la Societe Philologique, torn. i. March, 1870. 4 Rosny, Essai mr le Dechiffrement de L'ticriture Hieratique de L'Amerique Centrale, Paris, 1876, folio, with large colored plates and fac-similes. In three parts, two of which only have as yet appeared (Oct. 1878). The author informs me (Feb. 1879) that a fourth part will be required to complete the work. 426 BOLLAERT'S INTERPRETATIONS. courage, and after death are united to those who went before them. The king is with his fathers; the chief and his family burn copal and mourn for his death." : On the tablet of the cross at Palenque, Mr. Bollaert found in squares eznab, "magician"; dz, "a hand"; the "aspiration sign" U ; and a part of zip, "tree." Among the hieroglyphs he traced ahau, "king"; zip, "tree"; akbal, "a plant"; pax, "a musical instrument." Mr. Bollaert has attempted to read several other inscriptions with no more satisfactory results. 2 One or two of the same scholar's attempts with the Dresden Codex yield the following : We come to thy presence to implore. The young female implores before the deity, she weeps but has courage. In a group representing a king and a young female, he reads : She has made a vow about the king to the magician, the king is happy. Again : The sacred bird chel is sacrificed, there is weeping ; the bride weeps for the bird, she makes a voto or prai/s for the king, she offers a tortoise, a great feast is given. 3 M. de Charencey translates the hieroglyph found just above the child which is being offered to the bird on the tablet of the cross at Palenque, by the word Hunabku, " the only holy one." He also finds the name of Kuknlcan and eznab, " magician," the name of a month. 4 M. de Bosny in his able essay on the decipherment of the hieratic writings of Central America has undertaken the solution of this interesting and perplexing problem in a scientific manner, and we have the fullest confidence that his system constructed on Landa's key will open to us the books and inscriptions of the Mayas. But two of the four parts which constitute the work have been published, still we think sufficient data has been placed at the hands of scholars by M. de Bosny to justify the opinion that if the remainder of his essay should never appear, the work of interpreting some of the Maya writings might be carried on with reasonable certainty. Landa's key contains seventy-one signs (twenty for the days, eighteen for the months, and thirty- 1 Bollaert in Memoirs of Anthropol. Soc. of London, vol. iii, p. 298. s Ibid, p. 301. a Ibid, p. 307. 4 See a review of these attempts in Rosny's Essai, pp. 12-13, and remarks on Charencey in Appendix D of Baldwin's Ancient America. M. DE ROSNY'S KEY. 427 three in the alphabet.) M. de Rosny, by a careful examination of all the hieratic texts of the Mayas which are known, has discovered more than seven hundred different signs. Of this number he has deciphered and classified four hundred and thirty- nine as follows : Alphabetic signs, including Landa's (of which all the others are but varieties), two hundred and sixty-two ; signs of the days, one hundred and fifty-nine ; and the eighteen signs of the months given by Landa. All these signs are classi- fied in a double folio plate (PL XIII) which we believe deserves to be regarded as the larger portion of the much-sought-for Maya Rosetta stone. Considerable difference of opinion has existed as to the direction in which the hieroglyphics should be read. Brasseur held the view that the proper order was from right to left, and that the beginning of a book was where our books end. This mistake brought down the ridicule of scholars upon the Abbe's head, when it was discovered that he had begun at the wrong end to translate the Troano MS. Mr. Bollaert says, " I have read from the bottom upwards and from right to left." l Dr. Brinton 2 has suggested some such order as the following arrangement of the word marvellous : o 11 m u e a s v r M. de Rosny has shown that the statement of Landa and the fact that the human faces shown in the hieroglyphs look toward the left, indicate that the signs should be read from left to right. 3 In rare cases this order is reversed, as is seen on a couple of leaves of the Codex Peresianus. There are, no doubt, numer- ous instances in which the signs are arranged in perpendicular columns, and the order in which such columns are to be read is not the same in all manuscripts. In the Maya inscriptions and manuscripts, the " illustrations " or pictorial figures are inter- 1 Examination of Cent. Am. Hier., p. 306. - The Ancient Phonetic Alphabet of Yucatan, p. 6, N. Y., 1870, cited Rosny, Essai, p. 25. 8 Essai. p. 20 ; Rosny cites Bancroft's opinion to the same effect, Jiati Maces, vol. ii, p. 782. 428 M - DE ROSNY'S KEY. woven with the alphabetic signs forming an important part of the writing. In many cases a page of MS. (as shown in Rosny's plates) is divided into sections or squares, in which the hierogly- phics are inseparably connected with grotesque figures which accompany them and form a part of" the writing. M. de Rosny has undertaken the classification and interpretation of all these figures which are found in the existing Maya MSS. This doubtless will prove an important auxiliary to the table of signs already alluded to. We may reasonably expect that since M. de Rosny has shown the extensive character of the Maya phonetic and symbolic alphabet, he will furnish us examples of its application in the practical interpretation of the hierogly- phics, in the latter part of his work. Recently Dr. Ph.Valen- tini has pronounced the Landa alphabet a Spanish fabrication, of later date than the conquest. See Proceedings of Amer. Antiquarian Soc. for April, 1880. We do not deem it necessary to assure the reader that while the Aztec picture-writing was not as far advanced in the scale of graphic development as the system employed by the Mayas, still it was an accurate means of communication and of recording events. The "scribes" of the Mexicans were an educated class of men, who with strictest accuracy painted in hieroglyphic symbols the record of national, historic and traditional affairs, as well as the tribute rolls, the calendar with its feast days, the stated ser- vices of the gods, the genealogical tables of noble and royal per- sonages, and even the customs of the humble classes. No doubt many educated persons who did not belong to the priestly and lettered class, were acquainted with the system employed, and many others understood it sufficiently to recognize calendar and feast signs. The Aztec books were painted mostly on cotton cloth, prepared skins and maguey paper, and when not rolled were folded fan-like and bound with thin wooden covers, like the Maya books. The priests who accompanied the conquerors and immediately followed them, mistook the pictured figures painted in these books to be representations of heathen deities, and con- sequently inaugurated a system of wholesale destruction of all the picture-writing. Las Casas informs us that they were DESTRUCTION OF THE MEXICAN MSS. 499 actuated by the fear that in matters of religion the existence of these books would be injurious. The infamous crime com- mitted against the cause of knowledge and the irreparable injury done to the natives, their successors, and to students of history for all time, by the destruction of those valuable MSS., must ever remain an unerasable blot upon the name of the early church in Mexico, and must be ranked with the worst deeds of Goths and Vandals. Juan de Zumarraga, the chief of these sacrilegious destroyers who committed the annals of the Mexican States publicly to the flames in his tour of the principal cities of the country, will ever be remembered with proper contempt. Fortunately, many of the MSS. were hidden by their owners and have since come to light ; the greater number of these, how- ever, were tribute rolls, which, down to the*last century, played an important part in the Mexican courts of justice. Prescott in- forms us that " until late in the last century, there was a professor in the University of Mexico especially devoted to the study of the national picture-writing. But as this was with a view to legal proceedings, his information probably was limited to de- ciphering titles." In the course of time the priests became acquainted with the harmless nature of the hieroglyphics, through their use by the natives in their making confessions and in recording the Lord's prayer. Many documents written since the conquest were provided by their authors with a Span- ish translation or with an explanation in Aztec written with Spanish letters. Many of these are in existence, and with a few authentic documents, written previous to the conquest, are preserved in public and private libraries of Europe and this country, the finest collection of which is that of the National Museum of the University of Mexico. The reader is no doubt already familiar with the splendid fac-similes of several Mexican MSS. published in Lord Kingsborough's work. Mr. Bancroft has concisely narrated the events and vicissitudes which have attended the transmission of some of these documents through the hands of successive owners to their present depositories. 1 1 Native Rnce*, vol. ii, pp. 529-88. 430 MEXICAN SYSTEM THREEFOLD. Several writers on hieroglyphic systems, and the ahove author among them, have classified the progressive steps of picture- writing into representative, symbolic, and phonetic. Of these, the first is by far the simplest, and has invariably preceded the others in the development of the graphic art. It was natural for the savage to represent an object by a picture, in which that object was surrounded with certain conditions ; at first the entire object was pictured, but subsequently only a portion of the ob- ject, as in the case of a bird, the head or foot or wing in the more advanced stages of art, would be substituted for the object itself. In symbolic picture-writing, we find an attempt at representing abstract ideas and actions. Some quality or attri- bute of a person is portrayed by means of the representative process, by symbols which would naturally seem to suggest the distinguishing characteristic of the person or occasion. A cer- tain Aztec festival might be symbolized by the conventional calendar sign, an altar, a flint knife held by a human hand, and a smoking human heart. Phonetic picture-writing is, of course, dependent upon the sounds of the language for which it is designed. Its province is to represent those sounds by pictures of objects in whose names the sounds occur. Words, syllables and elementary sounds which are represented by alphabets, are thus gradually evolved in the progression which follows. Mr. Bancroft, by a most ingenious example, has illustrated this principle as applied to our own language. " According to this system," he says, "the || signifies successively the word 'hand,' the syllable ' hand ' in handsome, the sound ' ha ' in happy, the aspiration EDUCATION OF CHILDREN ACCORDING TO THE CODEX MENDOZA. bound hand and foot on the damp ground. A bad boy twelve years of age, according to Aztec custom was always punished in this way, and his punishment lasted during an entire day. A CODEX MENDOZA PICTURE-WRITING. 433 disobedient girl of the same age was obliged to rise in the night and sweep the whole house, as is shown in the right-hand group, or, as no tear is seen in her eye, she may be learning. At the age of eight years children were only shown the instrument of pun- ishment ; at ten they were pricked with maguey thorns, or if still unruly, were whipped. The above groups show the methods employed during the eleventh and twelfth years, after which age a child was supposed to be pretty well disciplined. In the third group a father directs his boys (fig. 21) how to trans- port wood, both upon the back and in the canoe, while the mother teaches the daughter (fig. 23) to make tortillas and use the mealing stone and other utensils (figs. 25, 26, 28) ; the tor- tillas are also represented (fig. 27). In the fourth group the son learns the use of the fish-net and the daughter that of the loom. The allowance of tortillas apportioned to the children at the ages represented are shown in figs. 2, 8, 11, 16, 20, 24, 30 and 34. The remaining figures are not representative, but symbolic. The small circles (figs. 1, 10, 19, 29) are numerals indicating that the child was successively eleven, twelve, thirteen and fourteen years of age. A circle or dot was always used for a unit. The comma-like figure issuing from the mouth of the parent is the symbol of speech. The tears in the children's eyes need no explanation. The singular figure (17) above the girl in the second group is said to be symbolical of night, and to indicate that the sweeping was required in the night. For most interesting specimens of Aztec picture-writing as well as their supposed explanation, we refer the reader to the G-emelli Careri and Boturini Migration maps in the Atlas of Garcia y Cubas, or in the second volume of Mr. Bancroft's work, which are the only places where they are to be found correctly reproduced. Mr. Delaficld sought to find an analogy between the Aztec and Egyptian hieroglyphic systems on no other ground than that both were representative, symbolic and phonetic, a most wonderful discovery indeed. 1 Notwithstanding this fact, 1 Delafield, Antiq. of Am., -pp. 42-7. M. Ed. Madier de Montjau has recently added much to our understanding of Aztec picture-writing in his Chronologie 28 434 MEXICAN MIGRATION MAP. and many similar efforts, no marked analogy between the Aztec picture-writing and the hieroglyphic systems of any other peo- ples has yet been pointed out. 1 hieroglyphico-phonetic des rois Aztlques de 1853-1522 retrouvee dans diverses mappes americaines antiques, expliquee et precedee d'une introduction sur 1'Ecriture mexicaine. A valuable article on the same subject is found in the Congres des Americanistes, Luxembourg, 1877, torn, ii, pp. 346-362, by M. 1'Abbe Jules Pipart, entitled Elements phonetiques dans les Ecritures figuratives des anciens Mexicains. 1 An excellent account of the various collections of Aztec picture-writing will be found in the introduction to Domenech's Manuscrit Pictographique, Paris, 1860, 8vo ; a book which would be valueless but for that feature. See also account of M. Aubun's collection in Brasseur de Bourbourg, Hist. Nat. Civ., torn, i, pp. Ixxvi-lxxviii. For general description of hieroglyphic principles see Tylor, Researches, pp. 89-101, and Humboldt, Vues, torn, i, pp. 177-9, 162- 202. See also Boturini, Idea de una Hist., pp. 5, 77, 87, 96, 112, 116. Prescott, Cong. Mex. (Kirk's ed., 1875), vol. i, pp. 94, 99, 107-9. Clavigero, Storia Ant. del Messico, torn, ii, pp. 187-94. Mendoza, in Soc. Mex. Geog. Boletin, 3d epoca, torn, i, pp. 896-904. Gallatin in Amer. EtJino. Soc. Transact., vol. i, pp. 126, 165-69. Kingsborough's Mex. Ant., vol. vi, p. 87, and Ixtlilxochitl's Hist. Chick, in Kingsborough, vol. ix, p. 201. Torquemada, Monarq. Ind., torn, i, p. 149. Bancroft's Native Races, vol. ii, pp. 531-52. MAP OF YUCATAN. We have found it impossible in this chapter to convey any adequate idea of the number and extent of the ruins scattered over Central America and Mexico. Only by reference to an accurately prepared map, having distinctness and detail, can a proper under- standing of this interesting field be reached. Maps of Northern and Central Mexico alone, meeting the requirements, have for some time been accessible, but a reliable map of Yucatan and of neighboring States has long been a desideratum. This great want has recently been supplied by the publication in New York of a rare specimen of cartography, bearing the title, Sfapa de la Peninsula de Yucatan, compilado par Joaquin Hubbe y Andres Azuar Perez y re- visado y aumentado con datos importante* par C. Hermann Berendt, 1878 size, 28X36 inches. Stephens, in his work on Yucatan, indicated the sites of many remains discovered by him ; but Senor Perez has for the first time brought before us a view of the whole field, including Yucatan and Campeachy, together with the greater part of Tabasco and Belize, and portions of Guatemala and Chiapas, showing, by means of appropriate symbols, the great number of known ruins. The map has met with merited approval from the American Antiquarian So- ciety, and has been reproduced in Dr. A. Petermann's Mittheilungen aus Justus Perthes Geogra- phisclie Anstalt, Gotha, Band 25, No. VI, 1879. CHAPTER IX. CHRONOLOGY, CALENDAR SYSTEMS AND RELIGIOUS ANALOGIES. No Mound-builder Chronology known Maya Calendar Landa on the Calendar Maya Days Maya Months The Katun The Ahau Katun or Great Cycle The Maya System Adjusted to our Chronology The Adjustment by Perez Intercalary Days The Nahua Calendar The Sources Divi- sions of Mexican Calendar The Aztec Year The Nemontemi Aztec Months Aztec Days Nahua Ritual Calendar Mexican Calendar Stone Sources of Interpretation History of the Stone Interpretation of the Stone Date of the Origin of the Calendar Stone Date of the Nahua Migration Analogies with the Nahua Calendar Religions Analogies Jewish Analogies Deluge Traditions Supposed Parallels in Jewish and Mexican History Analogies of Doctrine Analogies of Ceremonial Law Yucatanic Trinity Myth Mexican and Asiatic Analogies Buddhism in the New World Scandinavian Analogies Mexican and Greek Analogies Brasseur de Bourbourg's Comparisons. . Chronology and Calendar Systems. No tablet or relic of Mound-builder origin hfas yet been discovered, which can be said to give any clue to the system of chronology employed by that people. Several supposed calendar stones have been found, such, for instance, as the Cincinnati Tablet referred to in Chap- ter I, and the Tablet from Mississippi in the possession of Win. Marshall Anderson, Esq., of Circleville, Ohio. However, their character is only a matter of conjecture, since no progress what- ever has been made toward evolving any system from them. Farther south, on the soil where a higher civilization flourished, we meet with two calendar systems, which, while they have several points of resemblance, are quite distinct from each other. The first of these, the Maya, is probably the most ancient. Bishop Landa is our chief authority in this field, though Don Juan Pio Perez, a more recent writer, also familiar witli the 436 LANDA ON THE CALENDAR. Maya language, has furnished us some material. 1 Bishop Landa informs us that the Mayas had a year of 365 days and 6 hours divided into months (a month being called a V) in two ways, first into months of thirty days each, and second, into eighteen months of twenty days each. As the Bishop makes no explana- tion of the former statement, we are unable to determine whether Kan. CiusfihaiL Cum. Mamk. Lamat. THE MAYA DAYS. the months of thirty days each were employed in Yucatan prior to the conquest, or not, but we are rather Inclined to the opinion that they were not. The month of twenty days was called the Uinal-Hun-ekeh, and might commence on any of the days represented by the hieroglyphics in the left-hand column of the table of days. These months were eighteen in number, thus making a year of 360 days. The Mayas, however, corrected the error by adding five inter- 1 Landa, Relation, pp. 204-316, and the work by Perez, entitled Cronologia Antigua de Yucatan, with Brasseur's translation into French in the above work, pp. 366-429. Also see English translation in Stephens' Yucatan, vol. i, pp. 434-59. See also Orozco y Berra, Geografia, pp. 104-8, and an able dis- cussion in Bancroft's Native Races, vol. ii, pp. 755-67. LANDA'S MAYA MONTHS. 437 'op. Uo. Tzee. Chen. Xul. Yax. Kayab. Yaxkin. Zac. Cumhu. THE MAYA MONTHS. Tzoz. Mol. Ceh. Pax. calaiy days and six hours to the 360 days ; and once every four years, Landa informs us, they counted 366 days a year. The five supplementary days were considered unlucky, and were kin>\\ii as the " nameless days " because they were never called by any 438 LANDA'S MAYA MONTHS. particular designation. The accompanying cut is a photographic reproduction of Landa's plate, and shows accurately the Maya days in their proper order. 1 (Page 436.) Though the intercalary days were " nameless " and character- ized as the " bed or chamber of the year/' " the mother of the year," " bed of creation," " travail of the year," " lying days," or " bad days," etc., still five of the above twenty were reckoned for them in regular order. The year began on a day corresponding to our 16th of July " a date," as Mr. Bancroft observes, " which varies only forty- four hours from the time when the sun passes the zenith an approximation as accurate as could be expected from observation made without instruments." 2 The Maya months as figured in Landa's work are shown in the accompanying photo-engraving. (Page 437.) The translation of the names of the days and months is some- what uncertain. The following equivalents are the same as those given by Senor Perez, except in a few instances where Brasseur and Bosny have made corrections. TRANSLATION OF THE DAYS. 1. Kan, " string- of twisted hemp" (yellow). 2. Chicchan, signification unknown. 8. Cimi, preterit of cimil, to kill = " dead." 4. Manik, " wind that passes " (? ?) 5. Lamat, signification unknown. 6. Muluc, " reunion " (? ?) 7. Oe, " that which may be held in the palm of the hand." 8. Chven," hoard "(??) 9. Eb, " ladder." 10. Sen, " to distribute with economy " (? ?) 11. Ix, "fish-skin" (Rosny), "witch, witchcraft" (Brasseur), "roughness" (Perez). 12. Men, " builder." 13. Gib, " gum copal." 14. Caban, " heaped up " (Brasseur). 15. Ezanab, " flint " (Brasseur). 1 Landa's Relation, p. 204. Bancroft's Native Races, vol. ii, p. 756. 3 Bancroft's Native Races, vol.'ii, p. 757. THE KATUNES. 439 16. Cauac, signification unknown. 17. Afiau, " king, or period of twenty-four years." 18. Tmix, signification unknown. " Corn " (? ?) 19. Ik, " wind," "spirit," according to Rosny, one of the symbols of Kukul- can or Quetzalcoatl. 20. Akbal, " approach of night " (Brasseur). TRANSLATION OP THE MONTHS. 1. Pop, " mat of cane." 2. Uo, " frog." 3. Zip, "a tree" (Perez), "fault, error" (Brasseur). 4. Tzoz, " a bat." 5. Tzec, signification unknown. 6. Xul, " end or conclusion." 7. Tax-kin, signification unknown. " Summer "(??) 8. Mol, " to re-unite, to recover." 9. Chen, "a well." 10. Tax, " first," or Yaax, " blue." 11. Zac, "white." 12. Ceh, "a deer." 13. Mac, "a lid or cover." 14. Kankin, "yellow sun," " because in this month of April the atmosphere is charged with smoke," owing to the work of clearing the soil. 15. Muan, "cloudy weather" (Brasseur). 16. Pax, " musical instrument." 17. Kayab, "singing." 18. Cum.hu, " thunder-clap," " detonation." ' Though these translations may seem uninteresting by them- selves, they are of great value when taken in connection with Landa's alphabet and M. de Bosny's interpretations. They must ever be important factors in attempts to translate the inscriptions and codices. Another division of time among the Mayas of a complicated character was the Katun or Cycle of 52 years. The Katun was composed of four periods (indictions or weeks) of 13 years each, enumerated by a system of reckoning kept simultaneously with the current reckoning of days, months and years. The mode of computing the Katunes was, according to Landa nnd 1 See Perez's Appendix to Stephens' Yucatan, vol. i, pp. 458-59, nnd in Landa's Rtlacion, Appendix, pp. 370-382, and Brasseur In the same. Especially Rosny,. Essai sur le Dcch. de L'&rit. Hierat. de L'Amer. Cent., pp. 15-24. 440 THE KATUNES. Perez, briefly as follows : l The year was divided into twenty- eight periods of thirteen days each. These periods for con- venience have been called weeks, and the number of days of which each is composed may have been suggested by the num- ber of days embraced in the moon's increase and decrease, twenty-six days constituting about the actual time in which the moon is seen above the horizon during each lunation. 2 The weeks were divided off by counting thirteen days from the begin- ning of the list of days shown on page 436, Kan constituting the first day of the first week and according to usage applying its name to the weeks. The week was consequently called by the name of the day on which it began. Caban being the four- teenth day of the current month, became the first day of another week; but as not enough days remain to complete it, the enumera- tion is begun again and continued down to Muluc, the sixth day of the next month. Oc, the seventh day, then becomes the start- ing point for another week, which assumes its name, and thus the computation is carried on ad infinitum. A numeral preceded each day designating its position in the week. The people of Yucatan painted a small circle in which they placed the four hieroglyphics of the initial days which constitute the left-hand column of signs given on page 436. Kan was placed in the east, Muluc in the north, Ix in the west and Cauac in the south. These signs were termed the " carriers of the years " because no month or year could begin on any of the twenty days, but on one of these. Since twenty days constitute a current month, it is apparent that every month in a given year must begin with the same clay. However, the introduction of the five intercalary days at the end of the year, changed the initial day on which the months of the different years began. In reckoning the Katun it is further observed that the numeral which indicates the day of the week (of thirteen days) which falls upon the first of a given month, varies. Supposing the month to begin on Kan and the numeral of the first day to be 1, the numerals indicative 1 Landa, Relation, p. 234. Perez in Landa, pp. 394 et seq., and in Stephens' Yucatan, vol. i, p. 439 ; also see Bancroft, vol. ii, pp. 759 et ssq. 2 Perez in Landa, Relation, pp. 366-8 ; also cited by Bancroft, vol. ii, p. 759. THE AHAU KATUN OR GREAT CYCLE. 441 of the days of the week (composed of thirteen days) falling on Kan throughout the eighteen months, would be, 8, 9, 3, 10, 4, 11, 5, 12, 6, 13, 7, 1, 8, 2, 9, 3. The Katun year consisted, as we have seen, of twenty-eight weeks of thirteen days each, and one additional day, making in all 365 days. If the year commenced with number one of the week, the additional day (the 365th) caused it to end on the same number. The ensuing year would then begin with number two, and so on through the thirteen numbers of the week, as follows: 1. Kan, 2. Muluc, 3. Ix, 4. Cauac, 5. Kan, 6. Muluc, 7. Ix, 8. Cauac, 9. Kan, 10. Muluc, 11. Ix, 12. Cauac, 13. Kan, thus completing an indiction or week of years.. The same com- bination of names and numerals can only occur after the lapse of the Katun or cycle comprising four of these indictions or fifty-two years. Not only the years of the week, but also the indictions themselves were named by the four initial symbols. The first indiction of each Katun being named Kan, the second Muluc, the third Ix, and the fourth Cauac. The completion of a Katun or fifty-two years was celebrated with feasts and rejoicings as an e\ ? ent of great moment. A monument was reared as a memorial of the event. It is not impossible that the great num- ber of pillars, observed by Stephens at Chichen-Itza were of this character, serving as landmarks to Maya chronology. 1 A third division of time employed by the Mayas was the great cycle of 312 years, composed, according to Seilor Perez, 2 of thirteen periods of time, each embracing twenty-four years. Each of these thirteen periods was called an Ahau Katun, and was divided into two parts. The first part, embracing twenty years, was enclosed in a square and called Amaytum lamayte, or lamaijtum; and the other part of four years, which formed as it were a pedestal for the first, was called Chek oc Katun, or lath oc Katun, meaning " stool " or " pedestal." He affirms that the latter were intercalated, therefore believed to be unfortunate as were the five supplementary days of the year. This may account 1 Stephens' Yucatan, vol. ii, pp. 818-19. Stephens wo* unable to assign any use to the pillars referred to. He counted upwards of 880. Dr. Le Plongeon accords with our view. * Stephens' Yucatan, vol. i, pp. 441 et teq. 442 SUCCESSION OF THE AHAU KATUNES. for their not being reckoned with the Ahau Katun by any other writer. Just here lies the discrepancy which has created most of the confusion in the investigation of this subject. However, if we accept the statement of Senor Perez, that the Ahau Katun embraced twenty-four years instead of the testimony of every other writer that it included but twenty years, we shall have moderately fair sailing until we split upon the rock of his inac- curacies as to dates. He tells us that these periods took their name from Ahau, the second of those years that began in Cauac, and from the order of the numerals accompanying those days would succeed each other according to the numbers 13, 11, 9, 7, 5, 3, 1, 12, 10, 8, 6, 4, 2. The Indians established the num- ber 13 Ahau as the first, because some great event happened in that year. If the 13 Ahau Katun began on a second day of the year, it must have been the year which began on 12 Cauac, and the 12th of the indiction. The next or the 11 Ahau would com- mence in the year 10 Cauac, which combination in its rotation would happen after a lapse of twenty-four years. The third or 9 Ahau would begin in 8 Cauac twenty-four years later, in illus- tration of which we follow out the rotation of the four names of the years, Kan, Muluc, Ix and Cauac, through the indictions of thirteen years each, until we have noted the numerals accom- panying them during twenty-four years. Our starting point will be the commencement of the second Ahau Katun on the second day of 10 Cauac. Tear of 13 Year Indiction Name of Year. Year of Period of Slf Years. Year of 13 Year Indiction. Name of Year. Year of Period of 2U Years. 10 Cauac . ... 1 g Cauac 13 11 Kan 2 10 Kan 14 12 Muluc 3 11 Muluc 15 13 Ix 4 12 Ix 16 1 Cauac . . 5 13 Cauac 17 2 Kan 6 1 Kan 18 3 Muluc 7 2 19 4 Ix 8 3 Ix 20 5 Cauac 9 4 Cauac 21 6 Kan 10 5 Kan 22 7 Muluc 11 6 Muluc . . . 23 8 Ix 12 7 Ix 24 8 Cauac 1st of anew period. MAYA SYSTEM ADJUSTED TO OUR CHRONOLOGY. 443 As above stated the new Ahau Katun begins in the year 8 Cauac, and as it invariably began on the second day of the year, that day would be 9 Ahau, as Ahau is the next letter in the alphabet after Cauac. An extension of the table will show that the next period will begin in 6 Cauac on 7 Ahau, and so on in the order of the numerals given above. Thirteen Ahau Katunes, as previously stated, constituted a great cycle of three hundred and twelve years. Sr. Perez states that according to all sources of information, confirmed by the testimony of Don Cosme de Burgos, one of the conquerors and a writer ( but whose observations have been lost), the year 1392 A. D. corresponded to the Maya year 7 Cauac, and as the second day of that year was the beginning of an era of twenty-four years, it must have been 8 Ahau Katun. By dividing off the time between that date and the beginning of the present century into periods of twenty- four years each, and extending a table of the rotation of the four names of the years, the reader will observe that 13 Ahau will fall in the year 1800 ; 11 Ahau in 1824 ; 9 Ahau in 1848 ; 7 Ahau in 1872, and 5 Ahau in 1896, three hundred and twelve years intervening before this, and any similar combination of Ahau Katunes either have occurred or can be repeated. This would be highly satisfactory if Sr. Perez could be relied upon in this particular, which is doubtful. We are sorry to say that he is certainly chargeable with inaccuracies, which impair the value of his whole system. Most conspicuous of these is one pointed out by Mr. Bancroft, to which we refer the reader below. Seflor Perez sets about the verification of his system by citing the death of a notable personage named Ahpula. He states that Ahpula died in the sixth year of 13 Ahau, when the first day of the year was 4 Kan, on the day 9 Imix, the eighteenth of the month Zip. It is seen that 13 Ahau is the second day of the year 12 Cauac which falls in the year 1488, also that the year 1493 is the sixth from the beginning of 13 Ahau, and that its first day is 4 Kan, which is the title of the year. The day is the eighteenth of the month Zip, cor- responding to the eleventh of September. The statement is also made that this date fell on 9 Imix. This is tested as fol- 444 THE ADJUSTMENT BY PEREZ. lows : The first month of that year commenced on 4 Kan, which combination names the year. The number (of the week of thirteen days) is found by adding seven to the number of the first day of each month successively. The number of the first day of the first month, Pop, in this case being 4, the number of the first day of the second month (Uo) would be 4 + 7 = 11, and that of the first day of the third month (Zip) would be 11 + 7= 18, but as the week consists of but thirteen days, that number must be substracted, leaving 5 Kan as the first day of Zip. If Zip begins on the twenty-fifth of August, the day 9 Imix will be found to correspond both with the eigh- teenth of Zip and the eleventh of September, if the Katun week of thirteen days is counted off regularly, beginning with 5 Kan. Sr. Perez is correct enough in his calculations, but un- fortunately his system of twenty -four years to the Ahau Katun or his informant as to the correspondence of the Ahau Ka tunes with our chronology (no doubt the latter) is incorrect, since the Maya manuscript furnished and translated by Perez and pub- lished in the works of Stephens and Landa, states explicitly that Ahpula died in A. D. 1536, instead of 1493 (incorrectly printed 1403 in Bancroft's work), a date which is irreconcilable with the system of twenty-four years to the Ahau, reckoned from 1392 as a starting point. Neither will the statement of Landa that the year 1541 corresponded with the beginning of 11 Ahau relieve the difficulty, but rather increases it, since it will neither harmonize with the date of Ahpula's death given in the MS. nor with the system by Perez. Furthermore, while Landa gives the same succession of numerals for the recur- rence of the Ahaus, he states that they embraced but twenty years each, thus making it impossible for the combinations of names and numerals to correspond to the order which he lays down for their succession. Landa is no doubt incorrect in his statement. Sr. Perez is at least consistent in his adaptation of the length of the Ahau Katun to the order of numerals given by Landa and others. Recently, M. Delaporte, a member of the Societe Americaine de France, has, by a series of extended calcu- lations, vindicated the correctness of the statement of Sr. Perez, INTERCALARY DAYS. 445 that the Ahau Katun embraced twenty-four years. M. de Kosny agrees with M. Delaporte in his conclusions. The fault of Perez, probably, lies in his adaptation of the Ahaus to our chronology, and in carelessness. Amidst these discrepan- cies it is impossible to fix accurately the dates of the Maya history, though they can be approximated. 1 Seuor Perez cites Boturini as stating that the day introduced every four years to compensate for the annual loss of six hours, was observed by counting the symbol for the three hundred and sixty-fifth day twice, as the Romans did with their bissextile days, thus leaving the order undisturbed. 2 The Naliua Cnlndar system closely resembles that of the Mayas, a fact which adds to the abundant proof that both civilizations had grown up under nearly the same influences, and that they had largely affected each other. If the trifling differ- ences of a few writers concerning some of the details of the Aztec calendar be overlooked, and the best authorities (together with a little exercise of judgment) be followed, the system be- comes comparatively simple. Sahagun, Leon y Gama, Hum- boldt, Veytia, Galatin, McCulloch, Miiller, Bancroft, Chavero, and Prof. Valentini, are the authorities to whom we refer the reader. 3 1 See Lancia, Relation, pp. 313, 400-412 ; Stephens, Yucatan, Perez, vol. i, pp. 441-447, MS. cited in vol. ii, pp. 465-469 ; Bancroft, Native Races, vol. ii, pp. 763-765 ; M. Delaporte, Le Calendricr Yucateque, MS. cited by Rosny, Essai sur le dechiffrement de L'Ecriture Hieratique, p. 35. 2 Perez in Stephens' Yucatan, vol. i, p. 447. 3 Sahagun, Hist. Gen., torn, i, lib. ii, pp. 49-76 ; lib. iv, pp. 283-810, gives a partial though very satisfactory account. Leon y Gama, Dos Piedras, is critical and learned, but often incorrect. Humboldt, Vue*, furnishes an elaborate account, which is very valuable though complicated. Veytia's ex- planation is the result of thorough research, Hist. Ant. Mej., torn. i. Gallatin is extremely clear and reliable in Amer. Ethno. Soc. Transactions, vol. i. McCulloch's Researches in Amer., pp. 201-35. Bancroft's Native Races, vol. ii, pp. 503-22, furnishes us an account, clear and full, as are all of his discus- sions. Several cuts enhance the value of the chapter. We especially refer the reader to his rich bibliography of the subject, appended in notes. A number of additional authors are before us: Ixtlilxochitl, Mullcr, Horrera, Clavigero, Brasseur de Bourbourg, Boturini, Prichard, but last and best is the ingenious and masterly Vortraj fiber dm Mericanischen Calender stein gehalten Ton Prof. 446 THE AZTEC YEAR. The Mexican Calendar contains divisions as follows : The age, called huehuetiliztli, embraced two cycles of fifty-two years each, thus equalizing one hundred and four years. The cycle of fifty-two years was named xiulimolpilli, xiuhmolpia, and xiuhtlalpilli, signifying the " binding up of the years " and con- sisted of four periods of thirteen years each. These periods or indictions were called "knots," while the single years were called xihuitl or "new grass," because anciently, before the in- vention of the calendar, the Nahuas were only able to distinguish the revolution of the years by the annual appearance of fresh vegetation and new grass. The age was but little used, the cycle being the common measure for long periods. The years in a given cycle were designated as among the Mayas, by means of the consecutive rotation of four signs, each accompanied with a numeral. The signs were tochtli, " rabbi t " ; acatl, " cane " ; tecpatl, "flint," and calli, "house." The following table illus- trates the rotation occurring in one cycle : IST TLALPILLI. 2D TLALPILLI. 3D TlALPILLI. 4TH TLALPILLI. Names of YeaTs. Years Translated. Nametof Yean. Sfame, of Translated. Name, of Year,. Na / Translated. A Ibid, vol. viii, p. 32. 11 Ibid, vol. viii, pp. 26-7. > 2 Ibid, vol. vi, p. 190. NAHUA AND ASIATIC ANALOGIES. 4C5 Christ and Quetzalcoatl, are clearly discernible to his practised eye. 1 Christ stilled the tempest, and, like Quetzalcoatl, was god of the air. 2 In Yucatan, in the priestly fable of Bacab, he finds a complete and true account of the trinity. 3 It is hardly necessary for us to remark that these ingenious comparisons, tinged with a coloring of fanaticism and yet so full of interest, are useless to the cause of science and prove nothing. With the single exception of the remarkable tradition of the deluge and its literal correspondence in detail to the Mosaic account, we must dismiss the multitude of supposed analogies between Mexican and Hebrew traditions, customs and religion, which Kingsborough and others have discovered, as either imaginary or accidental. 4 The hypothesis that the Nalma religion may have received some of its characteristics from India is altogether plausible and not without support in resemblances. The cosmological conception of the egg and serpent is found, as previously stated, on Brush Creek, in Adams County, Ohio. It certainly comes to us from Asiatic India. Serpent worship, not only among the people of the mounds but especially of Mexico, is the 1 IMd, vol. vi, pp. 207-8. * Ibid, vol. vi, p. 261. z Mex. Antiq, vol. vi, pp. 207-8. He thinks the gospel must have been preached at an early day in Yucatan, and in proof cites from the sixth chapter of the Fourth Book of Cogolludo's History the following : " A certain ecclesiastic wrote to a priest commissioned by Las Casas, that he mot a principle-lord, who, on being questioned respecting the ancient religion which they professed, told him that they knew and believed in the God who was in Heaven, and that thia God was the Father, Son and Holy Ghost, and that the Father was named Yzona, who had created man ; and that the Son was called Bacab, who was born of a virgin of the name of Chiribirias, and that the mother of Chiribirias was named Yxchel ; and that the Holy Ghost was named Echvah. Of Bacab, the Son, they said he was put to death and scourged and crowned with thorns and placed with his arms extended upon a beam of wood, to which they did not suppose that he had been nailed, but that he was tied, where he died and re- mained dead during three days, and on the third day came to life and ascended into heaven, where he is with his Father ; and that immediately afterwards Echvah, who is the Holy Ghost, came and filled the earth with whatsoever it stood in need of." 4 Mr. Bancroft in his fifth vol , pp. 84-89, has collated a great number of Lord Kingsborough's analogies. Our limited space forbids further treatment. 30 466 MEXICAN AND GREEK ANALOGIES. most patent fact revealed to us in ancient American sculp- ture. " Humboldt thinks he sees in the snake cut in pieces, the famous serpent Kaliya or Kalinaga, conquered by Vishnu, when he took the form of Krishna, and in the Mexican Toua- tiuh, the Hindu Krushna, sung of in the Bhagavata-Purana. 1 " 1 Count Stolberg and Tschudi have both made arguments in favor of this view. 2 Humboldt characterizes Quetzalcoatl as the Buddha of the Mexicans, the founder of the monastic estab- lishments resembling those of Thibet and Western Asia. 3 He further considers the flood of which they speak, identical with that of which traditions are preserved by the Hindoos, the Chinese, and the Shemitic peoples. Advocates of Scandinavian analogies in religion are not wanting. Although Viollet-le-Duc finds parallels existing be- tween the Brahmanistic ideas of divinity and passages of the Popol Vuh, still he is of the opinion that the strongest resem- blances have been found to exist between the religious customs of the Scandinavians and those recorded in the Popol Vuh.^ Humboldt remarks, " we have fixed the special attention of our readers upon this Votan or Wodan, an American who appears of the same family with the Wods or Odins of the Goths and of the peoples of Celtic origin. Since, according to the learned researches of Sir William Jones, Odin and Buddha are prob- ably the same person, it is curious to see the names of Bond- var, Wodansdag and Votan designating in India, Scandinavia, and in Mexico, the day of a brief period." 5 Lafitau, in his Mceurs d"S Sauvages, is as enthusiastic in his advocacy of the theory that the ancient Americans derived their religion from the Greeks, as Kingsborough is certain that it was of Jewish origin. He devotes his fourth chapter, and furnishes numerous illustrations, in support of his view. 6 Our limited space precludes the possibility of presenting in full the analo- 1 Bancroft, Native Races, vol. v, p. 41 ; Humboldt's Vues, torn, i, p. 236. 5 Bancroft, Native Races, vol. v, p. 41 ; Humboldt, Vues, p. 256 ; Tschudi, Peruvian Antig., p. 211. a Vues, p. 230 (ed. 1810). 4 Viollet-le-Duc in Charnay's Ruins, pp. 41-2. Paris, 1863. 5 Vues, p. 148 (ed. 1810): * jlceurs des Saumges, pp. 108-455. BRASSEUR DE BOURBOURG'8 COMPARISONS. gies discovered by the Abbe Brasseur de Bourbourg between the Mexican deities and those of Greece and Egypt. If we hesitate sometimes in accepting his conclusions, we cannot but wonder at his erudition and his zeal in research. He calls attention to the fact that the cult of Pan and Hermes were identical in Greece and refers to Maia, a personification of the earth, and the mother of the Hermes having been the consort of Zeus or Pan himself. So in Mexico he finds Pan in the person of Cipactoual, who, under the name of Cuextecatl, has for his consort Maia or MaiaoeL This god was adored in all parts of Mexico and Central America, and at Panuco or Panco, literally Panopolis, the Spaniards found upon their entrance into Mexico, superb temples and images of Pan. 1 The names of both Pan and Maia enter extensively into the Maya vocabulary, Maia being the same as Maya, the principal name of the peninsula, and pan, making Mayapan, the ancient capital. In the Nahua language pan or pani signifies " equality to that which is above," and Pantecatl was the progenitor of all beings. The Abbe' has little difficulty in proving the identity of Zamna, Hunab-ku and other Maya dieties, with the gods of Greece. 2 In the name of the Egyptian god Horus, he finds the significance of hurricane, or in the dialects of the Antilles, huracan or vrogan, the god Hurakan of the Quiches. Also in the Egyptian hieroglyphic symbol which Salvolini found equivalent to the phonetic K, namely, the singular reptile Uraeus, which resembles a serpent in an erect position with an enlarged body, and employed ex- tensively as a decoration in hair of the Egyptian deities and the Pharaohs ; he sees the emblem of Quetzalcoatl (Ketzal- cohuatl) the feathered-serpent, called Gukumatz in Quiche, and Kukulcan in Maya. The same symbol is represented on the Egyptian monuments with a feather rising from the serpent's crest. 3 It would be easy to pursue these ingenious comparisons through a number of pages, but we question their value in throw- ing any light on the subject in hand. The reader will find them 1 Brasseur in Introduction to Landa's Rdticion, pp. Ixx-i. 2 Landa's Relation, Introduc., pp. Ixxi et seq. * Brasseur de Bourbourg in Landa, pp. Ixvi-ix. 468 BRASSEUR DE BOURBOURG'S COMPARISONS. scattered in profusion through the voluminous writings of the learned Abbe. It is sufficient to say that most of the seeming analogies between the new and old world religions cannot be other than accidental, since it is probable that the aborigines entered our continent at a very remote antiquity, long before the religions with which theirs have been so persistently compared, took on their distinctive features. If after they were separated from the rest of the world by seas and mountains, the Ameri- cans developed religious systems presenting analogies to those of other lands, it furnishes us but another proof of the com- mon parentage and brotherhood of the race, of the universal outgoing of the human mind after the deity, and the sameness of mental operations and processes under the same given condi- tions. 1 1 We have not thought it necessary to treat the mythology or religious systems of the Mayas and Nahuas in any formal manner, but only incidentally to call attention to some salient features, cropping out in connection with the subject in hand. The religions of the ancient Americans have been so often and so admirably treated, that anything relating to them in this connection would be superfluous. See especially Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iii ; Muller's GescMchte der Amerikanischen Urreligionen ; Squier's Serpent Symbol in Amer- ica ; Brinton's Myths of the New World, and Ibid, Religious Sentiments in the New World. CHAPTEE X. LANGUAGE AND ITS RELATION TO NORTH AMERICAN MIGRATIONS. Diversity of Languages in America Causes of Diversity Richness of American Languages Polysynthesis Grimm's Law The Maya-Quiche Languages Stability of the Maya Oldest American Language The Maya compared to the Greek, the Hebrew, the North European, the Basque, West African, and the Quichua Languages Epitome of Maya Grammar The Mizteco- Zapotec Languages The Nahua or Aztec The Classic Tongue Ancient and Modern Nahua Epitome of Aztec Grammar Geographical Extension of the Aztec In the South In the North-west Buschman's Researches Sonora Family Opata-Tarahumar-Pima Family Moqui and Aztec Ele- ments Aztec in the Shoshone and in the Languages of Oregon and the Columbian Region Line of Aztec Elements The Nahua probably the Language of the Mound-builders The Otomi Supposed Chinese Analogies Japanese Analogies Geographical Names. LANGUAGE in aboriginal America may be pronounced a mystery of mysteries and a Babel of Babels. Mr. Bancroft has catalogued nearly six hundred distinct languages, existing between northern Alaska and the Isthmus of Panama. Many of these, however, scarcely deserve to be called more than dialects ; while each has its individuality, it is true that all have certain characteristics in common, a fact which by some has been con- sidered sufficient ground for belief in the unity of the American race, a hypothesis which is by no means tenable. The geo- graphical division and intermixture of languages, for instance, in California, is without a parallel elsewhere in the world. By the accidents attendant upon savage life, resulting from ceaseless hostilities and the frequent inroads of tribes upon their neighbors, a nation has often been scattered in fragments, and its refugees, separated into small bands, have taken up their residence in the 470 SURVIVAL OF THE FITTEST A LAW OF LANGUAGE. midst of other tribes at localities far removed from their central home. In a generation or two a modification of the parent speech has been brought about by the surrounding influences, all of which vary in the several localities in which the refugees have found their new homes. New tribes thus formed, soon become unintelligible to their brothers, who have developed a dialect under different influences from theirs. When we consider that for thousands of years this wholesale division and subdivision of tribes and languages has been going on, as the result of cease- less hostilities, we can easily account for the multitude of lan- guages and dialects on the one hand, and the existence of a thread of unity or similarity on the other, said to run through them all. Supposing the continent to have received its population from several different quarters, the natural expectation would be that in the course of time this process of general intermixture would result in developing in each language much that was common to the others hence the foundation for the hypothesis of their unity of origin. In the study of American languages it has often been a matter of surprise that their structure and expressiveness indicates a degree of perfection far in advance of the civilization out of which they had sprung. This superiority, we think, can be accounted for on the principle, first, that the evolution of languages on this continent has been more active and constant here than elsewhere, though unforturately not always operating under favorable conditions ; and second, that in the frequent catastrophes which have resulted from inter-tribal warfare, even in language, the law of the survival of the fittest is apparent, in the preservation of those etymological forms and principles of structure which are most useful. We by no means agree with the eminent philologist Dr. W. Farrar, F.R.S., chaplain to the Queen, and others who, taking but a partial and second-hand view of American languages, pronounce their elaborateness a childish excess, and their vaunted wealth a concealment of their poverty. 1 An examination of the poems of Nezahualcoyotl, king of Tezcuco, recorded by Ixtlilxochitl, will afford sufficient 1 Families of Speech, pp. 134-6. London, 1873. 12mo. GRIMM'S LAW. 47] proof of the expressiveness and richness of the Aztec language. 1 The song on the " Mutability of Life " and the ode on the tyrant Tezozomoe have often been translated and admired. 2 One of the leading characteristics of American language, it has been said, is " agglutination," but we must add that the term employed is not sufficiently comprehensive. " Agglutination," says Farrar, " may be described as that principle of linguistic structure which consists in the mere placing of unaltered roots side by side ; as when to express 'discipline' the Chinese say 'law-soldier/ or for * elders '' father-mother/ or for 'enjoyment' 'luxury-play-food- clothes/ " 3 The term poly synthesis, the synthesis of many words into one, with a little explanation will describe the characteristic, so promi- nent, to which we allude. In their polysynthesis, the syllables or words which are compressed into one long word, no longer retain their individual forms, but are clipped and altered so as to be scarcely recognizable. A sentence by this process of fusion is compressed into a single long word. Dr. Farrar cites the following example from the Aztec ; achichillacachocan, means " the place where people weep because the water is red." The component parts are : ail " water," chichiltic " red," tlacatl "man," chorea " weep," all of which have nearly lost their iden- tity in the inflection and contraction necessary in the synthesis. 4 As in the Aryan and other families, Grimm's system of Lautver- schiebung sound changing, or shunting better known by Prof. Max Mulleins designation as "Grimm's law" prevails, so there are groups or families in northern Mexico pointed out by Buschman to which this law is clearly applicable. No doubt the number of relationships already established between aboriginal languages, as the result of classification, will be greatly augmented when, 1 Spanish, in Kingsborough's Mex. Antiq., vol. viii, pp. 110-15. 2 English translation in Prescott's Mexico, vol. iii, and Bancroft's Native Races, vol. ii, pp. 494-97. a Families of Speech, pp. 125-26. 4 The same author refers tp the classification of languages adopted by Prof. Steinthal in his Charakteristik der hauptsdchUchsten Typen des Sprachbauet. Languages are divided into cultivated and uncultivated, and each again are sub- divided into isolating and inflectional. The American languages are classed as uncultivated and inflectional by incorporation. (Families of Speech, p. 127.) 472 CLASSIFICATION OF THE MAYA-QUICHE LANGUAGES. if ever, the subject receives special attention. 1 Mr. Bancroft classifies the languages in his catalogue under three great fami- lies, namely, the Tinneh, Aztec and Maya. The first, which covers the territory around the northern extremity of the Eocky Mountains, and sends its offshoots as far south as northern Mexico, only concerns us incidentally in treating the ancient languages of North America. 2 The two families (and their far- reaching branches) in which we are interested, are the Maya and the Aztec, the latter the survivor of the speech of the Nahuas. To the Maya, or rather, the Maya-Quiche stock, no doubt belongs the greatest antiquity assignable to any language or languages on the continent. The mother tongue, the Maya, prevails throughout all of Yucatan, and together with its dia- lects extends itself over Tabasco, Chiapas and Guatemala, and is even present in the states of Tamaulipas and Vera Cruz, in the Huastic and Totonac languages. Numerous catalogues of the branches of this family have been made, but the most recent, and we think the most complete, is one constructed in 1876 on Senor Pimentel's classification by the Mexican scholar, Senor Garcia y Cubas. It is as follows : 1. Yucateco or Maya ; 2. Punctunc ; 3. Lacandon or Xochinel ; 4. Peten or Itzae ; 5. Chanabal, Comiteco, Jocolobal ; 6. Choi or Mopan ; 7. Chorti or Chorte. 8. Cakchi, Caichi, Cachi or Cakgi ; 9. Ixil, Izil ; 10. Coxoh ; 11. Quiche, Utlatec ; 12. Zutuhil, Zutugil, Atiteca, Zacapula ; 13. Cachiquel, Cachiquil ; 14. Tzotzil, Zotzil, Tzin- anteco, Cinanteco ; 15. Tzendal, Zendal ; 16. Mame, Mem, Zaklohpakap ; 17. Poconchi, Pocoman ; 18. Atche, Atchi ; 19. Huastic, and probably 20. the Haytian, Quizqueja or Itis, with their affinities, the Cuban, Boriguan and Jamaican lan- guages. 3 1 See Bancroft's Native Baces, vol. iii, pp. 559, 670-2. See on the latter page especially a vocabulary of resemblances. 2 We refer the reader who is interested in the aboriginal languages of the North-west to the Contributions to North American Ethnology, published by the Department of the Interior, under the direction of Major J. W. Powell, Washington, 1877. 3 vols. 4to. 3 Garcia y Cubas, The Republic of Mexico in 1876. A political and ethno- graphical division of the population, etc., translated by Geo. F. Henderson, p. 66. GEOGRAPHICAL EXTENT OF THE MAYA. 473 The author of the above list has compensated us for its length by giving each of the names with its variation in orthog- raphy according to different writers. The classification is alto- gether superior to any other. The Maya is of peculiar interest to us, especially since within the territory over which it extends are found the most celebrated architectural remains known to Central American archaeology. The majority of the sculptured tablets which are preserved are no doubt in the Maya or some of its dialects. What is most satisfactory to us, is the proba- bility that the language is spoken to-day by the mass of the native population of Yucatan as it was anciently, for says Sefior Pimentel, " the Indians have preserved this idiom with such tenacity that to this day they will speak no other," and he adds that it is necessary for the whites to address them in their own tongue in order to communicate with them. 1 Seiior Orozco y Berra furnishes us evidence that little change has taken place in the language since the earliest times, in the statement that all the geographical names of the peninsula are Maya, which is considered proof in his judgment that the Mayas were the first occupants of the country. 2 It is but a reasonable expectation, therefore, that at no distant day, by the aid of Landa's alphabet, the inscriptions will be compelled to reveal their mysterious contents. The Tzendal, the language in which Votan is said to have written a history of the foundation of his city, and still spoken near the ruins of Palenque, is said to have been the oldest of American languages, but linguistic investiga- tions have proven that it is an offshoot from the Maya, the mother tongue. 3 It is probable that the Maya was first planted at some point in the territory which it now occupies, and gradually extended its domain until its colonies reached northern Vera Cruz and southern Nicaragua. Whether at any time it was the Mexico, 1876. Most of the above names are cited by Mr. Bancroft, Native Racts, vol. iii, p. 760 ; by Orozco y Berra, Oeografia, pp. 18-25 et passim, and by Pimentel, Lenguas Indigenas de Hex., vol. ii, p. 5 et seq. 1 Leng. Indig. de Mex., vol. ii, p. 3. 2 Geograjla de las Lenguas de Mex., pp. 129. 3 See Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iii, p. 760, and the literary apparatus appended. 474 THE MAYA COMPARED WITH THE GREEK. language of a people inhabiting central and southern Mexico at a date anterior to the arrival of the Nahuas, is unknown though probable. Senor Orozco y Berra has shown by linguistic studies that probably the Mayas occupied the Atlantic seaboard of the United States, having in their migration passed from the Flo- ridian peninsula to Cuba and thence to the other Caribbean isles, and to Yucatan. He states that the Mayas possess traditions of a northern home from which they passed by means of the islands of the Gulf to Yucatan. Both he and Senor Pimentel agree that the languages of the West Indies belong to the Maya family. 1 The characteristics of the Maya-Quiche languages are ; flexi- bility, expressiveness, vigor, approximating harshness, yet on the contrary rich and musical in sound. The Maya itself has more than once been compared to the Greek, and even said to be derived from it. Dr. Le Plongeon, who for four years has been exploring the ruins of Yucatan and especially of Chichen-Itza, writes thus in connection with the discovery of a well-sculptured bear's head at Uxmal : "When did bears inhabit the peninsula ? Strange to say, the Maya does not furnish the name for bear. Yet one-third of this tongue is pure Greek. Who brought the dialect of Homer to America ? Or who took to Greece that of the Mayas ? Greek is the offspring of the Sanscrit. Is Maya ? Or are they coeval ? A clue for ethnologists to follow the migrations of the human family on this old continent. Did the bearded men whose portraits are carved on the massive pillars of the fortress at Chichen-Itza, belong to the Mayan nations ? The Maya is not devoid of words from the Assyrian." 2 He does not hesitate to say that "the Maya, containing words from almost every language, ancient or modern, is well worth the at- tention of philologists," a statement which might with but little breach of propriety be made as well concerning almost any other language. In referring to its antiquity, the writer says, " I must 1 Orozco y Berra, Geografia, pp. 22, 128. 2 Communication of Dr. Le Plongeon to the Hon. John W. Foster, minister of the United States at Mexico, dated Island of Cozumel, May 1, 1877, in Salis- bury's Dr. Le Plongeon in Yucatan, p. 83. MAYA COMPARED TO HEBREW. 475 speak of that language which has survived unaltered through the vicissitudes of the nations that spoke it thousands of years ago, and is yet the general tongue in Yucatan the Maya. There can be no doubt that this is one of the most ancient lan- guages on earth. It was used by a people that lived at least 6000 years ago, as proved by the Katuns, to record the history of their rulers, the dogmas of their religion, on the walls of their palaces, on the fa9ades of their temples/' 1 The Mexican scholar, Sefior Melgar, is convinced that he sees resemblances between the names employed by the Chiapenecs in their calendar, and the Hebrew, and furnishes comparative lists to sustain his hopeless theory. 2 1 Dr. Le Plongeon, communication to Stephen Salisbury, Jr., Esq., dated Island of Cozumel, June 15, 1877. He remarks : " Notwithstanding a lew guttural sounds, the Maya is soft, pliant, rich in diction and expression, even every shade of thought may be expressed." "Strange to say the language remained unaltered. Even to-day, in many places in Yucatan the descendants of the Spanish conquerors have forgotten the native tongue of their sires, and only speak Maya, the idiom of the vanquished." Communication above cited in Salisbury 1 s Le Plongeon in Yucatan, pp. 95 et seq. 2 The following is Senor Melgar's comparative list with the Spanish trans- lated into English. Hebrew. English. Chiapenec. Ben, Son, Been. Bath, Daughter, Batz. Abba, Father, Abagh. Chimah, Star in Zodiac ? the creator of rain. Chimax. Maloc, King, Molo. Abah, Name applied to Adam, Abagh. Chanan, Afflicted, Chanam. Elab, God, Elab. Tischiri, September, Tsiquin. Chi, More, Chic, Chabic, Rich, Chabin. Enos, Son of Seth, Enot. Votan, To give, Votan. Lambotus, River of Arica, Lambat. He adds: "Todas estas coincidencias hacer suponer que en epocaa muy remotas existeron communicaciones entre el viejo y el nuevo mundo." Ho then refers to Plato's Atlantis. Melgar in Sociedad Mex, de Oeog. Boletin, \\\, 6poca, p. 108. 476 MAYA COMPARED TO THE NORTH-EUROPEAN LANGUAGES. The speculations of the Abbe Brasseur de Bourbourg are none the less remarkable and about equally as plausible as those of Dr. Le Plongeon or Senor Melgar. The Abbe after years of study among the peoples of Central America, was convinced beyond a doubt that a marked relationship existed between the Quiche-Cakchiquel and Zutugil and the languages of the north of Europe. He considers the evidence sufficient that peoples speaking the Germanic and Scandinavian languages migrated to Central America and infused their idioms into the Maya. 1 With Mr. Bancroft we agree that no value can be attached to these speculations, until impartial comparisons are made by scholars who have no theories to substantiate. It is worthy of note that several eminent scholars have observed the remarkable similarity of grammatical structure between the Central Amer- ican and certain transatlantic languages, especially the Basque 2 1 Brasseur's letter to M. Rafn in Nouvelles Annales des Voy., 6th series, vol. xvi, p. 263. He thinks the Scandinavians may have reached those remote parts at an early day. On pp. 281-9 he gives a list of words chosen from the Quiche, Cakchiquel and Zutohil, showing analogies with languages of Northern Europe, especially with the Scandinavian. Also see the same author in the Nouv. Ann. des Voy., 6th series, vol. iii, 1855, pp. 156-7. The Abbe in a letter to the New York Tribune, November 21st, 1855, in referring to the early inhab- itants of Vera Paz, says : " They came from the east not from the south-east, but from the north-east. I speak only of the tribes of Quiche-Cakchiquel and Zutohil. They came from the north-east, certainly passed through the United States, and as they say themselves, they crossed the sea in darkness, mist, cold and snow. I suppose they must have come from Denmark and Norway. They came in small numbers, and lost their white blood by their mixture with the Indians whom they found whether in the United States or in these regions, certainly there must have been a Tula in our northern European countries. But what is more convincing of this migration or passage, I find the same result by a comparison of the languages. I cannot speak of the structure of them, but by what I have observed is that the fundamental forms and words of the languages of these regions (except the Mexican) are intimately connected with the Maya or Tzendal, and that all the words that are neither Mexican nor Maya belong to our languages of Northern Europe, viz. : English, Saxon, Danish, Norwegian, Swedish, Flemish and German, some even appear to belong to the French or Persian." 2 Dr. Farrar, referring to the Basque, says : " What is certain about it is, that its structure is polysynthetic, like the language of America. Like them, and them only, it habitually forms its compounds by the elimination of certain EPITOME OF MAYA GRAMMAR 477 and some of the languages of Western Africa. 1 Dr. Le Plongeon, after several years spent amid the antiquities of Peru and in the study of the Quichua language, says, " The Quichua contains many words that seem closely allied to the dialects spoken by the nations inhabiting the regions called to-day Central America, and the Maya tongue." In referring to the mural paintings at Chichen-Itza, he further remarks, "By comparing them with those of the Quichuas, I cannot but believe that Manco's ances- tors emigrated from Xilbalba or Mayapan, carrying with them the notions of the northern country." 2 Interesting as these speculations are, they must be received with allowance and viewed with doubt, until thorough linguistic researches test their value. The most important features of Maya grammar are as fol- lows : The letters of the alphabet are, a b c o e, ch, cA, h, i, k, 1, m, n, o, p, p; 6, pp, t, th, tz, u, x, y, y, z. The letter o is pronounced like the English dj, h is not aspirated, th is hard, and the k guttural. Much of the beauty of the pronunciation depends on the elision of certain vowels and consonants, as for instance instead of ma in kati they say min kati, or instead of ti ca otoch they would say ti c otoch. The plural is distinguished from the singular by the addition of ob (those). Verbs ending in an take tac in the plural. The masculine of rational beings radicals in the simple words ; so that, e. g., ilhun, twilight, is contracted from 7iitt, dead, and egun, day ; and belhaun, the knee, from bel/uir, front, and oin, leg. It was this fact that made Larramendi give to his treatise on Basque grammar the title of ' The Impossible Overcome.' The most daring of all the hypotheses which have been suggested points to the conceivable existence of some great Atlantis ; to the possibility of the ' Basque area being the remains of a vast system, of which Madeira and the Azores are fragments belonging to the Miocene period.' Be this as it may, the fact is indisputable and is emi- nently noteworthy that, while the affinities of the Basque roots have never been conclusively elucidated, there has never been any doubt that this isolated Ian- guage, preserving its identity in a western corner of Europe between two mighty kingdoms, resembles in its grammatical structure the aboriginal lan- guages of the vast opposite continent, and those alone." Families of Speech, pp. 132-3. Also see Alfred Maury in Nott and Gliddon's Indigenous Races of the Earth, p. 48. 1 See Maury in Nott and Gliddon's Indig. Races, pp. 81-84 2 Salisbury's Le Plongeon in Yucatan, p. 96. 478 EPITOME OF MAYA GRAMMAR. is denoted by the prefix ab, the feminine by ix. The words xibil and chupul, signifying male and female respectively, are used to express the gender of animals. The case of nouns is determined by their position in the sentence and their relation to the prepo- sitions, the most frequent of the latter being ti, which has various significations. Adjectives accompanying substantives always pre- cede them, but the number is only expressed by the substantive. The comparative is formed by adding I to the adjective, some- times il, and prefixing u or y the pronoun of the third person. The superlative is formed by prefixing hack to the positive. The Maya pronouns are as follows : Personal Pronouns. Possessives. Reciprocals. Ten, en, I In, u, Mine Inba, Myself. Tech, ecli, Thou. A, au, Thine. Aba, Thyself. Lay, laylo, lo, He, that. U, i, His, of that. Uba, Himself. Toon, on, We. Ca, Ours. Caba, Ourselves. Teex, ex, You. Aex, auex, Yours. Abaex, Yourselves. Loob, ob, They, those. Uob, yob, Of those. Ubaob, Themselves. The verb has four conjugations and that of the auxiliary teni, to be, the present tense of which is the same as the per- sonal pronouns given in the left hand column, Te, Tech, etc. The other cases are as follows : Imperfect, Ten cuclii; Perfect, Ten hi; Pluperfect, Ten lii-ilicuchi; Future, Bin ten-ac; Future perfect, Ten lii-ili cosJiom; Imperative, Ten-ac; Subjunctive present, Ten-ac en; Imperfect, Hi ten-ac. The verb Nacal, to ascend, of the first conjugation, is in- flected as follows : PRESENT INDICATIVE. Singular, 1st per., Nacal in cah; 2d per., Nacal a cah; 3d per., Nacal u cah. Plural, 1st per., Nacal ca cah; 2d per., Nacal a-cah-ex; 3d per., Nacal-u-cah-ob. The Imperfect, Nacal in cah-cuchi; Perfect, Nac-en; Plu- perfect, Nacen Hi cuchi; Future, Bin nacac-en; Future per- fect, Nacen ili-cuchom; Imperative, Nacen. LORD'S PRAYER IX MAYA. 479 THE LORD'S PRAYER IN MAYA. Cayum ianeeh ti caannob cilicbthantabac akaba ; tac a Our Father wbo art in Heaven blessed be Thy name ; it may come ahaulil c' okol. Mencahac a nolah uai ti luura bai ti caane. Thy kingdom us over. Be done Thine will as on earth as in heaven. Zanzamal uah ca azotoon heleae caazaatez c f ziipil he bik c' zaatzic Daily bread us give to-day us forgive our sins as we forgive uziipil ahziipiloobtoone, ma ix appatic c' lubul ti tuntah caatocoon ti their sins to sinners, not also let us fall in temptation us deliver from lob. 1 evil. In the state of Oajaca and occupying the western portion of the Isthmus of Tehuantepec, in a position intermediate be- tween the Maya on the one hand and the Nahua on the other, is found the ancient family of languages known as the Mizteco- Zapotec, the various dialects of which are spoken to this day by the natives occupying those regions. No tradition throws any light on the origin of this group, nor do any affiliations in vocab- ulary or grammmatical structure seem to exist between them and any other family, American or foreign. The Miztec lan- guage is exceedingly difficult to acquire, being characterized by words of extraordinary length. The Zapotec on the contrary, with its several dialects, is elegant, sonorous, and less difficult.'-' The language pre-eminent above all others in Mexico for its territorial extent, for the refinement and civilization which it 1 See on the Maya, Ruz, Gram. Yucateca ; Pimentel, Quadro Leng. Indig., torn, ii, pp. 5 et seq., whose grammar we have followed above. Also vol. ii, pp. 119, 221 ; vol. i, p. 229, for idioms; Qallatin in Am. Ethnol. Soc. Transact., vol. i, pp. 252 et seq.; Vater, Mithridates, torn, iii, pt. iii, pp. 4-24 ; Braeseur de Bourbourg, Grammaire in Landa's Relation, pp. 459 et seq., also Maya and French Vocabulary; Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 759-82, quotes prayer as above. Further see literature cited in Ludewijf's Literature of American Aboriginal Languages, ed. of Trilbner. London, 1858, pp. 102-3. 2 Full accounts of the grammatical structure of the lanpuapresof this family may be found in Pimentel's Quadro, torn, i, pp. 35-78, 321-60 ; Orozco y Berra'e Geografia, pp. 25 et seq.; Bancroft's Natice Races, vol. iii, pp. 748-58. 480 THE NAHUA OR AZTEC. represented, and its own inherent beauty and elegance, is known as the Nahua or Aztec, or more modernly the Mexican. It was the language of the Toltecs and of their advanced civilization, and after them of the seven tribes of Nahuatlacas, that in the year 1196 established themselves in the Mexican plateau. The Aztecs, one of these tribes, in the course of events gaining the ascendency, gave their name to the language which their con- quests speedily extended over a territory four hundred leagues in length, and in width from the Gulf to the Pacific, in the latitude of the capital. The Aztec tongue prevailed continu- ously from a point on the Gulf of California, under the twenty- sixth parallel of latitude south-easterly to Eios Goatzacoalco and Tobasco ; and southward to the fifteenth parallel, extending along the coast of San Salvador and appearing in the interior of Nicaragua. Its dialectical extension north of Mexico we will consider on a future page. Twenty languages besides the Aztec are said to have been spoken throughout Montezuma's empire, but the Aztec alone was recognized as the official and classic tongue. The Chichimecs are said to have spoken a lan- guage of their own, until the ruler Techotlalatzin commanded them to learn the Mexican. 1 Mr. Bancroft is of the opinion that the Nahua was the original language of the Chichimecs, and consequently does not agree with Seiior Pimentel who ad- vocates the opposite view, and, we think, sustains it. 2 The copiousness and grace of the Aztec has furnished a theme for many Spanish writers whose praises have found an echo in the works of our most able scholars and historians. If the Maya has been compared to the Greek, the Aztec has often been likened to the Latin, not in structure or vocabulary, but in its relation to ancient American civilization, in its expressiveness, politeness, its capacity for the sublime, and for the romantic coloring with which it is able to clothe that which is humble and even insignificant. " It was the court language," says Mr. 1 Ixtlilxochitl, Hist. Chic, in Kingsborough's Hex. Antiq., vol. ix, p. 217, and cited by Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iii, p. 724. 2 Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 724-5 ; Pimentel, Quadro Leng. Indig. de Hex , torn, i, pp. 154-8, and our discussion in this work, chapter vi. p. 255. ANCIENT AND MODERN NAHUA. 481 Bancroft, " of American civilization, the Latin of medieval and the French of modern times." l The Nahua attained its highest development during the century preceding the conquest in the schools of oratory, poetry and history, established at Tezcuco, to which the sons of nobles were sent, as much to acquire the purity of the idiom as the science which they taught. 2 Senor Orozco y Berra says that the difference existing between the ancient Nahua and the modern, may be compared to that difference observed between the Castilian of the Romance of the Cid and that of the present day. 3 The outlines of the Aztec grammar are briefly as follows : The alphabet contains the letters a, ch, e, h, i, k, 1, m, n, o, p, t, tl, tz, u, v, x, y, z, but lacks our consonants b, d, f, r, g, s. No word commences with 1. The a is clear ; ch before a vowel is pronounced as in Spanish, but before a consonant or when final it differs somewhat ; e is clear ; h is moderately aspirated and soft, but strong when it precedes u; t is omitted except when it comes between two I's. The tl in the middle of a word is soft as in Spanish, but at the end is pronounced fie, the e being half mute. The pronunciation of tz is similar to the Spanish s, but stronger. The v is pronounced by the women as in Spanish and French, but by the men like hu in Spanish ; x, soft like the English sh, and z like the Spanish s, but not quite so hissing. 4 1 Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 726-7. The same author refers to the Natural History of Dr. Hernandez, written in the Aztec, as proof of its copiousness. " Twelve hundred different species of Mexican plants, two hundred or more species of birds, and a large number of quadrupeds, reptiles, insects and metals, each of which is given its proper name in the Mexican language." (Quoted l>y Pimentel, Quadra., vol. i, p. 168.) 1 See Prescott's Conq. of Mex., vol. i, p. 174 (ed. of 1875). " TP/CUCO." says Boturini, " where the noblemen sent their sons to acquire the most polished dialect of the Nahuatlac language, and to study poetry, moral philosophy, the heathen theology, astronomy, medicine and history." (Idea, p. 142, cited by Prescott.) 8 Geografia de las Lenf/nas, p. 9. 4 Pimentel, Qnadro, Lenguas Indig., p. 165, also copied by Bancroft, Nat\ Races vol iii, p. 731. From Pimentel we draw our extract of Aztec Grammar. 31 482 AZTEC CONSTRUCTION. By composition, words containing sixteen syllables are formed, though many simple words are quite long. We have already explained the process of polysynthesis or compounding by means of clipping the syllables and words with a view to brevity and euphony. The following example furnished by Pimentel and copied by Mr. Bancroft, further illustrates the principle : tlazotli, esteemed or loved ; maviztik, honored or reverenced ; teopixki, priest ; tatli, father, and no, mine, furnishes as a result : not- lazomaviztcopixkatatzin, " my esteemed father and reverend priest." An example of the termination tzin, signifying respect, is presented in this word. Several illustrations of the same principle are furnished by Senor Pimentel, showing that often a sentence is compounded into a single word. Indeed a great many of the component parts of these long words, though words in themselves, are incapable of being used separately. In com- position the verb succeeds the nominative and is placed at the end of the sentence. The adverb precedes the verb, as does the adjective the substantive. The Aztec is rich in terminations for the formation of the plural. Generally no change is required for inanimate objects, as multiplicity is expressed by means of numerals or the adverb miek (much), e. g., ze tetl, one stone ; yei tetl, three stones ; miek tetl, many stones, though often the terminations used for the plural of persons is applied to inanimate objects, , particularly when they are connected with persons, as zoquitl, mud ; tizoquime, we are earth ; however, there are exceptions to the rule, as in the Aztec words for the heavens, the mountains and the stars. Furthermore, the first syllable is often doubled in order to form the plural of inanimate things. Senor Pimentel has embraced the entire subject of the formation of the plural in six rules. 1. Primitive words form their plural in me tin or ke, as ichkatl, a ewe, a sheep ; ichkame, sheep ; zolin, a quail ; zoltin, quail ; kokoxki, sick ; kokoxke, sick (plural). 2. Derivatives form their plural as follows : the so-called " reverentials " in tzintli, have the plural in tzitzintin ; the diminutives in tontli form the plural totontin, and the dimin- utives in ton and pil, augmentatives in pol and reverentials in THE CASES. 483 tzin double the final syllable ; as, tlakatzintli, person ; tlakatzi- tzintin, persons, etc. 3. Words either primitive or derived into which the posses- sive pronouns enter, form the plural in van (huan according to the common orthography) ; as, noichkavan, my sheep, noichka- totonvan, my little sheep. 4. The words tlakatl, person ; zivatl, woman ; terms of gen- tilitious character or expressive of office and profession, form their plural by the omission of the final letters, as Mexicatl, a Mexican ; Mexika, Mexicans ; in which case the final vowel is accented. 5. Some words form the plural by omitting the terminals and by doubling the first syllable, while others double the first syllable without omitting the terminal ; as, teotl, god ; teteo, gods ; zolin, quail ; zozoltin, quails ; telpochtli and ichpochtli, double the syllable po. 6. Some adjectives have various plurals, as miek, much ; whose plural is miektin, miekintin or miekin. In most cases the adjective and its substantive agree in num- ber. The only means of expressing gender is by adding the words okichtli, male, and zivatl, female. In the absence of a regular declension the cases are formed as follows : The genitive is indicated by the possessive pronoun or by the juxtaposition of the words, the dative by means of verbs called applicatives, the accusative by certain particles accompanying the verb or by juxtaposition, the vocative by adding e to the nominative or by the change of i into e in words ending in tli or li and the in into e in words ending in tzin. The ablative is indicated by various particles and prepositions. The language surpasses the Italian in the number of its augmen- tatives and diminutives. The former take the syllable pol, the latter tontli and ton. The Aztec is richer in verbal nouns than any other language. Those derived from active, neuter, passive, reflective and impersonal verbs, terminate in ni, oni, ya, i", yan, kan or ian, tli, li, liztli, oka, ka, ki, k, i, o, tl. 484 CONJUGATIONS. fERSONJ Nevatl, neva, ne, LLiB. I. j No, Tevatl, teva, te, Thou. Mo, Yevatl, yeva, ye, He, or somebody. I, 2'evantin, teva, We. To, Amevantin, amewin, You. Amo, Yevantin, yevan, They. In or im, Te, TABLE OF PRONOUNS. POSSESSIVES. Mine. Thine. His. Ours. Yours. Theirs. Of or belonging to others. " The possessives," says Pimentel, " are always used in com- position, and change the final syllable of the word to which they are joined ; as, teotl, God, noteuh, my God," etc. 1 The modes of the verb are : the indicative, imperative, opta- tive and subjunctive. The indicative has the following tenses : present, imperfect, perfect, pluperfect, future. The subjunctive has one tense which is translated by the imperfect. The following example of the conjugation is given from Pimentel : INDICATIVE. Present. Ni-chiva, I make. Ti-chiva, We make. Ti-chiva, Thou makest. An-chiva, You make. Chiva, He makes. Chiva, They make. Imperfect. Ni-chiva-ya, I made. Perfect. Oni-chi-uh, I have made. Pluperfect. Oni-chi-ulika, I had made. Future. Ni-chiva-z, I shall make. IMPERATIVE. Present : Ma xi-chiva, Make thou. Future : Ma ti-chiva-z, Make thou presently. 1 Quadro, Leng. Indig., torn, i, p. 183. THE LORD'S PRAYER IN AZTEC. 435 OPTATIVE. Imperfect : Perfect ,\ Ma ni-chiva-ni, Would Ma oni-chi-uh, Would that that I 1 should make, have made. SUBJUNCTIVE. Imperfect : Ni-chiva-zkia. or ) m . Ar . , . 7 . f That I Ai-chiva-zkiayo, should make. There is no infinitive in the conjugation, it being expressed by the future indicative. Only verbs in liztli have this mode. The passive voice, save in a lew exceptional cases, is formed as follows : lo is added to the present indicative of the active voice. In the perfect tense, k is added to the previously affixed o in the singular and ke in the plural. The other modes and tenses form their passive voice by adding to the present indicative passive their own final termination, as, for instance, we have nichiva, I make, n> chivalo, I am made, onichivalok, I was made, onichi- valoka, that I should be made, etc. The Aztec contains only six irregular verbs. THE LORD'S PRAYER IN AZTEC. Totatzine in ilvikak timoyetztika ma yektenevalo in motokatzin Our reverend Father who heaven in art be praised ( ) thy name mavallauh in motlatokayotzin ma chivalo in tlaltikpak in motlanekilitzin in may come ( ) thy kingdom be done ( ) earth above ( ) thy will ( ) yuh chivalo in ilvikak. In totlaxkal mo moztlae totech moneki as is done () heaven in. () our bread every day to ua is necessary ma uxkan xitechmomakili, ivan ma xitechmopopolvili in totlatlakol in yuh to-day give us and forgive us ( ) our sins ( ) as tikintlapopolvia intechtlatlakalvia ivan makamo xitechmomakavili inik we forgive those who us offend and not lead thou us that amo ipan tivetzizke in teneyeyekoltiliztli, zanye ma xitechmomakixtili in not in we fall ( ) temptation, but deliver us ( ) ivikpa in amo kualli. 1 against ( ) not good. 1 It will be observed in some portions of this abstract, I have used almost the same words as are employed by Mr. Bancroft. This is owing to the fact 486 SUPPOSED TRACES OP AZTEC AT THE NORTH. Language has ever been an important factor in determining the original home and the migrations of peoples. With this view the Aztec has received the attention of some of the best scholars of both continents. The most prominent results merit attention. The Nahua language is unquestionably spoken far to the south, in Guatemala, Honduras and Nicaragua, and this fact has been persistently cited as conclusive proof of the southern origin of the Nahuas ; but even Mr. Bancroft, the most eminent of the advo- cates of this hypothesis, admits that there " it is dialectic rather than aboriginal in appearance, so that the testimony of language is all in favor of the plateau of Anahuac having been the primal centre of the Aztec tongue." 1 The reports of several of the adventurers into the unex- plored north, were to the effect that the aborigines whom they encountered spoke Aztec. Father Roque of Onate's expedition into New Mexico at the close of the sixteenth century, and Father Geronimo de Zarate subsequently at the Eio del Tizon, are authority for the most positive statements that the Mexican was encountered. Mr. Anderson, a companion of Captain Cook in 1778, discovered the Aztec terminal I il or z of frequent occur- rence among the Nootkas of the Northwest coast. With this data and the traditions of the Aztecs, which all point to the north as their ancient home, sufficient basis was found for a gen- eral belief that the Mexican peoples had migrated clown the coast of California and left an unbroken linguistic line along the entire route of their wanderings. At the beginning of the present century, the great German philologist, Vater, sought to establish this line by his extensive investigations, published in his Mitliri- dafes? Unfortunately for his labors, later researches have shown his generalizations too sweeping. Wilhelm von Humboldl considered the Cora, under the twenty-second degree of latitude that both he and I have translated certain passages literally from Senor Pimen . tel, from whose work I have drawn this account throughout. See Quadra, Lenguas Indig. de Hex., torn, i, pp. 164-216 ; Gallatin in Amer. EtJinol. Soc. Trans., vol. i, pp. 214-246 ; Vater, Mithridates, vol. iii, pt. iii, pp. 85-106, and Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 721-37. 1 Native Races, vol. iii, p. 726. 2 Mithridates, torn, iii, pt. iii, pp. 75 et seq. DR. BUSCHMANN'S RESEARCHES. 487 on the Rio de Santiago, to be a mixture of Aztec and some older and rougher language. 1 In 1855-59, Dr. Buschmann of Berlin issued two celebrated works, 2 in which the subject was critically examined, and as far as possible, with the data at hand, the true proportion of Aztec elements entering into all the languages spoken north of the Mexican plateau, was indicated. The researches were systematically made, beginning with the North Mexican languages and proceeding northward in the supposed line of the Aztec migration. In four languages of Northwestern Mexico in particular, did Dr. Buschmann find the conspicuous presence of Aztec elements. These are the Cora of Jalisco, referred to above ; the Tepehuana of northern Sinaloa, Durango and southern Chihuahua, spoken between the twenty-third and twenty-seventh parallels, in a crescent-shaped territory the points of which touch the Aztec on the west, intervening be- tween it and the Gulf of California ; the Tarahumara, spoken in the Sierra Madre, of the State of Chihuahua and Sonora, and fourthly, the Cahita occupying the east coast of the Gulf of California between the twenty-sixth and twenty-eighth paral- lels. By a liberty in classification, Buschmann calls this group the Sonora family, although the languages are entirely different from each other, with the exception that they are all pervaded by the Aztec element. This is their only bond of union. They contain about two hundred Aztec words, and about eight hun- dred words derived from the Aztec in the several idioms. ;i " Tho Aztec tl, and tli in the Cora, are found changed in ti, te and t; in the Tepehuana into de, re and sci; in the Tarahumara into ki, ke, ca and la, and in the Cahita, into rt. In all four of the languages substantive endings are dropped, first, in composition when the substantive is united with the possessive pronoun ; secondly, before an affix ; thirdly, in the Cora alone, before the ending of the plural and before affixes in the formation of 1 Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 663-70, our authority for the farts suited on p. 486. See his sketch of the theory and the reaction under Buschiimiiii. * Die Lautverandening Aztekischer Worter in der 8 Sprnrhen. Berlin, 18.")5, 4to, and Die Spuren der Aztekindien Sprachen. Berlin, 1851), 4to. 3 Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iii, p. 669. 488 BUSCHMANN'S SONORA FAMILY. words/' 1 Northeast of the Tarahumara and reaching to the Kio Grande is the Cnocho, and directly to the east of the Cnocho, is the territory of the Toboso, also bounded on the north by the Kio Grande. It is uncertain whether the Aztec was ever the language of these large districts, though testimony is not want- ing that it was understood by both peoples. 2 In fact throughout all northern Mexico, the Aztec was understood, and, in some instances, entered prominently into the languages of the north- western tribes. Grimm's law of Lautverdnderung, sound chang- ing or shifting, is as conspicuous in its application to the Aztec- Sonora family of Buschmann as it is to the members of the Aryan family, and often far more so. Occupying the north- western extremity of Mexico are the Pima-Alto and Bajo, and the Opata, the principal dialect of the latter being the Eudeve. Here again the Aztec appears both in the identity of words and the similarity of grammatical structure. These languages are recognized as branches of the Aztec-Sonora family, so much so that Orozco y Berra has classified them together under the name of the Opata-Tarahumar-Pima. He accounts for the presence of the Aztec element upon the supposition that the language and civilization of Mexico once extended over this region, but were subverted and displaced by the incursions of northern peoples toward the close of the twelfth century. 3 Not only is this probable, but, on the other hand, it would be a matter of surprise if traces of the Aztec were not found in languages bordering upon so vast and powerful an empire as that of Mon- tezurna. Still this fact alone is scarcely sufficient to account for the prominence of the Aztec element in the northern languages, while it is almost totally wanting in others more central and southern. Crossing into the United States territory, we first encounter the Moqui of the pueblo towns of Arizona ; to the west in southeastern California, we meet the Cahuillo, Cheme- 1 Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 667-8 ; William von Humboldt in Buschmann, Spuren der Aztek. Spr, pp. 48-50 ; Orozco y Berra, Geografia, p. 39. 2 Buschmann, Spuren der Aztek. Spr., p. 172 ; Orozco y Berra, Geografia, pp. 32 i-5 ; Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iii, p. 714. 3 Geografia, pp. 58, 147-8. THE MOQUI AND AZTEC. 439 huevi, Kizh, Netela and Kechi ; at the other extreme on the east, we have the Comanche of New Mexico and Texas, while to the north, in Utah, Nevada, Idaho and Oregon, we have the great Shoshone and Utah families. But why group these languages in such a wholesale manner ? Is it because of inter- linguistic affinities ? No. Simply because of the Aztec element (though insignificant it is true), which unquestionably pervades them all. 1 Six of the Moqui towns speak the language which bears their name. But, strange to say, Harno the Seventh uses the Tequa, a language of one of the New Mexican Pueblos. The Moqui language contains much that is Aztec, and because of its substantive endings in pe and be, etc., is considered by Buschmann a branch of his Shoshone-Comanche family of the Sonora idiom. 2 Coupling this fact with the traditions of tli3 Moquis (see pages 302-304) descriptive of their migra- tions from the North under the pressure of the hordes of savages who deprived them of their cultivated lands and slaughtered their families, we are at a loss to account for this infusion of Aztec elements, except on the hypothesis that at a remote day large numbers of Nahuas came in contact with the ancestors of this people in their ancient home. Equally con- spicuous is the Aztec element in south-east California lan- guages and the great Shoshone and Utah families, which occupy the great central basin and stretch away into Idaho and Oregon. Grimm's law of sound-shifting is seen in their adjective and 1 " As regards this Aztec element, I do not mean to say that these languages are related to the Aztec language in the same sense that other languages are spoken of as being related to each other, for this might lead those who are searching for the former habitation or fatherland of the Aztecs, to suppose that it has been found. This element consists simply in a number of words identi- cal or reasonably approximate to the like Aztec words, and in the similarity, perhaps, of a few grammatical rules. How this Aztec word-material crept into the languages of the Shoshones, whether by intercommunication, or Aztec colonization, we do not know. Nor do I wish to be understood as attempting to sustain the popular theory of an Aztec migration from the North ; on tin- contrary, the evidences of language are all on the other side." Bancroft's Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 660-1. 9 Buschmann, Spwren der Aztek. Spr., p. 290 ; Bancroft, Native Races, voL iii, pp. 673-4. 490 TRACES OF AZTEC IN OREGON. substantive endings, p, pa, pe, pi, be, wa, ph, pee, rp, and rpe. The Shoshone and Utah still retain ts, tse, and tsi, all of which are but variations of the Aztec tl, tli, according to the law above named. Buschmann pronounces this group the capstone of his Sonora edifice. 1 In Western Oregon, from the source to the mouth of the Willamette Kiver, the Yamkally and Calapooya languages preserve traces of the Aztec both in words and ter- minal sounds. 2 The same is even more evident concerning the Chinook, of the lower Columbia Kiver, in which the Aztec till and tl is a regular termination. 3 Throughout the entire region drained by the Columbia and its tributaries, Dr. Buschmann found well-marked Aztec elements. The Clallum and Lummi languages of the great Salish or Flathead family, which touches the coast opposite Vancouver's Island and extends into the in- terior, have the tl termination and other phonetic resemblances to the Aztec. 4 Furthermore, Mr. Gibbs has discovered that the cardinals employed by the Clallam and Lummi in their system of enumeration are of a threefold character, and, as Mr. Gallatin has shown, are similar to those of the Mexicans and Mayas. 3 1 Spuren der Aztek. Spr., pp. 349-51,391, 648-52 et seq.; Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 661-79, comparative table compiled from Buschmann, Turner, Molina, Ortega, and others, on p. 678. 2 Buschmann, Spuren der Aztek. Spr., p. 629, and Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iii, pp. 630-1. 3 " The Chinook language is spoken by all the nations from the mouth of the Columbia to the Falls. It is hard and difficult to pronounce for strangers, being full of gutturals like the Gaelic. The combinations ihl or tl are as frequent in the Chinook as in the Mexican." Franchere, Narrative of a Voy. to N. W. Coast of N. Am, p. 262. Swan, speaking of the Chinook, says : " The peculiar clucking sound is produced by pressing the tongue against the roof of the mouth, and pronouncing the word ending with tl as if it were the letter k at the end of the tl; but it is impossible in any form or method of spelling that I know of, to convey the proper guttural clucking sound. Sometimes they will, as if for amusement, end all their words in tl; and the effect is ludicrous to hear three or four talking at the same time with this singular sound, like so many sitting- hens." North West Coast, p. 315. 4 Buschmann, Spuren der Aztek. Spr., pp. 628-9 ; Bancroft, Native Races, vol. iii, p. 619. 5 Gibbs' Alphabetical Vocab. of Clallam and Lummi Lang., p. 6 ; Gallatin, in Trans. Am. Eth. Soc., vol. i, p. 54. BUSCHMANN ON THE VANCOUVER LANGUAGES. 491 Whether the Aztec is represented in the language of the Nootkas on Vancouver's Island is uncertain. Certainly strong marks of similarity are observable. Buschmann, while admitting the existence of resemblances, thinks that hardly enough of them exist to warrant relationship. 1 The inquiry naturally arises, how came this Aztec element which, three and a half centuries 1 Buschmann, Die Volker und Sprachen Neur Mexico's, p. 370, calls attention to the great resemblance of Aztec Nufka. tepuztli = copper = chipuz tetl stone = tenetschok and adds that Esquiates the name of a society is entirely Mexican. We append the result of his investigations : "Von ahnlicher Art, gleich den Spanisch gemodelten Gestalten Mexican- ischer WOrter, sind viele Nutka-WOrter der Spanischen Sammlung : nur mit dem Unterschiede, dass sie auf keinen vorhandenen mexicanischen WOrtern beruhen (da zufallig diese Buchstaben-combinationem in der Azt. Sprache nicht vorkommen, aber ihren Wesen nach recht gut vorkommen konnten). Solche Worter sind : iztocoti Muschel (dazu Eigenname iztocoti No. 923) ; mnjati = jagd (caza), mamati = Hof, muztati = Regenbogen : cucustbtti = Nasenloch, natlaycazte = Rippen ; otniquit Jungfrau; mamatle Schiff; oumutie = Leib; aguequetle = Hunger; capitzitle = Dieb; tnhechitte = larga : temtxtixitle = Kuss ; cuachitle = reisen ; cnchitle = pincher ; meyali = Schmerz. Es giebt noch eine ho'here Gattung von Nutka-Wo'rtern (der Span. Reise), welche (besonders durch die Aechtheit ihrer Endung von der vorigen verechieden) ganz und gar wie mexicanische Wo'rter aussehen, und (so weit sie substantiva sind) mexicanische sein wurden, wenn es der Sprache beliebt hiitte diese bestiinmten Lautgestalten zu bilden : inapatl = Riicken ; tlexatl = Matte ; tzahuacatl 9 ; charniehtl = Iris ; naguatzitl = Zwerg ; naschiti = Tag ; jacamitl = viereckig ; huatzacchitl = Husten ; nectzitl = trinken ; pttg.ritl = heben : cocotl = Seeotter ; amanutl = espinilla ; apnctzutl = Bart ; ictlatzutl = Mund ; iniyutl = Kehle ; jayutl = Fluth ; tlatltica#tze,me = Blatter (wie ein Mex. Plural in me) ; coyactzac = Fuchsbalg. Nocli mohr Wo'rter finden sich, wenn man fiir die Mex. Sprache unnatilrliche und zu harte Consonanten Verbindungen ubersieht. Diese letzte h5here Gattung vorzuglich, doch auch die erstere meint Alexander von Humboldt in dcr obigen Stelle (S. 363). So gawinnt die Nutka-Sprache durch eine reiche Zahl von Worlcrn und durdi grosse Zilge ihres Lautwesens, einzig von alien anderen frrmdcn,